Selected quad for the lemma: truth_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
truth_n church_n particular_a pillar_n 1,653 5 10.8048 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A35128 Labyrinthvs cantuariensis, or, Doctor Lawd's labyrinth beeing an answer to the late Archbishop of Canterburies relation of a conference between himselfe and Mr. Fisher, etc., wherein the true grounds of the Roman Catholique religion are asserted, the principall controversies betwixt Catholiques and Protestants thoroughly examined, and the Bishops Meandrick windings throughout his whole worke layd open to publique view / by T.C. Carwell, Thomas, 1600-1664. 1658 (1658) Wing C721; ESTC R20902 499,353 446

There are 88 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

take_v due_a notice_n of_o they_o and_o weed_v they_o up_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n we_o confess_v and_o the_o bishop_n gain_v nothing_o by_o it_o no_o more_o do_v he_o gain_v by_o allege_v cassander_n who_o credit_n among_o catholic_n be_v so_o little_a that_o his_o testimony_n will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a weight_n be_v it_o positive_a and_o home_o to_o the_o purpose_n whereas_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o speak_v doubtful_o and_o dare_v not_o absolute_o aver_v the_o bishop_n have_v teach_v any_o superstition_n all_o he_o venture_v to_o say_v be_v 21._o that_o through_o their_o covetousness_n he_o be_v afraid_a such_o superstition_n be_v continue_v and_o even_o this_o he_o ascribe_v rather_o to_o particular_a and_o inferior_a bishop_n then_o to_o the_o pope_n 3._o it_o be_v true_a there_o have_v be_v schism_n at_o rome_n as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n cyprian_n when_o novatus_n leave_v africa_n go_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o raise_v trouble_n yea_o after_o he_o novatianus_n proceed_v so_o far_o as_o to_o cause_v himself_o to_o be_v make_v antipope_n against_o cornelius_n and_o 52._o have_v many_o follower_n by_o which_o mean_v a_o schism_n spring_v up_o but_o still_o a_o great_a part_n stick_v to_o cornelius_n the_o true_a pope_n wherefore_o even_o during_o the_o schism_n as_o well_o as_o before_o the_o roman_a church_n right_o and_o true_o so_o call_v continue_v the_o catholic_a and_o as_o incorrupt_a as_o ever_o and_o why_o because_o they_o that_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a pope_n and_o make_v the_o schism_n corrupt_v themselves_o but_o not_o the_o roman_a and_o catholic_a church_n which_o adhere_v to_o he_o and_o be_v for_o the_o time_n of_o their_o separation_n of_o no_o church_n at_o all_o but_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o st._n cyprian_a can_v not_o employ_v caldonius_n suprà_fw-la and_o fortunatus_n to_o bring_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v but_o only_a to_o reclaim_v the_o 4._o schismatic_n and_o bring_v those_o divide_a member_n which_o follow_v novatian_n to_o their_o due_a obedience_n to_o cornelius_n their_o lawful_a bishop_n and_o thereby_o to_o the_o unity_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n still_o therefore_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n remain_v free_a and_o exempt_a from_o error_n either_o of_o schism_n or_o heresy_n and_o so_o shall_v ever_o continue_v maugre_o the_o malice_n of_o hell_n and_o whatever_o vain_a objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n 4._o a._n c._n further_o charge_n the_o relatour_n to_o have_v confess_v that_o protestant_n 1._o have_v make_v a_o rent_n and_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n here_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o little_a nettle_v and_o flat_o deny_v that_o ever_o he_o affirm_v or_o thought_n that_o protestant_n make_v it_o for_o my_o part_n i_o think_v it_o a_o unprofitable_a dispute_n to_o question_v much_o what_o be_v say_v it_o more_o concern_v we_o to_o see_v what_o can_v or_o can_v be_v say_v in_o this_o point_n our_o assertion_n be_v that_o protestant_n make_v this_o rent_n or_o schism_n by_o their_o obstinate_a and_o pertinacious_a maintain_v erroneous_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a or_o catholic_a church_n by_o their_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n both_o immediate_a and_o mediate_a by_o aggregate_a themselves_o into_o a_o separate_a body_n or_o company_n of_o pretend_a christian_n independent_a of_o any_o pastor_n at_o all_o that_o be_v in_o lawful_a and_o quiet_a possession_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o by_o make_v themselves_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n of_o other_o and_o administer_a sacrament_n without_o authority_n give_v they_o by_o any_o that_o be_v lawful_o empower_v to_o give_v it_o by_o institute_v new_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o their_o own_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o those_o ancient_o receive_v throughout_o all_o christendom_n by_o violent_o exclude_v and_o dispossess_v other_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o and_o from_o their_o respective_a sea_n cure_n and_o benefice_n and_o intrude_a themselves_o into_o their_o place_n in_o every_o nation_n where_o they_o can_v get_v footing_n the_o say_a prelate_n and_o pastor_n for_o the_o most_o part_n yet_o live_v these_o and_o the_o like_a practice_n not_o the_o call_n for_o truth_n and_o redress_v of_o abuse_n as_o the_o bishop_n vain_o pretend_v we_o aver_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a and_o real_a cause_n of_o protestants-being_a thrust_n out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o as_o almighty_a god_n leave_v no_o man_n who_o leave_v not_o he_o first_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o church_n separate_v herself_o from_o any_o man_n or_o thrust_v he_o from_o her_o communion_n who_o do_v not_o first_o depart_v and_o separate_v himself_o from_o she_o by_o obstinate_a adhere_n to_o novel_a opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o by_o his_o wicked_a and_o enormous_a demeanour_n contrary_a to_o true_a charity_n or_o by_o both_o together_o the_o orthodox_n ibidem_fw-la therefore_o do_v very_o well_o in_o depart_v from_o the_o arrian_n as_o the_o relatour_n note_v in_o the_o margin_n because_o the_o arrian_n be_v already_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n by_o their_o false_a doctrine_n and_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n be_v they_o who_o depart_v first_o that_o we_o charge_v it_o upon_o our_o adversary_n for_o as_o the_o arrian_n then_o depart_v first_o from_o the_o church_n not_o the_o church_n from_o they_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n now_o of_o late_a and_o the_o faithful_a do_v well_o in_o both_o case_n to_o avoid_v all_o communion_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n both_o with_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o nor_o do_v the_o bishop_n vindicate_v the_o protestant_a party_n by_o say_v the_o cause_n of_o schism_n be_v we_o and_o that_o we_o catholic_n thrust_v protestant_n from_o we_o because_o they_o call_v for_o truth_n and_o redress_n of_o abuse_n for_o first_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o schism_n this_o have_v be_v grant_v already_o even_o by_o above-cited_n protestant_n and_o to_o his_o call_n for_o truth_n etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v what_o heretic_n ever_o yet_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o pretend_a truth_n and_o complain_v they_o be_v thrust_v out_o and_o hardly_o deal_v with_o mere_o because_o they_o call_v for_o truth_n and_o redress_n of_o abuse_n but_o he_o shall_v have_v reflect_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v style_v a_o city_n of_o truth_n 3._o by_o the_o prophet_n and_o a_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n 15._o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o the_o father_n 30._o a_o rich_a depository_n or_o treasury_n of_o all_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a doctrine_n or_o 〈◊〉_d so_o that_o to_o charge_v she_o either_o with_o the_o want_n of_o truth_n or_o opposition_n to_o the_o preach_n of_o it_o and_o upon_o that_o ground_n to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n as_o protestant_n do_v be_v a_o inexcusable_a impiety_n and_o presumption_n that_o woe_n therefore_o of_o scandal_n mention_v by_o the_o bishop_n whether_o active_a or_o passive_a fall_v most_o heavy_o upon_o his_o own_o party_n who_o first_o take_v effence_n without_o just_a cause_n and_o afterward_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o offence_n by_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n and_o make_v a_o schism_n a_o thing_n so_o clear_a and_o undeniable_a that_o to_o use_v the_o relatour_n own_o expression_n our_o adversary_n may_v better_o defend_v their_o cause_n before_o a_o judge_n and_o a_o jury_n then_o before_o a_o assembly_n of_o learned_a divine_n after_o this_o the_o bishop_n quarrel_n with_o a._n c._n for_o vindicate_v the_o jesuit_n but_o what_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o their_o quarrel_n the_o jesuit_n aver_v the_o bishop_n to_o have_v say_v that_o protestant_n do_v make_v the_o rent_n or_o division_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o bishop_n deny_v he_o say_v any_o such_o thing_n a._n c._n prove_v he_o say_v it_o either_o 〈◊〉_d or_o aequipollentibus_fw-la verbis_fw-la because_o the_o jesuit_n write_v down_o his_o word_n in_o fresh_a memory_n and_o upon_o special_a notice_n take_v of_o the_o passage_n hereupon_o the_o bishop_n fall_v into_o exclamation_n and_o admiration_n as_o if_o a._n c._n stand_v upon_o the_o brink_n of_o a_o contradiction_n but_o i_o answer_v there_o be_v not_o here_o the_o least_o show_n of_o a_o contradiction_n for_o though_o his_o lordship_n word_n be_v very_o few_o though_o write_v down_o by_o the_o jesuit_n in_o fresh_a memory_n and_o upon_o special_a notice_n take_v yet_o may_v the_o jesuit_n well_o enough_o be_v say_v to_o quote_v they_o either_o iisdem_fw-la or_o aequipollentibus_fw-la verbis_fw-la for_o timorous_a and_o tender_a conscience_n think_v they_o can_v never_o speak_v with_o caution_n enough_o for_o fear_v of_o tell_v a_o
priestly_a function_n to_o have_v any_o commerce_n with_o rome_n and_o a_o capital_a crime_n even_o to_o hear_v mass_n or_o but_o harbour_v a_o priest_n and_o what_o i_o pray_v be_v true_a piety_n in_o god_n sight_n if_o all_o these_o be_v capital_a offence_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o parallel_n his_o lordship_n even_o during_o the_o schism_n of_o jeroboam_n will_v yet_o needs_o have_v israel_n a_o true_a church_n but_o i_o answer_v they_o be_v no_o true_a church_n because_o they_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o adore_v the_o golden_a calf_n of_o jeroboam_n it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v many_o holy_a person_n inhabitant_n of_o the_o same_o country_n with_o the_o rest_n who_o keep_v themselves_o undefiled_a from_o those_o idolatry_n and_o division_n who_o though_o they_o be_v not_o perhaps_o suffer_v to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o worship_n yet_o never_o consent_v to_o go_v to_o dan_fw-mi or_o bethel_n these_o we_o acknowledge_v remain_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o schism_n as_o many_o catholic_n do_v now_o continue_v true_a member_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o live_v dispersedly_z in_o heretical_a country_n and_o the_o prophet_n who_o be_v among_o they_o be_v also_o a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o which_o reason_n for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o king_n of_o israel_n persecute_v they_o as_o catholic_n also_o now_o be_v common_o persecute_v by_o heathen_a mahometan_a and_o heretical_a prince_n the_o having-prophet_n therefore_o among_o they_o argue_v the_o ten_o tribe_n no_o more_o to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o it_o will_v argue_v the_o protestant_n in_o holland_n to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o some_o roman_a catholic_n shall_v be_v find_v among_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n but_o his_o lordship_n will_v prove_v by_o some_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o ten_o tribe_n continue_v a_o church_n notwithstanding_o their_o schism_n and_o idolatry_n but_o to_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 9_o 17._o i_o answer_v first_o this_o prophet_n prophesy_v both_o against_o juda_n and_o israel_n and_o the_o word_n israel_n be_v a_o appellative_a common_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n of_o jacob_n it_o be_v not_o certain_a he_o always_o mean_v by_o it_o the_o ten_o schismatical_a tribe_n only_o and_o not_o sometime_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n also_o second_o i_o say_v the_o relatours_n gloss_n add_v to_o the_o text._n god_n do_v not_o there_o threaten_v to_o cast_v israel_n away_o in_o non_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v that_o be_v to_o un-church_n they_o as_o if_o forsooth_o before_o that_o threaten_a they_o have_v be_v a_o true_a church_n this_o be_v the_o relatour_n own_o voluntary_a addition_n or_o fiction_n rather_o but_o he_o threaten_v simple_o to_o deprive_v they_o of_o his_o wont_a protection_n to_o deliver_v they_o into_o their_o enemy_n hand_n and_o as_o the_o very_a next_o word_n show_v to_o make_v they_o night-wanderer_n among_o the_o nation_n that_o shall_v take_v they_o captive_a to_o that_o of_o 4._o reg._n 9_o 6._o where_o they_o be_v call_v the_o people_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o answer_v in_o a_o general_a sense_n all_o abraham_n seed_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n be_v style_v the_o people_n of_o god_n by_o reason_n of_o that_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o abraham_n gen._n 18._o i_o will_v be_v a_o god_n to_o thou_o and_o to_o thy_o seed_n after_o thou_o but_o abraham_n seed_n only_o according_a to_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v the_o faithful_a make_v the_o true_a church_n to_o his_o last_o argument_n which_o he_o advance_v as_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la that_o multitude_n be_v a_o note_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v we_o do_v not_o contend_v that_o of_o christian_n the_o great_a multitude_n be_v a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o arrian_n be_v report_v to_o be_v more_o numerous_a than_o the_o orthodox_n 3._o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n as_o well_o as_o from_o the_o father_n be_v a_o truth_n always_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o receive_v in_o general_a council_n long_o before_o the_o controversy_n touch_v that_o point_n arise_v between_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o greek_n witness_v that_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o he_o write_v as_o bellarmin_n tell_v we_o from_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n to_o that_o omissis_fw-la of_o ephesus_n wherein_o be_v these_o word_n spiritus_fw-la appellatus_fw-la est_fw-la veritatis_fw-la &_o veritas_fw-la christus_fw-la est_fw-la unde_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la isto_fw-la similiter_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la patre_fw-la procedit_fw-la the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v he_o be_v call_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n and_o christ_n be_v the_o truth_n whence_o follow_v that_o he_o proceed_v as_o well_o from_o he_o as_o from_o the_o father_n thus_o he_o now_o this_o epistle_n of_o st._n cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n as_o bellarmin_n likewise_o show_v be_v receive_v not_o only_o by_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 434._o but_o also_o by_o four_o other_o general_n council_n hold_v in_o greece_n itself_o and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n be_v a_o truth_n so_o ancient_o know_v in_o the_o church_n that_o it_o can_v not_o well_o seem_v a_o novelty_n to_o any_o when_o the_o express_a confession_n of_o it_o come_v to_o be_v more_o frequent_a and_o public_a in_o the_o latin_a church_n it_o matter_n not_o much_o in_o what_o capacity_n it_o be_v promulgate_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n whether_o as_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o the_o bishop_n contend_v or_o as_o head_n 2._o of_o the_o church_n universal_a as_o we_o think_v for_o either_o way_n it_o can_v not_o but_o be_v very_o lawful_a for_o that_o church_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o can_v it_o help_v his_o lordship_n cause_n which_o way_n foever_o it_o be_v do_v for_o supppose_v a_o particular_a church_n may_v in_o some_o case_n promulgate_v a_o orthodox_n truth_n not_o as_o yet_o catholique_o receive_v or_o define_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v it_o thence_o follow_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n may_v repeal_v and_o reverse_v any_o thing_n that_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v already_o catholick_o and_o definitive_o receive_v sure_o no._n yet_o this_o be_v his_o lordship_n and_o the_o protestant_n case_n 4._o hence_o the_o relatour_n egregious_a fallacy_n be_v manifest_a while_o from_o the_o add_v of_o a_o word_n only_o by_o some_o particular_a church_n for_o explication_n of_o a_o know_v ancient_a and_o general_o receive_v suprà_fw-la truth_n such_o as_o be_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n he_o pretend_v to_o infer_v both_o these_o proposition_n viz._n that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v publish_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v catholic_n where_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v silent_a and_o that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v reform_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o catholic_a where_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v negligent_a or_o will_v not_o for_o though_o the_o former_a of_o these_o proposition_n be_v not_o so_o enormous_a as_o the_o latter_a because_o it_o suppose_v not_o any_o actual_a error_n contrary_a to_o catholic_a doctrine_n to_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o a_o non_fw-fr declaration_n or_o at_o most_o some_o negligence_n to_o promulgate_v a_o catholic_n truth_n whereas_o the_o other_o suppose_v error_n of_o something_o uncatholick_a to_o be_v teach_v or_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n yet_o be_v they_o both_o utter_o paradoxical_a and_o false_a and_o no_o way_n to_o be_v infer_v from_o the_o example_n or_o practice_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o declare_v the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n for_o that_o be_v of_o a_o point_n ancient_o and_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n much_o 〈◊〉_d can_v it_o justify_v the_o protestant_n proceed_n who_o declaration_n promulgation_n confession_n or_o what_o ever_o you_o will_v call_v they_o make_v upon_o their_o several_a pretend_a reformation_n be_v only_o of_o new_a and_o unheard_a of_o doctrine_n direct_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_n church_n universal_o hold_v and_o teach_v before_o they_o for_o catholic_a truth_n for_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1517._o when_o their_o pretend_a reformation_n begin_v be_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o our_o saviour_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n by_o a_o true_a substantial_a change_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n general_o hold_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o the_o real_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n then_o general_o believe_v be_v not_o veneration_n
of_o argument_n to_o disprove_v it_o but_o know_v it_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o antiquity_n wind_v about_o and_o fall_v upon_o that_o odious_a question_n of_o kill_v and_o depose_v king_n wherein_o he_o presume_v it_o will_v be_v more_o easy_a for_o he_o to_o choke_v his_o adversary_n but_o it_o shall_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n for_o we_o say_v first_o he_o commit_v a_o gross_a fallacy_n argue_v à_fw-la negatione_fw-la speciei_fw-la ad_fw-la negationem_fw-la generis_fw-la which_o be_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o logic_n for_o what_o be_v it_o else_o to_o infer_v the_o pope_n have_v no_o universal_a power_n or_o supremacy_n at_o all_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o he_o have_v not_o such_o or_o such_o a_o particular_a power_n over_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n his_o lordship_n shall_v have_v remember_v that_o we_o be_v yet_o upon_o the_o question_n an_o sit_v whether_o or_o no_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o universal_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o till_o it_o be_v fair_o determine_v it_o be_v but_o to_o make_v too_o much_o haste_n and_o pervert_v due_a order_n to_o fall_v upon_o the_o question_n quid_fw-la sit_fw-la and_o dispute_v wherein_o it_o consist_v and_o how_o far_o it_o extend_v second_o we_o answer_v the_o point_n of_o kill_a king_n be_v a_o most_o false_a and_o scandalous_a imputation_n for_o what_o pope_n ever_o kill_v or_o give_v command_v warrant_v or_o authority_n for_o the_o kill_n of_o any_o king_n or_o what_o catholic_a author_n ever_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v power_n from_o christ_n so_o to_o do_v and_o as_o for_o depose_v they_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o part_n of_o my_o task_n to_o dispute_v it_o but_o what_o protestant_n have_v both_o do_v and_o justify_v in_o the_o worst_a of_o these_o kind_n be_v but_o too_o fresh_a in_o memory_n 4._o a._n c._n do_v not_o beg_v the_o question_n when_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o 18._o rome_n shall_v never_o refuse_v to_o feed_v and_o govern_v the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n as_o no_o particular_a man_n or_o church_n shall_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o separation_n from_o it_o see_v it_o be_v the_o clear_a inference_n of_o his_o precedent_a discourse_n it_o be_v rather_o a_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o his_o lordship_n to_o tell_v we_o only_o while_o he_o ought_v to_o prove_v it_o that_o protestant_n have_v make_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o general_n church_n but_o only_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o such_o other_o church_n as_o by_o adhere_v to_o she_o have_v hazard_v themselves_o and_o do_v now_o miscall_a themselves_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n it_o be_v also_o in_o this_o case_n a_o beg_v the_o question_n to_o affirm_v the_o roman-catholique_a church_n to_o be_v in_o error_n since_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o she_o be_v so_o or_o have_v he_o any_o where_o convince_v she_o of_o error_n he_o have_v often_o say_v it_o and_o suppose_v it_o i_o know_v but_o where_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o i_o know_v not_o it_o be_v therefore_o yet_o to_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n have_v err_v in_o any_o doctrine_n public_o define_v by_o she_o again_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o hazard_n in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n she_o be_v the_o unshaken_a rock_n of_o truth_n and_o sole_o able_a to_o show_v a_o continual_a succession_n of_o lawfully-sent_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n from_o christ_n to_o our_o present_a time_n who_o have_v hitherto_o teach_v the_o same_o unchanged_a doctrine_n and_o shall_v infallible_o according_a to_o christ_n promise_n continue_v so_o teach_v it_o unto_o the_o world_n end_n from_o this_o only_a catholic_a church_n protestant_n have_v unhappy_o sever_v themselves_o as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v 14._o and_o be_v through_o their_o own_o fault_n so_o absolute_o deprive_v of_o all_o communion_n with_o she_o that_o they_o can_v no_o more_o be_v esteem_v member_n of_o this_o church_n in_o the_o condition_n they_o now_o stand_v than_o a_o wither_a branch_n can_v be_v account_v a_o part_n of_o the_o tree_n from_o which_o it_o be_v break_v in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v the_o relatour_n pretend_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o leave_v the_o church_n in_o her_o essence_n but_o in_o her_o error_n the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v in_o her_o faith_n sacrament_n discipline_n in_o all_o these_o it_o be_v too_o manifest_a to_o be_v deny_v protestant_n have_v forsake_v the_o church_n yea_o and_o perpetual_o fight_v against_o she_o wherefore_o they_o have_v leave_v she_o in_o thing_n essential_a or_o pertain_v to_o the_o life_n and_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o call_v these_o essential_o error_n which_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o erroneous_a presumption_n wherein_o they_o imitate_v no_o less_o the_o old_a heretic_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n of_o the_o church_n viz._n the_o novatian_o arian_n nestorian_n etc._n etc._n then_o the_o swarm_n of_o new_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o for_o which_o of_o all_o these_o do_v not_o or_o will_v not_o upon_o occasion_n plead_v they_o forsake_v not_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n but_o her_o error_n they_o separate_v not_o from_o her_o communion_n but_o corruption_n 5._o well_o but_o after_o all_o dispute_v a_o man_n will_v imagine_v that_o our_o learned_a antagonist_n will_v at_o length_n submit_v to_o a_o general_n council_n for_o first_o he_o thus_o profess_v speak_v to_o a._n c._n what_o great_a or_o sure_a 1._o judgement_n you_o can_v have_v where_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v than_o a_o general_n council_n i_o do_v not_o see_v and_o immediate_o after_o he_o cite_v a_o long_a text_n of_o a._n c_n which_o speak_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o if_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o pray_v unanimous_o for_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v great_a and_o diligent_a search_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o hear_v each_o pastor_n declare_v what_o have_v be_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o this_o church_n shall_v thereupon_o decree_v some_o particular_a point_n or_o matter_n to_o be_v hold_v for_o divine_a truth_n if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n or_o general_a council_n may_v err_v in_o such_o a_o decree_n what_o can_v be_v firm_a or_o certain_a upon_o earth_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o both_o profess_v that_o it_o seem_v fair_a and_o also_o free_o grant_v that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v the_o best_a judge_n on_o earth_n for_o controversy_n of_o faith_n where_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v doubt_v this_o will_v make_v a_o man_n think_v the_o bishop_n intend_v to_o conform_v himself_o to_o such_o a_o decree_n but_o to_o the_o end_n all_o the_o world_n may_v see_v how_o unwilling_o he_o yield_v to_o reason_n especial_o when_o it_o come_v from_o a_o adversary_n he_o present_o again_o begin_v to_o quarrel_v with_o a._n c._n tell_v we_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o general_n council_n call_v nor_o indeed_o possible_a to_o be_v call_v as_o a._n c._n speak_v of_o viz._n in_o which_o all_o pastor_n be_v gather_v together_o as_o if_o a._n c._n be_v so_o simple_a as_o by_o all_o pastor_n to_o understand_v numerical_o and_o individual_o all_o that_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o without_o exception_n and_o that_o a_o council_n can_v not_o be_v think_v sufficient_o general_n nor_o a_o obligatory_a decree_n of_o faith_n be_v make_v by_o it_o unless_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o this_o sense_n be_v gather_v together_o especial_o he_o have_v so_o clear_o declare_v his_o meaning_n to_o the_o contrary_a in_o defend_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o have_v be_v a_o true_a general_n council_n where_o it_o be_v manifest_a all_o pastor_n whatsoever_o do_v not_o convene_v though_o there_o be_v as_o many_o as_o have_v meet_v in_o some_o other_o general_a council_n esteem_v even_o by_o protestant_n for_o such_o and_o strange_a it_o be_v to_o see_v how_o long_o the_o relatour_n skirmish_n with_o mere_a shadow_n and_o what_o inference_n he_o make_v mere_o upon_o this_o most_o salsly-supposed_a and_o wholly-improbable_a sense_n of_o a._n c_n word_n all_o pastor_n then_o in_o that_o text_n of_o a._n c._n signify_v no_o more_o than_o all_o that_o be_v requisite_a or_o so_o many_o of_o all_o as_o be_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o reason_n and_o christian_a prudence_n due_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v a_o true_a and_o lawful_a general_n council_n if_o so_o many_o lawful_o call_v be_v gather_v together_o it_o be_v the_o all_z that_o a._n c._n intend_v and_o
pope_n alexander_n how_o sharp-sighted_a therefore_o our_o adversary_n be_v in_o his_o observation_n against_o we_o appear_v by_o this_o but_o see_v these_o fork_a syllogism_n 〈◊〉_d so_o dilomma_n be_v sometime_o call_v by_o logician_n be_v such_o currant_n coin_v with_o his_o lordship_n it_o will_v not_o i_o hope_v be_v think_v unreasonable_a if_o we_o pay_v he_o one_o for_o many_o thus_o than_o i_o argue_v either_o the_o bishop_n know_v his_o relation_n touch_v peter_n lombard_n to_o be_v false_a or_o he_o know_v it_o not_o if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o his_o ignorance_n in_o a_o point_n wherein_o he_o will_v seem_v know_v be_v hardly_o excusable_a and_o his_o temerity_n in_o affirm_v without_o sure_a ground_n such_o a_o thing_n as_o this_o to_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o a_o synod_n of_o three_o hundred_o bishop_n and_o archbishop_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n altogether_o unblamable_a if_o he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v false_a and_o yet_o will_v affirm_v what_o he_o do_v where_o be_v his_o honesty_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d touch_v pope_n 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o eight_o general_n council_n define_v against_o honorius_n there_o be_v a_o mistake_n in_o it_o for_o neither_o do_v pope_n honorius_n real_o maintain_v the_o monothelite_n heresy_n nor_o do_v we_o maintain_v but_o in_o a_o question_n of_o fact_n as_o this_o be_v viz._n whether_o the_o say_a pope_n have_v real_o assert_v that_o heresy_n both_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n through_o misinformation_n or_o other_o jucident_n may_v judge_v amiss_o the_o bishop_n proceed_v ask_v we_o in_o the_o next_o paragraph_n to_o this_o effect_n that_o since_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n have_v be_v so_o easy_a a_o way_n either_o to_o prevent_v all_o division_n about_o the_o faith_n or_o to_o end_v all_o controversy_n of_o that_o nature_n whensoever_o they_o shall_v arise_v why_o this_o brief_a but_o most_o necessary_a proposition_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o his_o judicjall_a determination_n concern_v the_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o letter_n or_o sense_n in_o any_o stripture_n council_n or_o father_n of_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o catholic_n maintain_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o necessary_a beleese_n to_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v find_v for_o sense_n both_o in_o scripture_n council_n and_o father_n as_o we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o prove_v in_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n of_o which_o he_o be_v the_o most_o principal_a and_o most_o necessary_a member_n second_o even_o in_o the_o sense_n wherein_o the_o bishop_n with_o perpetual_a impertinency_n 〈◊〉_d it_o viz._n as_o it_o signify_v his_o personal_a infallibility_n without_o a_o general_n council_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o opinion_n allege_v both_o scripture_n father_n and_o council_n for_o it_o probable_o at_o least_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o their_o 〈◊〉_d disputation_n upon_o that_o subject_n to_o omit_v scripture_n wherein_o we_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o of_o s._n peter_n in_o who_o right_a the_o pope_n succeed_v what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o that_o council_n seem_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a when_o upon_o read_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d to_o they_o in_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d heresy_n the_o 〈◊〉_d assembly_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o with_o acclamation_n 472._o and_o profess_v that_o st._n peter_n who_o be_v infallible_a speak_v by_o the_o may_v of_o leo_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v interpreter_n of_o the_o apostle_n voice_n what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o the_o father_n in_o that_o council_n seem_v to_o attribute_v infallibility_n to_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o acknowledge_v latin_n that_o st._n peter_n be_v head_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o stilll_v 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d cause_n of_o faith_n in_o and_o by_o his_o successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d do_v not_o damas_n st._n hierome_n seem_v to_o make_v pope_n damasus_n infallible_a when_o speak_a of_o he_o and_o his_o particular_a sea_n he_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d etc._n etc._n upon_o this_o rock_n i_o know_v the_o church_n which_o can_v 〈◊〉_d fail_v or_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n be_v build_v 92._o do_v not_o st._n austin_n do_v the_o same_o with_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d when_o beside_o their_o own_o suffrage_n which_o be_v but_o of_o a_o particular_a provincial_a council_n they_o require_v nothing_o but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d sentence_n only_o to_o the_o full_a and_o effectual_a condemn_v of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n do_v he_o not_o speak_v also_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n dovat_fw-la when_o he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v that_o very_a rock_n of_o the_o church_n against_o which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v i_o may_v add_v 〈◊〉_d st._n cyprian_n former_o allege_v as_o also_o 93._o st._n leo_n pope_n 〈◊〉_d innocent_n the_o first_o pope_n rat_n gelasius_n st._n gregory_n with_o other_o but_o i_o fear_v it_o will_v be_v answer_v that_o they_o be_v pope_n and_o speak_v partial_o in_o their_o own_o cause_n beside_o have_v hitherto_o whole_o decline_v the_o defence_n of_o that_o assertion_n and_o profess_v that_o it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o protestant_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n infallible_a in_o and_o with_o general_n council_n only_o i_o have_v no_o obligation_n to_o engage_v further_o 52._o in_o that_o business_n nor_o can_v i_o think_v it_o any_o way_n expedient_a to_o make_v the_o entrance_n into_o catholic_a communion_n seem_v narrow_a to_o our_o adversary_n then_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v and_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v maintain_v to_o be_v chap._n 22._o the_o bishop_n vain_a endeavour_n to_o find_v out_o error_n in_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n argument_n 1._o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n err_v not_o in_o define_v the_o priest_n intention_n to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o sacrament_n 2._o why_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n 3._o transubstantiation_n no_o error_n nor_o any_o such_o late_a or_o new_a doctrine_n as_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v without_o show_n of_o proof_n 4._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n no_o error_n but_o the_o allow_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n in_o primitive_a time_n 5._o invocation_n of_o saint_n no_o error_n but_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o father_n 6._o not_o derogatory_n either_o to_o the_o merit_n or_o mediation_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n 7._o adoration_n or_o worship_v of_o image_n as_o allow_v by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o idolatry_n nor_o error_n 8._o optatus_n both_o partial_o and_o impertinent_o allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n 9_o private_a abuse_n in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o matter_n not_o just_o imputable_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o cassander_n qualis_fw-la vir_fw-la 11._o llamas_n misunderstand_v by_o the_o relatour_n 1._o the_o bishop_n here_o and_o in_o the_o follow_v paragraph_n bring_v in_o a_o fresh_a charge_n of_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n commit_v by_o such_o general_n council_n as_o the_o pope_n confirm_v the_o first_o in_o the_o endictement_n be_v that_o of_o the_o priest_n jntention_n which_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n and_o trent_n both_o of_o they_o confirm_v 11._o by_o the_o pope_n define_v to_o be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n of_o a_o sacrament_n which_o the_o bishop_n think_v be_v a_o error_n but_o before_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o he_o forget_v not_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n of_o which_o we_o talk_v so_o much_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o useless_a thing_n why_o i_o pray_v his_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o before_o the_o church_n or_o any_o particular_a man_n can_v make_v use_n of_o it_o that_o be_v be_v settle_v and_o confirm_v in_o the_o truth_n by_o mean_n thereof_o he_o must_v either_o know_v or_o upon_o sure_a ground_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v infallible_a but_o say_v the_o bishop_n this_o can_v only_o be_v believe_v of_o he_o as_o he_o be_v st._n peter_n successor_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n for_o the_o church_n or_o any_o particular_a man_n to_o have_v such_o certainty_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o ground_v a_o infallible_a belief_n why_o because_o the_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o this_o depend_v upon_o his_o be_v true_o in_o order_n true_o a_o bishop_n true_o a_o priest_n true_o baptize_v none_o of_o all_o which_o according_a to_o our_o principle_n can_v
clear_o in_o this_o case_n his_o five_o instance_n be_v that_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v that_o in_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n but_o both_o party_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v no_o error_n in_o the_o roman_a missal_n therefore_o say_v the_o bishop_n according_a to_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v better_o and_o more_o safe_a to_o worship_n god_n by_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n then_o by_o the_o roman_a missal_n which_o he_o be_v sure_a we_o will_v not_o grant_v i_o answer_v first_o all_o catholic_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n in_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n neither_o dare_v the_o relatour_n affirm_v they_o do_v but_o only_o that_o some_o jesuit_n confess_v it_o so_o much_o in_o his_o hear_n second_o though_o they_o do_v that_o be_v though_o all_o catholic_n do_v grant_v there_o be_v no_o positive_a error_n in_o the_o english_a seruice-booke_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o therefore_o the_o english_a lyturgie_n be_v better_a or_o more_o safe_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n than_o our_o missal_n why_o because_o catholic_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o positive_o safe_a or_o consistent_a with_o salvation_n to_o use_v it_o as_o protestant_n do_v that_o be_v out_o of_o heretical_a persuasion_n and_o with_o heretical_a contempt_n of_o the_o roman_a missal_n for_o though_o it_o contain_v no_o positive_a error_n yet_o to_o use_v it_o out_o of_o any_o such_o principle_n be_v certain_o damnable_a sin_n and_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n the_o arian_n creed_n contain_v no_o positive_a error_n against_o faith_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v not_o contain_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o confess_v by_o christian_n and_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o such_o as_o be_v know_v enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v want_v in_o they_o they_o be_v always_o anathematise_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v contain_v positive_a and_o express_a error_n do_v catholic_n grant_v that_o those_o who_o both_o use_v the_o english_a lyturgie_n and_o reject_v the_o roman_a missal_n as_o protestant_n do_v be_v for_o all_o that_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n though_o they_o never_o repent_v and_o do_v sufficient_o know_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o the_o church_n forbid_v the_o use_n of_o it_o the_o argument_n will_v have_v force_n but_o see_v it_o be_v otherwise_o our_o maxim_n stand_v yet_o good_a and_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n to_o worship_n god_n according_a to_o the_o roman_a missal_n rather_o than_o according_a to_o the_o english_a seruice-booke_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v grant_v which_o we_o do_v not_o that_o the_o english_a book_n contain_v no_o positive_a error_n to_o his_o six_o of_o the_o arian_n confess_v christ_n to_o be_v of_o like_a 1._o substance_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o catholic_n confess_v he_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n i_o answer_v the_o catholic_n never_o grant_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o the_o arian_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o that_o confession_n but_o always_o withstand_v and_o condemn_v it_o as_o a_o heretical_a false_a and_o impious_a assertion_n take_v in_o their_o know_a sense_n that_o be_v restrictive_o and_o as_o import_v no_o more_o than_o like_a for_o in_o this_o sense_n that_o maxim_n hold_v good_a nullum_fw-la simile_n est_fw-la idem_fw-la and_o to_o say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v of_o like_a substance_n with_o the_o father_n in_o that_o sense_n be_v plain_o to_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v true_a god_n and_o of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o his_o seven_o ground_v upon_o the_o agreement_n of_o dissent_v party_n in_o the_o metaphorical_a resurrection_n 2._o of_o the_o soul_n from_o sin_n whence_o the_o bishop_n will_v gather_v that_o by_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v safe_a to_o believe_v only_o the_o say_v metaphorical_a resurrection_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o let_v that_o of_o the_o body_n alone_o but_o most_o untrue_o for_o do_v ever_o any_o good_a christian_a allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o any_o that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n if_o not_o how_o be_v this_o instance_n within_o the_o rule_n which_o suppose_v that_o both_o party_n must_v agree_v in_o grant_v salvation_n to_o one_o in_o his_o way_n or_o contest_v opinion_n the_o same_o fallacy_n be_v apparent_a in_o his_o eight_o and_o nine_o for_o .4_o do_v ever_o any_o catholic_a christian_a allow_v salvation_n to_o a_o turk_n or_o a_o jew_n in_o his_o religion_n because_o they_o believe_v one_o god_n or_o to_o a_o nestorian_a heretic_n because_o he_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v true_a man_n what_o gross_a impertinence_n be_v these_o but_o no_o marvel_n for_o it_o be_v too_o apparent_a our_o adversary_n have_v quite_o forget_v the_o rule_n and_o frame_v another_o thing_n of_o it_o a._n cs._n rule_n speak_v precise_o this_o andnomore_o viz._n that_o when_o two_o party_n differ_v in_o point_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v in_o prudence_n safe_a to_o take_v that_o way_n wherein_o both_o party_n grant_v salvation_n to_o be_v obtainable_a or_o to_o contain_v nothing_o in_o it_o opposite_a or_o inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n whereas_o the_o relatour_n present_v it_o in_o a_o other_o dress_n and_o make_v it_o speak_v thus_o viz._n that_o when_o party_n disagree_v as_o abovesayd_a it_o be_v safe_a to_o resolve_v a_o man_n faith_n into_o that_o in_o which_o the_o dissent_v party_n agree_v and_o to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v agree_v in_o which_o be_v far_o from_o truth_n and_o a_o thing_n which_o never_o come_v into_o a._n c._n s_o thought_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o mistake_n it_o be_v evident_a to_o any_o that_o will_v consider_v they_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n instance_n run_v tlius_fw-la all_o the_o relatour_n example_n due_o weigh_v be_v find_v too_o light_a and_o discover_v to_o be_v indeed_o rather_o amusement_n than_o proof_n a._n cs_n proposition_n that_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o religion_n to_o go_v that_o way_n which_o be_v confess_v by_o both_o party_n to_o afford_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n or_o to_o contain_v no_o damnable_a sin_n in_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n a_o firm_a and_o unshake_a truth_n notwithstanding_o all_o our_o adversary_n endeavour_n to_o undermine_v it_o if_o any_o thing_n yet_o be_v want_v to_o the_o due_a justify_n of_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v declare_v in_o the_o follow_a chapter_n at_o present_a the_o bishop_n have_v make_v so_o many_o assault_n in_o vain_a seem_v to_o retire_v and_o put_v himself_o upon_o the_o defensive_a 9_o plead_v he_o be_v not_o out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n though_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a because_o the_o roman_a be_v not_o the_o catholic_a but_o a_o member_n of_o it_o as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o say_v be_v and_o require_v we_o to_o margin_n show_v how_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n can_v be_v in_o different_a respect_n and_o relation_n both_o a_o particular_a and_o also_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o i_o answer_v how_o often_o have_v this_o be_v show_v already_o by_o all_o catholic_a writer_n have_v his_o lordship_n be_v more_o willing_a to_o understand_v 10._o the_o truth_n from_o they_o then_o to_o cavil_n about_o word_n and_o also_o by_o we_o in_o this_o treatise_n namely_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o province_n of_o rome_n only_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n but_o as_o it_o signify_v the_o society_n of_o all_o such_o christian_n as_o profess_v the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o st._n peter_n successor_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n under_o christ_n so_o it_o be_v formal_o and_o proper_o speak_v not_o a_o particular_a but_o the_o very_a catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v all_o either_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a church_n or_o both_o that_o do_v not_o acnowledge_v this_o our_o adversary_n therefore_o may_v flourish_v as_o much_o as_o he_o please_v with_o his_o vain_a and_o feign_a allegory_n of_o a_o elder_a and_o young_a sister_n ibidem_fw-la but_o we_o tell_v his_o follower_n such_o rhetoric_n may_v serve_v to_o palliate_v but_o shall_v never_o justify_v nor_o excuse_v schism_n the_o roman_a church_n will_v be_v find_v in_o the_o day_n of_o account_n to_o have_v be_v not_o a_o elder_a sister_n but_o a_o mother_n and_o such_o a_o mother_n who_o 8._o law_n and_o authority_n be_v not_o so_o light_o to_o have_v be_v forsake_v and_o reject_v by_o any_o of_o her_o petulant_a and_o disobedient_a daughter_n nor_o matter_n it_o much_o whether_o britain_n first_o conversion_n be_v before_o st._n peter_n come_v to_o
to_o say_v he_o be_v scarce_o provide_v he_o give_v a_o hint_n at_o the_o difference_n between_o error_n and_o heresy_n but_o dare_v not_o so_o much_o as_o apply_v the_o distinction_n for_o fear_v he_o shall_v be_v force_v either_o to_o acquit_v our_o leader_n too_o manifest_o or_o otherwise_o pass_v such_o a_o censure_n upon_o they_o as_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o maintain_v but_o the_o wary_a reader_n will_v easy_o discover_v by_o his_o timorousness_n and_o hesitancy_n here_o his_o uncharitable_a temerity_n and_o forwardness_n in_o the_o precedent_a passage_n he_o tell_v we_o likewise_o that_o a_o teach_a heretic_n if_o he_o add_v schism_n to_o his_o heresy_n be_v lose_v very_o good_a we_o grant_v it_o no_o less_o willing_o then_o himself_o but_o wonder_v his_o lordship_n will_v not_o first_o make_v it_o clear_a that_o our_o teacher_n add_v schism_n and_o obstinacy_n to_o their_o error_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o call_v they_o before_o he_o give_v sentence_n upon_o their_o person_n by_o say_v that_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o that_o which_o he_o add_v concern_v st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o follower_n give_v a_o plain_a advantage_n against_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n namely_o to_o prove_v that_o all_o leader_n of_o protestant_a religion_n be_v guilty_a both_o of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n and_o by_o consequence_n liable_a to_o damnation_n except_o they_o repent_v st._n cyprian_n he_o say_v be_v a_o main_a leader_n in_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n yet_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n grant_v he_o safe_a and_o his_o follower_n only_a that_o be_v after_o he_o in_o danger_n of_o damnation_n and_o why_o this_o but_o only_o because_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o refuse_v the_o church_n instruction_n do_v not_o obstinate_o and_o formal_o oppose_v the_o church_n authority_n which_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o define_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n but_o after_o the_o church_n determination_n those_o that_o follow_v st._n cyprian_n error_n and_o mislead_v the_o people_n be_v judge_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o that_o just_o too_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n and_o so_o by_o consequence_n be_v lose_v without_o repentance_n but_o be_v not_o this_o a_o convince_a instance_n against_o luther_n calvin_n and_o all_o other_o ringleader_n of_o the_o protestant_a profession_n do_v it_o not_o evident_o prove_v they_o also_o to_o be_v both_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n do_v not_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n as_o much_o as_o any_o of_o those_o post-nate_a follower_n of_o st._n cyprian_n do_v be_v not_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n to_o what_o these_o protestant_a leader_n teach_v as_o much_o and_o as_o solemn_o define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n it_o be_v evident_a therefore_o if_o st._n cyprian_n follower_n be_v just_o account_v heretic_n and_o in_o danger_n of_o damnation_n for_o not_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n give_v they_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o general_n council_n and_o for_o teach_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o church_n have_v solemn_o define_v and_o declare_v as_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o discourse_n they_o be_v neither_o luther_n nor_o calvin_n nor_o any_o that_o succeed_v they_o in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n can_v be_v just_o acquit_v of_o the_o like_a crime_n if_o you_o answer_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n condemn_v the_o error_n of_o rebaptisation_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n be_v condemn_v only_o by_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n i_o ask_v what_o you_o mean_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o all_o such_o people_n and_o all_o such_o particular_a church_n as_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v all_o fundadamentall_a point_n in_o protestant_a sense_n that_o will_v comprehend_v the_o rebaptiser_n themselves_o or_o those_o follower_n of_o st._n cyprian_n error_n who_o the_o bishop_n here_o confess_v to_o have_v be_v heretic_n for_o doubtless_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v all_o point_n which_o according_a to_o the_o relatour_n principle_n can_v be_v account_v fundamental_a or_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n otherwise_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o have_v err_v in_o a_o point_n fundamental_a therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n do_v not_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o rebaptisation_n and_o to_o say_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o any_o other_o limit_a sense_n make_v it_o in_o effect_n but_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o also_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n doctrine_n no_o less_o fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o define_v unfundamentall_a point_n as_o this_o of_o rebaptisation_n be_v then_o be_v the_o church_n which_o condemn_v protestant_n doctrine_n whatsoever_o church_n that_o be_v beside_o how_o often_o shall_v we_o be_v force_v to_o remind_v our_o adversary_n that_o when_o luther_n first_o begin_v to_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o protestant_a doctrine_n concern_v real_a presence_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a two_o sacrament_n only_o etc_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o general_n belief_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n whereof_o the_o far_o great_a part_n also_o be_v such_o as_o profess_a obedience_n to_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d paragraph_n be_v take_v up_o 37._o with_o personal_a matter_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n what_o a._n c._n what_o doctor_n white_a and_o the_o bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a conference_n with_o mr._n fisher_n say_v in_o which_o kind_n of_o difference_n i_o shall_v not_o interpose_v that_o which_o i_o shall_v observe_v here_o be_v that_o the_o bishop_n formalize_v without_o cause_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o a._n c._n different_a from_o the_o roman_a which_o he_o use_v pag._n 67._o where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o doctor_n white_a express_o grant_v that_o he_o can_v assign_v no_o church_n different_n from_o the_o roman_z which_o in_o all_o age_n hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n the_o relatour_n will_v not_o seem_v to_o understand_v what_o a._n c._n 4._o mean_n by_o a_o church_n different_a from_o the_o roman_a whether_o he_o mean_v different_a in_o place_n or_o different_a in_o doctrine_n whereas_o if_o he_o have_v peruse_v never_o so_o little_a doctor_n whites_n answer_n where_o it_o be_v first_o report_v pag._n 22._o he_o will_v have_v find_v in_o express_a term_n different_a in_o doctrine_n twice_o over_o for_o fail_v beside_o the_o very_a acception_n wherein_o a._n c._n in_o that_o place_n take_v the_o word_n roman_n church_n towitt_n for_o the_o whole_a visible_a catholic_a church_n evince_n that_o he_o can_v not_o mean_v any_o church_n different_a from_o it_o in_o place_n see_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n comprehend_v all_o place_n in_o christendom_n and_o all_o particular_a true_a church_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n nor_o can_v it_o with_o truth_n be_v avouch_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v ever_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o foundation_n in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v see_v all_o or_o most_o of_o those_o primitive_a heresy_n arianisme_n eunomianisme_n nestorianisme_n eutychianisme_n etc_n have_v be_v ancient_o embrace_v and_o profess_v respective_o by_o the_o greek_a patriarch_n and_o their_o church_n at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o neither_o do_v even_o the_o present_a greek_a church_n hold_v and_o teach_v it_o so_o entire_o and_o sound_o as_o it_o ought_v even_o by_o the_o relatour_n own_o 24._o confession_n touch_v their_o error_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n last_o we_o have_v prove_v chap._n 1._o of_o this_o treatise_n that_o the_o greek_n error_n in_o that_o point_n be_v fundamental_a and_o sufficient_a to_o unchurch_n they_o by_o a_o church_n different_a from_o the_o roman_a then_o the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v here_o understand_v without_o make_v any_o scruple_n about_o it_o a_o church_n different_a from_o she_o not_o in_o place_n but_o in_o doctrine_n and_o differ_v also_o not_o in_o point_n fundamental_a only_o which_o be_v a_o other_o scruple_n too_o as_o needless_o add_v but_o in_o point_v not_o fundamental_a also_o in_o protestant_a sense_n that_o be_v a_o church_n differ_v from_o the_o roman_a in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o teach_v or_o in_o any_o of_o those_o point_n which_o protestant_n reject_v and_o for_o which_o they_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o we_o say_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o mr._n fisher_n demand_v to_o doctor_n white_a and_o consequent_o must_v be_v the_o sense_n of_o doctor_n whites_n answer_v and_o concession_n to_o he_o viz._n that_o no_o church_n differ_v in_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n what_o ever_o fundamental_a or_o not-fundamentall_a from_o the_o present_a roman_a can_v be_v assign_v which_o hold_v in_o all_o age_n all_o fundamental_a point_n and_o
de_fw-fr fide_fw-la of_o faith_n because_o some_o council_n or_o other_o have_v define_v it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o breach_n from_o that_o one_o save_v faith_n as_o that_o he_o which_o express_o believe_v it_o not_o nay_o as_o that_o he_o which_o believe_v the_o contrary_a be_v ibidem_fw-la exclude_v from_o salvation_n so_o his_o disobedience_n therenhile_o offer_v no_o violence_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o charity_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o christian_n we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o thing_n be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la that_o some_o council_n or_o other_o indefinite_o speak_v be_v it_o general_a or_o particular_a hash_fw-mi define_v but_o that_o every_o thing_n be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o be_v define_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n and_o for_o this_o how_o contemptuous_o soever_o he_o be_v please_v to_o speak_v of_o it_o because_o some_o council_n or_o other_o have_v define_v it_o we_o challenge_v all_o his_o adherent_n to_o show_v what_o one_o general_n council_n acknowledge_v for_o such_o either_o by_o themselves_o or_o we_o do_v ever_o define_v any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o do_v not_o require_v all_o christian_n to_o hold_v and_o believe_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n after_o it_o be_v so_o define_v as_o likewise_o to_o show_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o christian_n to_o disbeleeve_v what_o such_o a_o general_n council_n have_v define_v without_o make_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o that_o sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n matth._n 18._o 17._o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n yea_o of_o that_o other_o luc._n 10._o 16._o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o why_o shall_v not_o such_o a_o man_n be_v exclude_v from_o salvation_n see_v that_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o doctrine_n the_o decree_n of_o all_o general_n council_n be_v bind_v till_o they_o be_v reverse_v by_o a_o other_o council_n of_o like_a authority_n why_o do_v he_o account_v it_o damnable_a sin_n to_o adhere_v to_o the_o condemn_a error_n of_o st._n cyprian_n after_o it_o be_v condemn_v by_o a_o general_n council_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a disobedience_n in_o that_o particular_a do_v of_o itself_o neither_o offer_v more_o violence_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o the_o charity_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o christian_n than_o disobedience_n in_o point_n determine_v by_o other_o general_n council_n be_v apt_a to_o do_v and_o have_v ever_o do_v as_o experience_n witness_v so_o that_o in_o truth_n to_o suppose_v a_o disobedience_n to_o general_n council_n in_o point_n of_o define_v doctrine_n which_o shall_v offer_v no_o violence_n to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o to_o charity_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v among_o christian_n be_v to_o suppose_v a_o impossibility_n and_o in_o effect_n to_o think_v that_o rebellion_n may_v consist_v with_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n and_o that_o to_o cast_v of_o obedience_n to_o superior_n be_v not_o to_o contemn_v their_o authority_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o there_o be_v a_o latitude_n in_o the_o faith_n as_o ibidem_fw-la the_o bishop_n speak_v that_o be_v all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o all_o person_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o this_o 〈◊〉_d bellarmin_n authority_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n right_o prove_v but_o it_o follow_v not_o from_o hence_o that_o any_o man_n may_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o that_o he_o know_v be_v define_v and_o propose_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o the_o bishop_n and_o all_o protestant_n do_v it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o know_v or_o express_o believe_v many_o thing_n report_v in_o scripture_n as_o for_o example_n that_o judas_n hang_v himself_o that_o st._n paul_n be_v thrice_o beat_v with_o rod_n that_o he_o leave_v his_o cloak_n at_o troas_n etc_n but_o yet_o for_o any_o man_n to_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o these_o know_v they_o to_o be_v testify_v in_o scripture_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o even_o protestant_n themselves_o will_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n and_o without_o repentance_n inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n in_o like_a manner_n though_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o know_v or_o believe_v express_o all_o verity_n define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o bellarmin_n true_o teach_v yet_o it_o may_v be_v and_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a not_o to_o disbeleeve_v or_o doubt_v of_o any_o one_o point_n that_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o define_v as_o for_o our_o adversary_n be_v sure_a that_o our_o peremptory_a establish_n so_o many_o thing_n that_o be_v remote_a deduction_n from_o the_o foundation_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n have_v with_o other_o ibidem_fw-la error_n lose_v the_o peace_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v but_o a_o partial_a and_o groundless_a faney_n which_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n will_v plead_v as_o well_o as_o himself_o when_o they_o be_v put_v to_o it_o and_o may_v with_o as_o much_o right_n be_v there_o not_o more_o disturbance_n and_o tumult_n in_o the_o church_n during_o those_o primitive_a age_n by_o reason_n of_o arianism_n pelagianisme_n manicheisme_n and_o other_o heresy_n that_o then_o rage_v then_o there_o be_v for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n together_o before_o luther_n begin_v in_o which_o time_n nevertheless_o either_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o point_n now_o contest_v by_o protestant_n be_v as_o full_o define_v by_o the_o church_n and_o as_o general_o believe_v by_o christian_n as_o now_o they_o be_v with_o what_o truth_n or_o conscience_n than_o can_v it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o define_n or_o establish_v such_o point_n have_v lose_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n true_a it_o be_v the_o greekish_a church_n have_v oppose_v the_o roman_a for_o a_o long_a time_n but_o what_o do_v that_o help_n protestant_n see_v the_o world_n know_v it_o be_v not_o for_o such_o point_n as_o protestant_n do_v now_o condemn_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o for_o such_o error_n as_o they_o themselves_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v as_o much_o condemn_v in_o the_o greek_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v it_o be_v evident_a the_o greek_a church_n consent_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o all_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o protestant_n and_o this_o general_a peace_n of_o the_o church_n may_v still_o have_v continue_v have_v not_o the_o pride_n arrogancy_n and_o temerity_n of_o protestant_a predicant_o first_o open_v the_o gap_n to_o dissension_n by_o reviue_v and_o set_v on_o foot_n condemn_v heresy_n and_o by_o cooperate_n to_o so_o many_o other_o wicked_a schismatical_a and_o unchristian_a disorder_n under_o pretence_n of_o reformation_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o gospel_n a_o c._n tell_v his_o adversary_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o beget_v a_o confidence_n in_o this_o case_n to_o say_v we_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n believe_v they_o what_o say_v the_o bishop_n to_o this_o he_o confess_v it_o be_v most_o true_a to_o wit_n that_o 2._o which_o a._n c._n tell_v he_o if_o he_o '_o do_v only_a say_v so_o and_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o he_o say_v but_o say_v he_o if_o we_o do_v say_v it_o you_o be_v bind_v in_o charity_n to_o believe_v we_o unless_o you_o can_v prove_v the_o contrary_n for_o i_o know_v no_o other_o proof_n to_o man_n of_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o confession_n of_o it_o and_o subscription_n to_o it_o i_o reply_v the_o bishop_n answer_n fall_v short_a of_o a._n cs._n demand_n for_o who_o can_v doubt_v but_o a._n c._n when_o he_o tell_v the_o bishop_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a in_o this_o case_n to_o say_v we_o believe_v scripture_n etc_o mean_v that_o beside_o verbal_a profession_n and_o give_v it_o under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o do_v believe_v so_o and_o so_o he_o shall_v prove_v it_o by_o solid_a and_o convince_a argument_n that_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o in_o which_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n believe_v they_o for_o otherwise_o he_o can_v neither_o be_v sufficient_o assure_v himself_o nor_o can_v he_o give_v sufficient_a assurance_n there_o of_o to_o other_o just_a reason_n i_o faith_n have_v a._n c._n to_o demand_v this_o of_o the_o bishop_n namely_o that_o he_o shall_v prove_v his_o faith_n to_o be_v agreeable_a to_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n obsignatis_fw-la tabulis_fw-la as_o they_o say_v that_o be_v by_o special_a undeniable_a evidence_n and_o not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a only_a to_o profess_v and_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o
so_o use_v as_o here_o it_o be_v but_o that_o protestant_n as_o well_v as_o we_o must_v be_v suppose_v good_a catholic_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v clear_a enough_o a._n c._n mean_v only_o this_o that_o protestant_n in_o some_o thing_n believe_v the_o same_o truth_n with_o other_o people_n who_o be_v good_a catholic_n which_o be_v very_o true_a but_o far_o from_o imply_v that_o confession_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v infer_v from_o he_o however_o i_o think_v not_o the_o matter_n worth_n stand_v upon_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v a._n c._n intend_a 〈◊〉_d to_o call_v they_o catholic_n and_o if_o unaware_o some_o thing_n slip_v from_o his_o pen_n whereby_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o call_v they_o so_o what_o matter_n be_v it_o see_v it_o be_v incident_a even_o to_o the_o best_a author_n sometime_o to_o let_v fall_v a_o improper_a expression_n 5._o to_o as_o little_a purpose_n be_v it_o for_o he_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o next_o to_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n protestant_n be_v guide_v by_o the_o ibidem_fw-la church_n for_o as_o we_o say_v before_o so_o far_o as_o they_o please_v they_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n and_o where_o they_o chink_n good_a they_o leave_v she_o we_o entreat_v our_o adversanes_n to_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n and_o the_o fallible_a authority_n of_o humane_a deduction_n in_o believe_v matter_n of_o faith_n both_o which_o the_o bishop_n do_v so_o express_o disclaim_v in_o this_o place_n to_o what_o a._n c._n add_v that_o by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n he_o understand_v here_o man_n infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v general_n council_n the_o relatour_n answer_v according_a to_o his_o wont_a dialect_n that_o he_o make_v no_o doubt_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n so_o that_o it_o can_v by_o any_o error_n fall_v away_o total_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n the_o whole_a church_n can_v do_v thus_o sure_o his_o kindness_n be_v great_a and_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v much_o oblige_v to_o he_o for_o allow_v she_o such_o a_o large_a prerogative_n and_o portion_n of_o infallibility_n as_o that_o of_o necessity_n some_o one_o person_n or_o other_o must_v still_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o church_n believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o if_o that_o be_v too_o much_o at_o least_o all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o protestant_a sense_n for_o so_o long_o as_o but_o two_o or_o three_o person_n hold_v all_o such_o point_n it_o will_v be_v true_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o by_o any_o error_n total_o sallen_v away_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n all_o the_o lawful_a pastcur_n of_o the_o church_n may_v in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n err_v every_o man_n of_o they_o and_o fall_v away_o even_o from_o christ_n the_o foundation_n yea_o draw_v all_o their_o people_n to_o hell_n with_o they_o without_o any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o promise_n which_o christ_n make_v to_o his_o church_n if_o but_o two_o or_o three_o poor_a soul_n be_v still_o find_v who_o god_n preserve_v from_o such_o error_n as_o our_o adversary_n call_v fundamental_a all_o be_v well_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n do_v not_o prevail_v over_o christ_n church_n though_o every_o particular_a christian_a save_v only_o some_o few_o in_o a_o age_n perish_v by_o heresy_n the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o cease_v to_o teach_v the_o church_n all_o necessary_a truth_n notwithstanding_o that_o in_o all_o age_n and_o time_n of_o the_o church_n he_o suffer_v such_o a_o universal_a deluge_n of_o all_o damn_v and_o soule-destroying_a error_n as_o this_o to_o overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o christendom_n 6._o this_o be_v the_o infallibility_n our_o adversary_n grant_v the_o whole_a but_o a._n cs._n word_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n assistance_n in_o lawfully-called_n continue_v and_o confirm_v general_n council_n oblige_v the_o bishop_n some_o what_o further_a to_o declare_v himself_o in_o that_o point_n ibidem_fw-la wherein_o though_o we_o sufficient_o know_v his_o mind_n already_o yet_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o hear_v he_o speak_v he_o utter_o deny_v therefore_o and_o that_o twice_o over_o for_o fail_v that_o general_n council_n be_v they_o never_o so_o lawful_o call_v continue_v and_o confirm_v have_v any_o infallible_a assistance_n but_o may_v err_v in_o their_o determination_n of_o faith_n whether_o they_o can_v or_o no_o have_v be_v already_o sufficient_o 20._o handle_v and_o the_o relatours_n assertion_n confute_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o repeat_v what_o have_v be_v say_v all_o that_o i_o shall_v desire_v of_o the_o reader_n here_o be_v that_o from_o this_o and_o the_o former_a passage_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o will_v take_v a_o right_a measure_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o of_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o his_o follower_n in_o this_o main_a point_n concern_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o to_o reflect_v how_o much_o they_o do_v in_o reality_n attribute_v to_o it_o they_o be_v oftentimes_o hear_v indeed_o to_o speak_v fair_a word_n and_o to_o profess_v great_a respect_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o council_n especial_o such_o as_o be_v general_n and_o ecumenical_a pretend_v at_o least_o to_o refuse_v none_o but_o for_o some_o manifest_a defect_n or_o faultiness_n as_o that_o they_o be_v not_o true_o or_o full_o general_n or_o do_v not_o observe_v legal_a and_o warrantable_a proceed_n in_o their_o debate_n etc_n but_o let_v they_o give_v never_o such_o goodly_a word_n let_v they_o counterfeit_a jacob_n voice_n never_o so_o much_o here_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o their_o judgement_n and_o inward_a sense_n whatsoever_o they_o say_v this_o they_o all_o hold_v general_n council_n how_o lawfullysoever_o and_o how_o lawful_o and_o warrantable_o soever_o proceed_v have_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n from_o god_n but_o may_v err_v and_o that_o universal_o too_o for_o so_o he_o mean_v as_o we_o have_v 〈◊〉_d already_o prove_v that_o be_v in_o all_o matter_n and_o point_n whatsoever_o fundamental_a or_o not-fundamentall_a but_o you_o will_v reply_v the_o bishop_n grant_v infallibility_n to_o a_o general_n council_n to_o wit_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la as_o his_o word_n be_v after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o answer_v this_o be_v to_o give_v as_o much_o infallibility_n to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o be_v due_a to_o the_o mean_a society_n or_o company_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v for_o while_o they_o judge_v that_o to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n they_o be_v every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o this_o sense_n infallible_a and_o can_v no_o more_o be_v deceive_v or_o deceive_v other_o in_o that_o particular_a judgement_n than_o a_o general_n council_n or_o then_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v true_a in_o it_o self_n and_o also_o find_v to_o be_v true_a by_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v be_v false_a in_o this_o indeed_o the_o relatour_n be_v just_a as_o liberal_a now_o to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o he_o be_v former_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o 5._o grant_v it_o not_o to_o err_v while_o it_o err_v not_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o vain_o trifle_n in_o the_o whole_a business_n and_o dally_v with_o the_o reader_n by_o obtrude_a upon_o he_o a_o grammatical_a or_o at_o best_o but_o a_o logical_a notion_n or_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n infallible_a in_o stead_n of_o the_o theological_a for_o how_o i_o pray_v or_o in_o what_o sense_n be_v a_o general_n council_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o relatour_n to_o be_v infallible_a even_o the_o post_n facto_fw-la after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o confirm_v by_o the_o church_n acceptance_n certain_o if_o you_o mark_v it_o no_o otherwise_o than_o every_o true_a proposition_n be_v or_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a that_o be_v hipothetical_o and_o upon_o supposition_n only_o for_o sure_o no_o true_a proposition_n quâ_fw-la talis_fw-la or_o so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v suppose_v or_o know_v to_o be_v true_a though_o but_o by_o some_o one_o person_n can_v deceive_v any_o man_n or_o possible_o be_v false_a in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v a_o know_a maxim_n in_o logic_n quicquid_fw-la est_fw-la quando_fw-la est_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la esse_fw-la every_o thing_n that_o be_v have_v a_o hypotheticall_a necessity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o be_v since_o it_o can_v but_o be_v so_o long_o as_o it_o be_v and_o be_v it_o not_o think_v you_o a_o worthy_a prerogative_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v thus_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n do_v not_o the_o bishop_n assign_v a_o very_a worthy_a and_o fit_a mean_n to_o apply_v divine_a revelation_n to_o we_o in_o order_n to_o the_o
well_o to_o the_o verity_n of_o doctrine_n who_o teach_v otherwise_o who_o say_v it_o be_v tie_v to_o place_n and_o 8._o person_n only_o who_o deny_v but_o succession_n of_o the_o same_o and_o by_o consequence_n of_o true_a doctrine_n be_v require_v together_o with_o succession_n of_o person_n this_o memorandum_n therefore_o serve_v we_o only_o for_o a_o occasion_n to_o acknowledge_v 32._o with_o tertullian_n that_o beside_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v personal_a succession_n there_o be_v require_v consanguinitas_fw-la doctrinae_fw-la conformity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o those_o person_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o be_v require_v i_o say_v that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o succeed_a pastor_n teach_v be_v ally_v in_o blood_n and_o of_o kin_n to_o that_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v as_o the_o relatour_n also_o urge_v in_o so_o much_o as_o if_o the_o doctrine_n which_o succeed_a pastor_n teach_v be_v strange_a that_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n the_o succession_n itself_o will_v be_v judge_v alien_a and_o strange_a too_o what_o neereness_n soever_o of_o person_n be_v pretend_v all_o this_o we_o willing_o confess_v with_o tertullian_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n 43._o irenaeus_n likewise_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v to_o obey_v those_o presbyter_n or_o bishop_n who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopriques_n have_v receive_v the_o grace_n or_o gift_n of_o truth_n to_o which_o we_o subscribe_v and_o for_o this_o reason_n maintain_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n will_v want_v one_o necessary_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n though_o she_o can_v show_v a_o continual_a visible_a succession_n of_o person_n in_o her_o hierarchy_n because_o they_o have_v long_o since_o err_v and_o do_v still_o continue_v in_o error_n against_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n as_o it_o have_v be_v define_v in_o general_n council_n as_o for_o protestant_n be_v manifest_a that_o upon_o this_o account_n they_o be_v exclude_v from_o be_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n see_v it_o be_v confess_v it_o by_o protestant_n that_o for_o near_o a_o thousand_o year_n before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n that_o deny_v those_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o protestant_n now_o deny_v and_o account_v damnable_a error_n and_o superstition_n in_o our_o church_n and_o i_o wonder_v how_o any_o rational_a man_n can_v imagine_v that_o in_o so_o long_a a_o tract_n of_o time_n wherein_o the_o pretend_a error_n be_v say_v to_o be_v introduce_v all_o those_o watchman_n 6._o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o be_v vigilant_a over_o the_o church_n and_o not_o to_o hold_v their_o peace_n shall_v be_v so_o dead_a asleep_a as_o not_o to_o take_v the_o least_o notice_n of_o they_o for_o such_o and_o protestant_n alone_o after_o a_o a_o thousand_o year_n so_o much_o awake_v as_o not_o only_o to_o observe_v they_o but_o to_o break_v communion_n upon_o account_n thereof_o 10_o well_o but_o we_o must_v now_o help_v doctor_n stapleton_n out_o of_o the_o briere_n upon_o which_o say_v the_o bishop_n he_o have_v tear_v his_o credit_n the_o ibidem_fw-la relatour_n himself_o acknowledge_v this_o author_n for_o a_o great_a clerk_n but_o will_v have_v 〈◊〉_d believe_v that_o to_o make_v good_a the_o succession_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o be_v force_v to_o contradict_v himself_o why_o because_o he_o first_o affirm_v 1._o that_o sound_a doctrine_n be_v iudivisible_a or_o inseparable_a from_o true_a and_o 〈◊〉_d succession_n and_o present_o after_o tell_v we_o 4._o that_o a_o lawful_a pastor_n may_v become_v a_o wolf_n to_o wit_n by_o teach_v heresy_n and_o false_a doctrine_n which_o if_o it_o may_v happen_v the_o bishop_n conclude_v sound_a doctrine_n and_o lawful_a succession_n be_v separate_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o stapleton_n say_v before_o but_o our_o doctor_n need_v no_o such_o help_n as_o the_o bishop_n imagine_v it_o be_v but_o fair_o and_o right_o understand_v he_o and_o the_o business_n be_v do_v doctor_n stapleton_n when_o he_o teach_v that_o sound_a doctrine_n be_v inseparable_a from_o true_a and_o lawful_a succession_n take_v succession_n collective_o or_o for_o the_o whole_a succession_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o any_o particular_a age_n of_o the_o church_n meaning_n thereby_o that_o it_o can_v never_o happen_v that_o all_o the_o lawful_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o age_n shall_v desert_v sound_a doctrine_n or_o teach_v heresy_n he_o take_v it_o not_o distributive_o for_o any_o particular_a pastor_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n all_o which_o general_o speak_v he_o know_v very_o well_o may_v err_v in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o desert_n sound_a doctrine_n like_a as_o when_o the_o bishop_n himself_o teach_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a he_o mean_v only_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v so_o err_v but_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n may_v now_o what_o contradiction_n be_v there_o betwixt_o these_o two_o proposition_n the_o whole_a succession_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n can_v be_v separate_v from_o sound_a doctrine_n and_o some_o particular_a pastor_n that_o be_v part_n of_o the_o whole_a may_v and_o become_v of_o pastors_n wolf_n true_o just_a as_o much_o as_o there_o be_v betwixt_o these_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v fall_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n but_o every_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n may_v this_o worthy_a doctor_n therefore_o will_v never_o be_v force_v as_o the_o relatour_n think_v and_o will_v fain_o have_v it_o to_o quit_v the_o great_a note_n of_o church-succession_n that_o he_o may_v agree_v with_o the_o father_n but_o he_o will_v invincible_o and_o unanswerable_o maintain_v that_o which_o both_o the_o father_n and_o himself_o mean_v by_o this_o great_a note_n to_o wit_n a_o legitimate_a succession_n a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n which_o hold_v entire_a both_o the_o unity_n and_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o upshot_n of_o all_o his_o doctrine_n touch_v this_o point_n namely_o that_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n be_v know_v by_o this_o that_o there_o be_v in_o she_o a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o lawfully-sent_a pastor_n deliver_v and_o receive_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n one_o from_o a_o other_o continual_o or_o in_o all_o age_n which_o likewise_o they_o be_v always_o to_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v do_v and_o to_o do_v so_o long_o as_o the_o church_n in_o no_o succeed_a determinate_a age_n note_v any_o change_n of_o doctrine_n or_o public_a introduction_n of_o novelty_n to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o any_o of_o they_o nor_o that_o any_o such_o change_n be_v find_v record_v by_o any_o of_o those_o approve_a author_n who_o live_v in_o the_o respective_a age_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o their_o write_n left_a report_n to_o posterity_n of_o all_o such_o public_a occurence_n both_o concern_v religion_n and_o the_o church_n as_o happen_v in_o and_o about_o their_o time_n wherefore_o to_o accuse_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n of_o change_n in_o doctrine_n as_o the_o bishop_n here_o and_o all_o protestant_n do_v without_o allege_v such_o authentic_a proof_n what_o be_v it_o but_o out_o their_o own_o arbitrary_a presumption_n and_o malice_n to_o pass_v a_o uncharitable_a and_o rash_a censure_n upon_o their_o mother_n contrary_a to_o all_o rule_n of_o equity_n truth_n justice_n and_o christian_a piety_n till_o therefore_o such_o proof_n of_o change_n be_v allege_v from_o sufficient_a and_o creditable_a record_n all_o prudent_a and_o impartial_a man_n will_v judge_v the_o accusation_n signify_v not_o much_o save_v only_o that_o the_o church_n be_v unworthy_o and_o shameful_o wrong_v by_o her_o adversary_n which_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n this_o then_o be_v the_o hair_n if_o we_o may_v so_o speak_v in_o which_o the_o ibidem_fw-la strength_n of_o that_o our_o english_a samson_n doctor_n stapleton_n lie_v which_o none_o of_o the_o philisthim_n of_o gath_n or_o ekron_n either_o prelatical_a or_o presbyterian_a adversary_n whatever_o they_o may_v talk_v shall_v be_v able_a to_o cut_v off_o the_o promise_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n so_o defend_v it_o that_o no_o adversary_n power_n shall_v ever_o prevail_v against_o it_o matth._n 16._o 18._o i_o mean_v the_o continual_a uninterrupt_a succession_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o assignable_a beginning_n since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n 11._o those_o pretend_a schim_n which_o the_o bishop_n object_n out_o ibidem_fw-la of_o onuphrius_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o contestation_n which_o have_v sometime_o be_v touch_v election_n to_o the_o papal_a dignity_n whereby_o several_a person_n at_o the_o same_o time_n
observe_v again_o epist._n pag._n 19_o that_o no_o one_o thing_n have_v make_v conscientious_a man_n of_o his_o party_n more_o waver_a in_o their_o mind_n and_o more_o apt_a to_o be_v draw_v beside_o from_o the_o religion_n profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o want_v of_o of_o uniform_a and_o decent_a order_n etc._n etc._n thereupon_o take_v occasion_n to_o enlarge_v himself_o on_o the_o subject_n of_o ceremony_n show_v their_o usefulness_n and_o necessity_n in_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o religion_n wherein_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o contradict_v he_o only_o this_o i_o must_v note_v by_o the_o way_n that_o whereas_o out_o of_o indulgence_n to_o his_o ordinary_a humour_n he_o tax_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o thrust_v in_o many_o that_o be_v unnecessary_a and_o superstitious_a he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o not_o only_o enable_v but_o enjoin_v all_o particular_a bishop_n in_o their_o respective_a diocese_n and_o all_o archbishop_n and_o metropolitan_o in_o their_o respective_a province_n to_o reform_v what_o ever_o they_o may_v find_v amiss_o in_o this_o kind_n and_o this_o his_o crimination_n be_v no_o more_o than_o be_v object_v to_o himself_o by_o his_o own_o people_n we_o shall_v in_o due_a place_n show_v in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v we_o maintain_v that_o out_o of_o rome_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n there_o be_v no_o salvation_n at_o present_v it_o may_v suffice_v to_o say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o shut_v up_o salvation_n in_o such_o a_o narrow_a conclave_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v his_o reader_n believe_v when_o he_o parallel_v we_o with_o the_o donatist_n we_o teach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o attainment_n of_o salvation_n than_o what_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o all_o age_n in_o all_o time_n and_o in_o all_o place_n and_o be_v now_o visible_o teach_v and_o profess_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n viz._n that_o out_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n salvation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v expect_v nor_o do_v we_o shut_v heaven-gate_n as_o the_o relatour_n insinuate_v to_o any_o that_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v provide_v they_o be_v willing_a to_o enter_v and_o go_v that_o way_n which_o christ_n have_v appoint_v but_o it_o be_v the_o bishop_n and_o his_o party_n that_o do_v real_o shut_v heaven-gate_n to_o those_o who_o otherwise_o may_v enter_v even_o while_o they_o pretend_v to_o open_v they_o for_o by_o teach_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n to_o be_v wide_a than_o it_o be_v and_o that_o salvation_n may_v be_v attain_v by_o such_o mean_n and_o in_o such_o way_n as_o according_a to_o god_n ordinary_a providence_n it_o can_v what_o do_v they_o but_o put_v man_n into_o a_o false_a way_n and_o in_o stead_n of_o lead_v they_o in_o that_o straight_a path_n to_o eternal_a happiness_n which_o the_o gospel_n prescribe_v trace_v out_o that_o broad_a way_n to_o they_o which_o lead_v to_o death_n i_o shall_v close_v my_o preface_n with_o a_o advertisement_n to_o such_o as_o be_v apt_a to_o quarrel_v at_o word_n beyond_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o that_o use_v they_o the_o infallible_a which_o in_o treat_v of_o the_o church_n and_o general_n council_n i_o have_v have_v frequent_a occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o be_v cunning_o raise_v by_o our_o adversary_n to_o so_o high_a a_o pitch_n of_o signification_n as_o though_o it_o can_v import_v no_o less_o than_o the_o ascribe_v of_o a_o intrinsical_a unerring_a power_n in_o all_o thing_n to_o those_o we_o account_v infallible_a which_o be_v clear_o to_o pervert_v our_o meaning_n we_o intend_v to_o signify_v no_o more_o when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n or_o general_n council_n be_v infallible_a then_o that_o by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n promise_n they_o have_v never_o err_v nor_o ever_o shall_v in_o definition_n of_o faith_n in_o fine_a good_a reader_n that_o thou_o may_v see_v and_o embrace_v the_o truth_n be_v the_o hearty_a wish_n of_o he_o that_o bid_v thou_o no_o less_o hearty_o farewell_n labyrinthus_n cantuariensis_n or_o dr._n lawed_n labyrinth_n be_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o lordship_n relation_n of_o a_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n etc._n etc._n chap._n i._o state_v the_o conference_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o mr._n fisher_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o a_o person_n of_o honour_n argument_n 1._o the_o introduction_n 2._o the_o bishop_n artifice_n in_o wave_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o question_n 3._o his_o pretend_a solution_n to_o certain_a authority_n refer_v to_o a_o fit_a place_n for_o answer_n 4._o his_o maintain_v the_o greek_n not_o to_o have_v lose_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o they_o be_v a_o true_a church_n 5._o the_o modern_a greek_n in_o error_n not_o the_o ancient_n 6._o why_o filioque_fw-la insert_v into_o the_o nicene_n creed_n 1._o though_o dedalus_n that_o ingenious_a artificer_n may_v possible_o show_v no_o less_o skill_n in_o contrive_v his_o cretan_a labyrinth_n than_o do_v the_o principal_a architect_n employ_v by_o solomon_n in_o build_v that_o magnisicent_a temple_n at_o jerusalem_n yet_o their_o labour_n be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n for_o whereas_o the_o latter_a exercise_v his_o art_n in_o raise_v a_o noble_a elevate_v lightsome_a structure_n the_o former_a dedalus_n use_v all_o his_o inventive_a industry_n in_o frame_v a_o subterraneous_a darksome_a prison_n with_o such_o redouble_a turn_n perplex_v wind_n and_o tortuous_a meander_n that_o who_o ever_o enter_v into_o it_o may_v indeed_o wander_v up_o and_o down_o within_o its_o involve_a and_o recur_v path_n but_o never_o be_v able_a to_o get_v either_o back_n or_o through_o it_o now_o allude_v to_o these_o different_a work_n we_o may_v not_o unfit_o compare_v the_o learned_a labour_n of_o the_o father_n doctor_n and_o worthy_a divine_n of_o god_n church_n to_o this_o stately_a temple_n of_o solomon_n be_v the_o rich_a and_o illustrious_a monument_n of_o their_o piety_n zeal_n and_o erudition_n whereas_o by_o the_o cretan_a labyrinth_n be_v fit_o symbolise_v the_o artificial_a but_o pestiferous_a work_n of_o all_o heretical_a author_n who_o forsake_v the_o ever-visible_a and_o conspicuous_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o know_v consent_n of_o christendom_n induce_v themselves_o and_o follower_n to_o believe_v the_o novel_a fancy_n of_o their_o own_o fanatic_a brain_n these_o man_n labour_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v lightsome_a monument_n that_o they_o be_v rather_o labyrinth_n or_o intricate_a dungeon_n for_o poor_a seduce_v soul_n who_o be_v once_o engage_v in_o the_o perplexity_n of_o their_o entangle_a flexure_n see_v not_o the_o radiant_a light_n of_o god_n church_n some_o few_o only_o except_v who_o of_o his_o great_a mercy_n he_o be_v please_v to_o show_v the_o way_n out_o and_o reduce_v into_o his_o fold_n now_o it_o have_v already_o be_v show_v by_o other_o that_o the_o work_n of_o many_o late_a protestant_a writer_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v of_o the_o aforesaid_a intangle_a nature_n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o by_o god_n help_n but_o to_o evidence_n that_o this_o their_o grand_a author_n book_n i_o be_o now_o about_o to_o answer_v be_v very_o liable_a to_o the_o same_o reproach_n for_o to_o describe_v it_o right_o it_o be_v a_o labyrinth_n most_o artificial_o compose_v with_o as_o many_o abstruse_a turn_n ambiguous_a wind_n and_o intricate_a meander_n as_o that_o of_o dedalus_n and_o therefore_o equal_o inextricable_a but_o a_o more_o sure_a and_o strong_a clew_n than_o ariadne_n the_o line_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n authority_n and_o tradition_n join_v with_o holy_a scripture_n have_v not_o only_o carry_v i_o through_o it_o but_o by_o god_n good_a assistance_n enable_v i_o to_o render_v it_o pervious_a to_o all_o by_o the_o discovery_n and_o directive_n mark_v i_o have_v set_v on_o the_o leave_n that_o compose_v this_o present_a volume_n yet_o before_o i_o descend_v to_o particular_n i_o must_v advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o i_o design_v not_o the_o defence_n either_o of_o mr._n fisher_n or_o any_o other_o author_n further_o than_o they_o deliver_v the_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v that_o i_o undertake_v to_o maintain_v the_o three_o lead_a page_n of_o the_o bishop_n book_n contain_v the_o occasion_n of_o the_o conference_n between_o himself_o and_o mr._n fisher_n viz._n for_o the_o satisfaction_n 2._o of_o a_o honourable_a lady_n who_o have_v hear_v it_o grant_v on_o the_o protestant_a part_n in_o a_o former_a conference_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o continual_a visible_a company_n ever_o since_o christ_n teach_v unchanged_a doctrine_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o find_v it_o seem_v in_o her_o own_o reason_n that_o such_o a_o company_n or_o church_n must_v not_o be_v fallible_a in_o its_o teach_v be_v in_o quest_n of_o a_o continual_a visible_a and_o infallible_a church_n as_o
not_o think_v it_o fit_a for_o unlearned_a person_n to_o judge_v of_o particular_a doctrinal_n but_o to_o depend_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n which_o point_n of_o infallibility_n the_o bishop_n seek_v to_o evade_v say_v that_o neither_o the_o jesuit_n nor_o the_o lady_n herself_o speak_v very_o advise_o if_o she_o say_v she_o desire_v to_o rely_v 3._o upon_o a_o infallible_a church_n because_o a_o infallible_a church_n denote_v a_o particular_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a 2._o here_o already_o you_o may_v observe_v the_o bishop_n fall_v to_o work_v on_o he_o project_v labyrinth_n by_o make_v its_o first_o crook_n which_o be_v apparent_a to_o any_o man_n that_o have_v eye_n even_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o perspective_n for_o though_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o lady_n seek_v not_o any_o one_o particular_a infallible_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o another_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a but_o some_o church_n such_o as_o may_v without_o danger_n of_o error_n direct_v she_o in_o all_o doctrinal_a point_n of_o faith_n call_v it_o a_o or_o the_o infallible_a church_n as_o you_o please_v for_o she_o have_v no_o such_o quirk_n in_o her_o head_n yet_o the_o bishop_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n understand_v she_o sincere_a meaning_n but_o instead_o of_o use_v a_o charitable_a endeavour_n to_o satisfy_v her_o perplex_a conscience_n vain_o pursue_v that_o mere_a quibble_n on_o purpose_n to_o decline_v the_o difficulty_n of_o give_v she_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n in_o his_o own_o principle_n neither_o indeed_o do_v that_o expression_n a_o infallible_a church_n denote_v a_o particular_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n not_o infallible_a but_o positive_o signify_v a_o church_n that_o never_o have_v shall_v or_o can_v err_v in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n without_o connotate_v or_o imply_v any_o other_o church_n that_o may_v err_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v pretend_v that_o the_o particle_n a_o or_o a_o be_v only_o appliable_a to_o particular_n see_v the_o bishop_n himself_o apply_v it_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n for_o omit_v other_o place_n see_v page_n 141._o where_n speak_v of_o the_o whole_a 5_o militant_a church_n he_o say_v and_o if_o she_o err_v in_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n than_o she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o here_o sure_o he_o can_v mean_v a_o particular_a church_n by_o this_o expression_n a_o true_a church_n but_o the_o whole_a catholic_a or_o universal_a church_n unless_o he_o intend_v to_o speak_v nonsense_n viz._n that_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n be_v a_o particular_a church_n and_o what_o learned_a interpreter_n ever_o understand_v those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n ephes._n 5._o 27._o that_o he_o may_v exhibit_v to_o himself_o a_o glorious_a church_n etc._n etc._n of_o any_o other_o save_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o see_v the_o lady_n make_v enquiry_n after_o that_o church_n in_o which_o one_o may_v and_o out_o of_o which_o one_o can_v attain_v salvation_n as_o the_o bishop_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o mr._n fisher_n page_n 3_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o real_o and_o in_o effect_n she_o seek_v no_o other_o save_o the_o universal_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o a._n c._n to_o take_v away_o all_o doubt_n of_o her_o meaning_n express_v pag._n 1_o by_o say_v that_o she_o desire_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o true_a church_n why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o lady_n express_v herself_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v by_o the_o particle_n a_o or_o a_o and_o yet_o not_o speak_v so_o improper_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o mistake_v her_o meaning_n the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v a_o affect_a mistake_n in_o his_o lordship_n as_o any_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v that_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o discern_a faculty_n but_o the_o bishop_n have_v now_o enter_v his_o hand_n and_o willing_a to_o show_v his_o dexterity_n betimes_o immediate_o redouble_v the_o crook_n he_o have_v make_v while_o to_o countenance_v his_o former_a trisle_a with_o the_o lady_n touch_v a_o infallible_a church_n he_o crafty_o attack_n bellarmin_n for_o maintain_v a_o 4._o infallibility_n in_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o hope_v to_o make_v that_o opinion_n pass_v for_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n among_o catholic_n which_o it_o be_v not_o and_o by_o confute_v it_o to_o seem_v to_o have_v overthrow_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n now_o though_o beauties_n opinion_n be_v indeed_o that_o the_o whole_a clergy_n and_o people_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n and_o desert_n the_o pope_n so_o long_o as_o his_o chair_n remain_v in_o that_o city_n yet_o the_o bishop_n know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v not_o restrain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o her_o infallibility_n to_o that_o opinion_n of_o bellarmin_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o a_o catholic_n to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n without_o further_a obligation_n to_o examine_v whether_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a or_o not_o by_o what_o have_v be_v hitherto_o faid_fw-we a_o man_n may_v easy_o perceive_v the_o candour_n of_o the_o bishop_n proceed_v and_o what_o he_o be_v to_o expect_v from_o he_o throughout_o his_o whole_a work_n which_o will_v i_o assure_v you_o for_o the_o great_a part_n be_v find_v to_o correspond_v with_o that_o you_o have_v already_o see_v 3._o from_o the_o four_o page_n to_o the_o twenty_o he_o go_v on_o dispute_v against_o etc._n several_a opinion_n of_o bellarmin_n as_o whether_o the_o pope_n chair_n may_v be_v remove_v from_o rome_n and_o in_o case_n of_o such_o removal_n whether_o that_o particular_a church_n may_v then_o err_v which_o see_v they_o be_v but_o particular_a opinion_n i_o shall_v not_o expostulate_v they_o with_o the_o bishop_n as_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o province_n i_o have_v undertake_v and_o as_o to_o the_o authority_n here_o quote_v by_o bellarmin_n out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n st._n jerom_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n etc._n etc._n in_o proof_n of_o his_o opinion_n touch_v the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n see_v they_o be_v neither_o cite_v by_o the_o cardinal_n to_o prove_v any_o article_n hold_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la among_o catholic_n nor_o impugn_a by_o the_o bishop_n but_o as_o insufficient_a to_o make_v good_a those_o particular_a opinion_n though_o he_o hope_v the_o reader_n will_v make_v neither_o of_o these_o reflection_n i_o can_v hold_v myself_o oblige_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o his_o pretend_a solution_n till_o i_o find_v they_o bring_v to_o evacuate_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n in_o its_o full_a latitude_n as_o catholic_n ever_o mean_v it_o save_v when_o they_o say_v express_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o here_o bellarmin_n do_v however_o i_o intend_v to_o examine_v they_o when_o i_o come_v to_o treat_v the_o question_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n where_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o i_o shall_v clear_o evince_v against_o his_o lordship_n and_o the_o whole_a party_n these_o particular_n follow_v first_o that_o to_o draw_v the_o word_n perfidia_fw-la which_o st._n cyprian_n use_v to_o his_o own_o sense_n the_o bishop_n leave_v out_o two_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o he_o ought_v necessary_o to_o have_v express_v second_o that_o by_o gloss_v almost_o every_o word_n of_o the_o text_n imperfect_o allege_v he_o make_v that_o father_n give_v no_o more_o privilege_n to_o rome_n than_o what_o be_v due_a to_o every_o particular_a church_n yea_o to_o every_o orthodox_n christian_n of_o those_o time_n quite_o contrary_a to_o st._n cyprian_n intent_n three_o how_o he_o press_v st._n cyprian_n not_o be_v tax_v by_o the_o ancient_n for_o hold_v a_o possibility_n of_o the_o pope_n teach_v error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o never_o reflect_v that_o he_o be_v as_o little_o tax_v by_o they_o for_o affix_v possibility_n of_o err_v to_o the_o universal_a and_o immemorial_n tradition_n of_o non-rebaptization_a embrace_v and_o practise_v against_o he_o by_o the_o whole_a church_n four_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o his_o lordship_n answer_v to_o st._n hieromes_n authority_n be_v mere_o nugatory_n make_v he_o advertise_v ruffinus_n that_o the_o apostolical_a faith_n first_o preach_v at_o rome_n can_v not_o in_o itself_o be_v any_o other_o than_o what_o it_o essential_o be_v that_o be_v it_o can_v not_o be_v change_v so_o long_o as_o it_o remain_v unchanged_a five_o that_o he_o trifle_n as_o much_o in_o the_o allegation_n of_o st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n for_o though_o that_o father_n use_v the_o word_n semper_fw-la retinet_fw-la as_o
the_o bishop_n translate_v he_o and_o do_v not_o express_o say_v semper_fw-la retinebit_fw-la it_o ever_o hold_v and_o not_o it_o shall_v ever_o hold_v the_o true_a faith_n speak_v of_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o certain_o in_o this_o place_n the_o word_n retinet_fw-la come_v after_o these_o other_o ab_fw-la antiquis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la habet_fw-la and_o have_v semper_fw-la annex_v to_o it_o must_v in_o all_o reason_n be_v understand_v to_o relate_v to_o the_o several_a difference_n of_o time_n past_a present_a and_o to_o come_v six_o that_o he_o wrongful_o impose_v upon_o bellarmin_n the_o allege_v of_o st._n cyril_n and_o ruffinus_n as_o hold_v his_o opinion_n about_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n whereas_o bellarmin_n have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o st._n cyrils_n name_n in_o that_o whole_a chapter_n nor_o ruffinus_n but_o only_o when_o he_o cite_v st._n hieromes_n apology_n against_o he_o and_o when_o he_o allege_v those_o two_o author_n in_o his_o three_o chapter_n he_o express_v both_o the_o place_n and_o their_o word_n but_o it_o be_v to_o prove_v another_o proposition_n and_o that_o of_o st._n cyril_n be_v a_o quite_o different_a text_n from_o what_o the_o relatour_n thrust_v into_o his_o margin_n thus_o eager_o fight_v he_o by_o moonlight_n with_o his_o own_o shadow_n seven_o that_o his_o lordship_n confound_v two_o question_n that_o be_v distinct_a and_o distinct_o treat_v by_o bellarmin_n viz._n whether_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o proposition_n bellarmin_n defend_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n and_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n with_o this_o whether_o the_o particular_a roman_a church_n that_o be_v the_o roman_a clergy_n and_o people_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n which_o question_n bellarmin_n treat_v in_o the_o 4_o the_o chapter_n last_o that_o the_o text_n of_o matth._n 16._o 18._o tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n etc._n etc._n thou_o be_v peter_n etc._n etc._n can_v in_o the_o grammatical_a and_o proper_a sense_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o abstract_v from_o his_o person_n but_o only_o to_o his_o person_n as_o make_v in_o that_o occasion_n for_o and_o in_o virtue_n of_o that_o confession_n perpetual_o to_o endure_v in_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n the_o rock_n of_o christ_n church_n but_o of_o these_o hereafter_o the_o bishop_n have_v long_o wander_v from_o the_o lady_n question_v concern_v infallibility_n whether_o to_o be_v admit_v in_o any_o church_n or_o not_o at_o length_n in_o the_o 20_o the_o page_n removing_z st._n peter_n chair_n out_o of_o his_o way_n and_o 17._o from_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o disport_v himself_o a_o while_n in_o that_o particular_a city_n or_o diocese_n in_o a_o kind_n of_o raillery_n upon_o its_o infallibility_n his_o lordship_n come_v to_o the_o greek_a church_n on_o occasion_n of_o some_o word_n speak_v by_o a_o friend_n of_o the_o lady_n in_o defence_n of_o that_o church_n i_o believe_v that_o friend_n do_v a_o friendly_a office_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o give_v he_o a_o rise_n for_o a_o new_a dispute_n and_o divert_v the_o lady_n from_o press_v he_o further_o for_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_n to_o her_o query_n 4._o the_o question_n start_v by_o this_o friend_n be_v as_o i_o have_v already_o hint_v about_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n which_o mr._n fisher_n tell_v he_o have_v plain_o make_v a_o change_n and_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o he_o have_v hear_v his_o majesty_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o greek_a church_n have_v err_v against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v lose_v the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o latter_a part_n of_o mr._n fisher_n assertion_n the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o interpret_v as_o a_o disrespect_n in_o he_o towards_o his_o king_n whereas_o in_o truth_n he_o high_o honour_v his_o majesty_n and_o show_v the_o king_n great_a learning_n and_o judgement_n in_o that_o point_n touch_v the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o bishop_n with_o all_o his_o respect_n and_o present_a flattery_n be_v resolve_v to_o contradict_v his_o majesty_n yet_o that_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o do_v it_o but_o in_o part_n he_o introduce_v this_o distinction_n 21._o viz._n that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v lose_v the_o holy_a ghost_n two_o way_n 1._o the_o one_o when_o it_o lose_v such_o special_a assistance_n of_o that_o bless_a spirit_n as_o preserve_v it_o from_o all_o dangerous_a error_n and_o sin_n and_o the_o punishment_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o they_o 2._o the_o other_o be_v when_o it_o lose_v not_o only_o this_o assistance_n but_o all_o assistance_n to_o remain_v any_o long_o a_o true_a church_n now_o the_o bishop_n deny_v the_o greek_a church_n to_o have_v lose_v the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o latter_a acception_n viz._n total_o which_o will_v render_v it_o no_o true_a church_n but_o grant_v it_o to_o have_v lose_v that_o special_a assistance_n specify_v in_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o distinction_n but_o this_o he_o say_v be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v a_o error_n circa_n spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la about_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n than_o a_o error_n contra_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n thus_o he_o mince_v what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o that_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v perhaps_o lose_v the_o ibid_fw-la holy_a ghost_n and_o that_o they_o err_v against_o he_o but_o let_v we_o see_v what_o argument_n his_o lordship_n bring_v in_o proof_n of_o his_o assertion_n that_o the_o greek_a church_n continue_v a_o true_a church_n and_o that_o their_o error_n be_v not_o proper_o against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n here_o the_o bishop_n make_v no_o great_a haste_n but_o breathe_v himself_o a_o while_n do_v very_o prudent_o prepare_v his_o reader_n to_o expect_v no_o great_a matter_n from_o he_o in_o this_o kind_n for_o dilate_v very_o specious_o on_o his_o own_o modesty_n he_o add_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n 23._o the_o weight_n of_o this_o whole_a cause_n shall_v rest_v upon_o one_o particular_a man_n or_o that_o the_o personal_a defect_n of_o any_o man_n shall_v press_v any_o more_o than_o himself_o also_o that_o he_o enter_v not_o upon_o this_o service_n but_o by_o command_n of_o supreme_a authority_n there_o be_v as_o he_o say_v a_o hundred_o able_a than_o himself_o to_o maintain_v the_o protestant_a cause_n this_o his_o acknowledgement_n as_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o blame_v he_o for_o it_o so_o i_o can_v see_v what_o just_a cause_n his_o lordship_n have_v to_o censure_v mr._n fisher_n for_o think_v so_o humble_o of_o himself_o as_o to_o confess_v there_o be_v a_o thousand_o better_a scholar_n than_o he_o to_o maintain_v the_o catholic_n cause_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o bishop_n proof_n i_o must_v in_o the_o first_o place_n entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o lend_v attention_n to_o his_o word_n which_o be_v these_o i_o be_v not_o 24._o so_o peremptory_a viz._n as_o to_o affirm_v the_o greek_n error_n be_v not_o in_o a_o fundamental_a divers_a learned_a man_n and_o some_o of_o your_o own_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o as_o the_o greek_n express_v themselves_o it_o be_v a_o question_n not_o simple_o fundamental_a i_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o error_n of_o deny_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n to_o be_v a_o grievous_a error_n in_o divinity_n after_o this_o he_o add_v as_o a_o theological_a proof_n of_o his_o own_o since_o their_o form_n of_o speech_n be_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n without_o make_v any_o difference_n in_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o person_n i_o dare_v not_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n though_o i_o confess_v they_o a_o erroneous_a church_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v not_o these_o very_a specious_a expression_n i_o be_v not_o so_o peremptory_a divers_a learned_a man_n be_v of_o opinion_n i_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o error_n to_o be_v a_o grievous_a error_n in_o divinity_n i_o dare_v not_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n they_o seem_v to_o agree_v with_o we_o they_o think_v a_o diverse_a thing_n from_o we_o but_o i_o pass_v by_o his_o trifle_n and_o make_v way_n for_o truth_n it_o be_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o now_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n the_o whole_a latin_a church_n have_v decree_v and_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o flat_a heresy_n in_o the_o greek_n and_o they_o decree_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v a_o heresy_n in_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o both_o together_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o grecian_n as_o heretical_a in_o a_o general_a council_n florentino_n how_o then_o bear_v it_o any_o show_n of_o probability_n what_o some_o few_o of_o
quest_n 1._o art_n 1._o ad_fw-la 3_o um_o &_o 4_o they_o his_o word_n be_v these_o ad_fw-la illud_fw-la quod_fw-la objicitur_fw-la de_fw-la damasceno_fw-la dicendum_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o istâ_fw-la parte_fw-la ei_fw-la assentiendum_fw-la sicut_fw-la enim_fw-la intellexi_fw-la ipse_fw-la fuit_fw-la in_o tempore_fw-la quando_fw-la orta_fw-la est_fw-la contentio_fw-la vnde_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la sustinendus_fw-la quia_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la fuit_fw-la graecus_n tamen_fw-la ipse_fw-la cautè_fw-la loquor_fw-la unde_fw-la non_fw-la dicit_fw-la quod_fw-la spiritus_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la a_o filio_fw-la sed_fw-la dicit_fw-la non_fw-fr dicimus_n a_o filio_fw-la quia_fw-la graeci_fw-la non_fw-la confitebantur_fw-la nec_fw-la tamen_fw-la negabant_fw-la sed_fw-la modò_fw-la eorum_fw-la maledicta_fw-la progeny_n addidit_fw-la ad_fw-la paternam_fw-la dementiam_fw-la &_o dicit_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la procedit_fw-la à_fw-la filio_fw-la nisi_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la &_o ideo_fw-la tanquam_fw-la haereticos_fw-la &_o schismaticos_fw-la romana_fw-la eos_fw-la damnat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la to_o that_o say_v he_o which_o be_v object_v from_o damascen_n it_o be_v to_o be_v answer_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o assent_v to_o he_o in_o this_o particular_a for_o as_o i_o understand_v he_o live_v in_o the_o time_n when_o this_o controversy_n be_v spring_v up_o wherefore_o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o maintain_v he_o in_o this_o point_n because_o absolute_o speak_v he_o be_v a_o grecian_a yet_o himself_n speak_v wary_o for_o he_o do_v not_o say_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o from_o the_o son_n but_o he_o say_v we_o say_v not_o from_o the_o son_n for_o the_o grecian_n as_o they_o do_v not_o confess_v so_o neither_o do_v they_o deny_v to_o wit_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n but_o now_o their_o accurse_a offspring_n have_v add_v to_o the_o madness_n of_o their_o forefather_n and_o profess_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v not_o at_o all_o proceed_v from_o the_o son_n otherwise_o then_o temporal_o and_o therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v they_o both_o as_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n but_o let_v we_o add_v a_o word_n or_o two_o more_o in_o particular_a to_o his_o authority_n cite_v durandus_fw-la his_o word_n give_v only_o a_o general_a doctrine_n which_o be_v most_o true_a viz._n that_o difference_n in_o word_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n the_o master_n of_o sentence_n we_o say_v but_o even_o now_o speak_v of_o those_o ancient_a greek_n who_o speak_v moderate_o and_o wary_o in_o this_o point_n bandinus_n be_v cite_v but_o no_o word_n of_o his_o allege_a st._n bonaventure_n be_v quite_o against_o his_o lordship_n for_o in_o that_o very_a place_n which_o he_o cite_v st._n bonaventure_n brand_v the_o greek_n of_o his_o time_n who_o have_v desert_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o note_n of_o ibidem_fw-la heretic_n and_o schismatic_n now_o the_o bishop_n use_v some_o cunning_n in_o not_o give_v notice_n of_o those_o precedent_a word_n and_o thereby_o persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o st._n bonaventure_n by_o not_o answer_v to_o the_o objection_n press_v by_o the_o greek_n viz._n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v without_o that_o article_n a_o patre_fw-la filio_fw-la que_fw-fr procedit_fw-la but_o only_o say_v that_o such_o a_o determination_n be_v opportune_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o danger_n tacit_o grant_v that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v without_o it_o and_o consequent_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o greek_n who_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o time_n be_v capable_a of_o salvation_n even_o in_o that_o separation_n whereas_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a in_o that_o very_a paragraph_n that_o st._n bonaventure_n as_o be_v say_v hold_v they_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n exclude_v they_o from_o salvation_n and_o this_o will_v have_v appear_v have_v not_o st._n bonaventure_n former_a word_n be_v conceal_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o the_o be_v he_o use_v in_o this_o citation_n he_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o according_a to_o st._n bonaventure_n the_o grecian_n opposite_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n notwithstanding_o their_o error_n and_o separation_n be_v capable_a of_o salvation_n even_o suppose_v the_o declaration_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o his_o time_n against_o they_o and_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o allege_v a_o answer_n of_o st._n bonaventure_n to_o a_o objection_n about_o the_o addition_n of_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la to_o the_o creed_n now_o this_o addition_n be_v make_v before_o the_o succeed_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n against_o the_o grecian_n and_o consequent_o see_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n the_o creed_n be_v without_o this_o addition_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v and_o be_v have_v without_o it_o nay_o even_o after_o the_o addition_n be_v make_v till_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o be_v sufficient_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o point_n full_o define_v against_o the_o grecian_n who_o oppose_v it_o it_o be_v not_o happy_o so_o necessary_a but_o some_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o but_o by_o what_o reach_n of_o logic_n will_v the_o bishop_n be_v able_a to_o prove_v this_o consequence_n st._n bonaventure_n tacit_o grant_v that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v without_o that_o article_n before_o it_o be_v add_v and_o decree_v by_o the_o church_n to_o contain_v a_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n ergo_fw-la st._n bonaventure_n hold_v that_o even_o after_o such_o decree_n be_v make_v salvation_n may_v be_v have_v without_o it_o and_o even_o by_o those_o who_o obstinate_o contradict_v the_o truth_n contain_v in_o it_o for_o before_o it_o be_v add_v and_o at_o the_o first_o addition_n before_o the_o say_a declaration_n christian_n may_v be_v excuse_v by_o ignorance_n but_o after_o such_o declaration_n be_v make_v those_o who_o know_v they_o as_o the_o greek_a church_n do_v can_v by_o no_o ignorance_n be_v excuse_v jodocus_n clictoveus_n be_v cite_v to_o small_a purpose_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o quidam_fw-la ex_fw-la graecis_fw-la some_o of_o the_o grecian_n hold_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o sou_n for_o that_o be_v true_a even_o at_o this_o day_n but_o whether_o those_o who_o violent_o oppose_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o patriarch_n bishop_n clergy_n and_o people_n who_o take_v part_n with_o they_o which_o we_o now_o term_v the_o greek_a church_n hold_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n scotus_n be_v of_o as_o little_a force_n as_o clictoveus_n for_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o prove_v from_o this_o author_n as_o he_o undertake_v that_o the_o present_a greek_a church_n err_v not_o fundamental_o and_o to_o prove_v this_o he_o allege_v he_o say_v that_o the_o ancient_a greek_n differ_v rather_o in_o word_n then_o in_o substance_n from_o the_o latin_a church_n which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o touch_v in_o the_o controversy_n between_o they_o for_o all_o of_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o ancient_a grecian_n be_v guilty_a of_o no_o real_a error_n at_o all_o land_n so_o of_o no_o fundamental_a error_n but_o how_o do_v that_o excuse_n the_o present_a greek_n from_o fundamental_a error_n his_o lordship_n shall_v have_v show_v this_o and_o bellarmin_n be_v as_o far_o from_o prove_v the_o present_a greek_a church_n not_o to_o err_v as_o his_o word_n point_n from_o the_o time_n of_o it_o for_o he_o speak_v of_o st._n john_n damascen_n who_o flourish_v six_o hundred_o year_n before_o bellarmin_n be_v bear_v and_o who_o speak_v so_o wary_o and_o moderate_o in_o the_o point_n that_o as_o st._n bonaventure_n observe_v his_o word_n may_v be_v take_v in_o a_o favourable_a sense_n to_o wit_n as_o not_o deny_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n as_o the_o latter_a grecian_n now_o do_v but_o only_o say_v non_fw-la dicimus_fw-la we_o use_v not_o to_o say_v ex_fw-la filio_fw-la but_o rather_o per_fw-la filium_fw-la neque_fw-la affirmando_fw-la nec_fw-la negando_fw-la formalize_v as_o it_o be_v evident_a at_o the_o manner_n of_o expression_n but_o not_o at_o the_o thing_n last_o when_o the_o word_n of_o tolet_n and_o of_o the_o lutheran_n to_o hieremias_n the_o patriarch_n shall_v be_v cite_v they_o shall_v receive_v answer_n only_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o tolet_n hold_v with_o all_o catholic_a doctor_n that_o the_o modern_a grecian_n be_v heretic_n and_o so_o do_v err_v fundamental_o and_o the_o lutheran_n oppose_v hieremias_n who_o deny_v in_o express_a term_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o son_n as_o we_o have_v already_o show_v his_o second_o and_o theological_a argument_n be_v that_o since_o their_o form_n of_o speech_n be_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n by_o the_o son_n and_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n without_o make_v any_o difference_n in_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o person_n they_o
define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a or_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o be_v whether_o all_o those_o truth_n which_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o any_o christian_n as_o define_v by_o the_o church_n for_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v disbelieved_a by_o such_o a_o christian_a without_o mortal_a and_o damnable_a sin_n which_o unrepented_a destroy_v salvation_n now_o point_n may_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n two_o way_n the_o one_o absolute_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v which_o be_v so_o fundamental_o necessary_a in_o itself_o that_o not_o only_o the_o disbelief_n of_o it_o when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n but_o the_o mere_a want_n of_o a_o express_a knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o it_o will_v hinder_v salvation_n and_o those_o be_v such_o point_n without_o the_o express_a belief_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v which_o divine_n call_v necessary_a necessitate_v medij_fw-la other_o of_o this_o kind_n they_o call_v necessary_a necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la which_o all_o man_n be_v command_v to_o seek_v after_o and_o express_o believe_v so_o that_o a_o culpable_a ignorance_n of_o they_o hinder_v salvation_n although_o some_o may_v be_v save_v with_o invincible_a ignorance_n of_o they_o and_o all_o these_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o believe_v either_o necessitate_v medij_fw-la or_o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o they_o contain_v but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la only_o conditional_o that_o be_v by_o all_o such_o to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v as_o define_v by_o the_o church_n which_o necessity_n proceed_v not_o precise_o from_o the_o material_a object_n or_o matter_n contain_v in_o they_o but_o from_o the_o formal_a object_n or_o divine_a authority_n declare_v to_o christian_n by_o the_o church_n definition_n whether_o therefore_o the_o point_n in_o question_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o first_o manner_n or_o no_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o precise_a matter_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v necessary_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o divine_a authority_n or_o formal_a object_n of_o divine_a revelation_n sufficient_o declare_v and_o propound_v to_o we_o they_o will_v be_v point_n fundamental_a that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o we_o have_v show_v fundamental_a must_v here_o be_v take_v 4._o the_o truth_n of_o the_o question_n then_o take_v in_o this_o sense_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o manifest_a that_o his_o lordship_n not_o know_v how_o to_o deny_v it_o with_o any_o show_n of_o probability_n think_v it_o his_o only_a course_n to_o divert_v it_o according_a to_o his_o ordinary_a custom_n by_o turn_v the_o difficulty_n which_o only_o proceed_v upon_o a_o fundamentality_n or_o necessity_n derive_v from_o the_o formal_a object_n that_o be_v from_o the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v that_o point_n to_o the_o material_a object_n that_o be_v to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n contain_v in_o the_o point_n reveal_v which_o be_v a_o plain_a fallacy_n in_o pass_v à_fw-la sensu_fw-la formali_fw-la ad_fw-la materialem_fw-la now_o i_o show_v the_o difficulty_n be_v understand_v as_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v of_o the_o formal_a object_n whereby_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v manifest_v to_o christian_n that_o all_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v fundamental_a that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v to_o be_v so_o define_v by_o this_o argument_n whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o for_o a_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n commit_v a_o sin_n damnable_a and_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n but_o whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v any_o point_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o for_o define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n refuse_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o for_o a_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n ergo_fw-la whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v any_o point_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o for_o define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n commit_v a_o sin_n damnable_a and_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n the_o major_n be_v evident_a for_o to_o refuse_v to_o believe_v god_n revelation_n be_v either_o to_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n or_o to_o doubt_v whether_o he_o speak_v truth_n or_o no._n the_o minor_a i_o prove_v from_o this_o supposition_n for_o though_o his_o lordship_n say_v he_o grant_v it_o not_o yet_o for_o the_o present_a he_o say_v that_o though_o it_o be_v suppose_v he_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n or_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n can_v err_v yet_o this_o can_v down_o with_o he_o that_o all_o point_n even_o so_o define_v be_v fundamental_a that_o be_v as_o we_o have_v prove_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n suppose_v therefore_o that_o the_o church_n and_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v take_v in_o this_o occasion_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n as_o he_o affirm_v they_o be_v say_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o numb_a 3._o pag._n 27._o we_o distinguish_v not_o betwixt_o the_o church_n in_o general_n and_o a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v her_o representative_a and_o admit_v this_o he_o proceed_v in_o his_o argument_n suppose_v then_o that_o the_o church_n in_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v i_o prove_v the_o minor_a thus_o whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v testify_v to_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n by_o a_o authority_n which_o can_v err_v refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n but_o whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v testify_v to_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n by_o a_o authority_n which_o can_v err_v ergo_fw-la whosoever_o refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n refuse_v to_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n the_o major_n be_v evident_a ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la for_o if_o the_o authority_n which_o testify_v it_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n can_v err_v that_o which_o it_o testify_v to_o be_v so_o reveal_v be_v so_o reveal_v the_o minor_a be_v the_o bishop_n supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o church_n in_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v as_o be_v prove_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o this_o i_o hope_v will_v satisfy_v any_o ingenuous_a reader_n that_o the_o forementioned_a proposition_n be_v full_o prove_v take_v fundamental_a for_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o mr._n fisher_n take_v it_o yet_o to_o deal_v free_o with_o the_o bishop_n even_o take_v fundamental_a in_o a_o general_a way_n as_o he_o in_o this_o present_a conference_n mistake_v it_o for_o a_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n it_o be_v also_o manifest_a that_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a by_o reason_n of_o that_o formal_a object_n or_o infallible_a authority_n propound_v they_o though_o not_o always_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o they_o contain_v whoever_o deliberate_o deny_v or_o doubt_n of_o any_o one_o point_n propose_v and_o declare_v as_o a_o divine_a infallible_a truth_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v for_o that_o time_n give_v infallible_a credit_n to_o any_o other_o point_n deliver_v as_o a_o divine_a infallible_a truth_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o church_n for_o whoever_o give_v not_o infallible_a credit_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o one_o point_n can_v give_v infallible_a credit_n to_o it_o in_o any_o other_o because_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o authority_n in_o all_o point_n deferve_v one_o and_o the_o same_o credit_n in_o all_o and_o therefore_o if_o it_o deferve_v not_o infallible_a credit_n in_o any_o one_o it_o deserve_v not_o infallible_a credit_n in_o any_o other_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o he_o that_o believe_v no_o point_n at_o all_o with_o a_o divine_a infallible_a faith_n for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n err_v fundamental_o ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o subsumptum_fw-la be_v evident_a for_o if_o he_o believe_v none_o at_o all_o he_o neither_o believe_v god_n nor_o christ_n nor_o heaven_n nor_o hell_n etc._n etc._n with_o a_o infallible_a divine_a christian_a faith_n and_o thereby_o quite_o destroy_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o religion_n and_o see_v there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n with_o a_o divine_a infallible_a faith_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v reject_v as_o erroneous_a or_o fallible_a for_o who_o can_v believe_v either_o creed_n or_o scripture_n or_o unwritten_a tradition_n but_o upon_o her_o authority_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v disbelieved_a in_o any_o one_o point_n
there_o can_v be_v no_o infallible_a faith_n of_o any_o thing_n where_o i_o desire_v all_o man_n serious_o to_o ponder_v that_o the_o reason_n which_o move_v a_o man_n to_o give_v infallible_a credit_n to_o any_o point_n declare_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o the_o greatness_n or_o smallness_n of_o the_o matter_n nor_o the_o more_o or_o less_o evidence_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n which_o assure_v we_o that_o himself_o and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n will_v always_o be_v with_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v it_o all_o truth_n so_o that_o when_o the_o church_n declare_v any_o thing_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o she_o consider_v only_o as_o a_o company_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n but_o god_n himself_o to_o who_o we_o do_v and_o must_v give_v infallible_a credit_n in_o all_o matter_n whatsoever_o great_a and_o little_a evident_a or_o most_o obscure_a for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o credit_n give_v to_o any_o one_o article_n propose_v as_o a_o divine_a truth_n by_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v whole_o depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n speak_v in_o and_o by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o he_o that_o will_v deliberate_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o any_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n may_v as_o well_o do_v the_o same_o of_o all_o yea_o of_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n because_o if_o you_o take_v away_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v not_o admit_v of_o that_o according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o st._n augustin_n ego_fw-la verò_fw-la evangelio_n fundament_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o ecclesiae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la i_o will_v not_o say_v he_o believe_v the_o gospel_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v i_o thereunto_o so_o that_o he_o who_o obstinate_o deny_v any_o one_o thing_n sufficient_o declare_v to_o he_o by_o the_o church_n can_v have_v no_o supernatural_a and_o infallible_a faith_n at_o all_o but_o opinion_n of_o his_o own_o ground_v upon_o some_o other_o reason_n different_a from_o the_o divine_a revelation_n propose_v and_o apply_v to_o he_o by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o st._n augustin_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la recount_v many_o heresy_n some_o of_o which_o seem_v not_o to_o be_v about_o any_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n yet_o he_o pronounce_v that_o whosoever_o do_v obstinate_o hold_v any_o one_o of_o these_o against_o the_o know_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o catholic_n christian_a moreover_o st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n tell_v we_o that_o nihil_fw-la periculosius_fw-la fide_fw-la his_fw-la haereticis_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o can_v be_v nothing_o more_o perilous_a than_o these_o heretic_n who_o with_o a_o drop_n of_o poison_n do_v infect_v our_o lord_n sincere_a faith_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n say_v matth._n 18._o 17._o if_o he_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n let_v he_o be_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v let_v he_o not_o be_v account_v a_o child_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o consequent_o of_o god_n add_v to_o this_o that_o to_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o any_o thing_n make_v know_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o contradict_v god_n and_o the_o church_n which_o divine_v in_o other_o term_n say_v be_v to_o give_v god_n and_o the_o church_n the_o lie_n and_o to_o oppose_v and_o prefer_v a_o private_a man_n judgement_n and_o will_v before_o and_o against_o the_o judgement_n and_o will_n of_o god_n and_o his_o true_a church_n which_o can_v stand_v with_o supernatural_a faith_n in_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o wherefore_o it_o be_v say_v in_o st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n which_o be_v approve_v in_o the_o nine_o and_o thirty_o article_n of_o the_o pretend_a english_a church_n that_o whosoever_o will_v be_v save_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o he_o hold_v the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o unless_o every_o one_o hold_v whole_a and_o inviolate_a without_o doubt_n he_o shall_v perish_v for_o ever_o neither_o can_v the_o bishop_n reply_n 31._o that_o all_o point_v express_v in_o st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n be_v fundamental_a in_o his_o sense_n that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v for_o to_o omit_v the_o article_n of_o our_o saviour_n descent_n into_o hell_n which_o can_v be_v no_o fundamental_a point_n in_o his_o acception_n for_o christ_n passion_n resurrection_n ascension_n etc._n etc._n may_v consist_v without_o it_o he_o mention_n express_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n which_o his_o lordship_n have_v deny_v to_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n the_o foresay_a distinction_n of_o material_a and_o formal_a object_n satisfy_v his_o num._n 8._o pag._n 31_o 32._o for_o not_o so_o much_o as_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la do_v any_o point_n become_v fundamental_a that_o be_v a_o prime_a principle_n in_o faith_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n attest_v or_o the_o material_a object_n which_o before_o the_o definition_n be_v only_o a_o superstructure_n or_o secondary_a article_n but_o all_o the_o change_n make_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o definition_n be_v in_o the_o attestation_n itself_o which_o induce_v a_o new_a obligation_n of_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o refuse_v to_o hold_v it_o so_o both_o de_fw-fr stroye_v salvation_n and_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o be_v already_o declare_v let_v therefore_o the_o reader_n carry_v along_o with_o he_o this_o distinction_n of_o objectum_fw-la materiale_a &_o formale_a materia_fw-la attestata_fw-la &_o authoritas_fw-la attestantis_fw-la the_o matter_n attest_v and_o the_o authority_n attest_v it_o and_o he_o will_v easy_o both_o discover_v the_o fallacy_n of_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n in_o this_o main_a point_n of_o controversy_n and_o solve_v all_o his_o difficulty_n support_v by_o they_o and_o that_o it_o may_v be_v more_o apparent_o perceive_v how_o inapposite_a his_o reply_n be_v in_o this_o whole_a controversy_n about_o fundamental_o we_o affirm_v that_o all_o thing_n define_v for_o point_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o church_n be_v make_v fundamental_a only_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o infallible_a attestation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o he_o instead_o of_o disprove_v this_o labour_v only_o to_o prove_v that_o such_o as_o be_v not_o fundamental_a before_o the_o definition_n become_v not_o fundamental_a after_o in_o the_o matter_n attest_v which_o we_o hold_v as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v do_v reply_v i_o say_v in_o this_o manner_n he_o proceed_v just_a as_o if_o a._n c._n shall_v assert_v that_o a_o crown_n a_o angel_n and_o a_o piece_n cut_v out_o of_o the_o same_o wedge_n be_v as_o fine_a and_o pure_a gold_n one_o as_o another_o and_o w._n l._n shall_v reply_n and_o labour_n much_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o one_o be_v of_o more_o weight_n than_o the_o other_o which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o question_v or_o as_o if_o a._n c._n shall_v demonstrate_v that_o a_o thread_n a_o gore_v and_o a_o cable_n of_o twenty_o ell_n long_a a_o piece_n be_v all_o three_o of_o the_o same_o length_n and_o w._n l._n shall_v reply_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o the_o same_o thickness_n which_o no_o man_n ever_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v some_o modern_a protestant_n object_n that_o the_o infalliblity_n of_o the_o church_n be_v limit_v to_o fundamental_a point_n only_o and_o not_o to_o superstructure_n so_o that_o they_o may_v reply_v this_o argument_n proceed_v upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n by_o extend_v that_o infallibility_n as_o well_o to_o superstructure_n as_o to_o fundamental_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o by_o fundamental_a point_n be_v mean_v only_o such_o point_n as_o be_v the_o prime_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o precise_a matter_n contain_v in_o they_o from_o which_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v deduce_v and_o have_v necessary_a dependence_n upon_o they_o and_o by_o super_fw-la structure_n only_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v less_o principal_a and_o deducible_a from_o the_o other_o if_o i_o say_v only_o this_o be_v understand_v by_o fundamental_o and_o superstructure_n the_o distinction_n destroy_v itself_o for_o on_o the_o one_o side_n it_o suppose_v that_o those_o superstructure_n be_v point_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v of_o secondary_a or_o less_o principal_a importance_n and_o yet_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n concern_v they_o and_o by_o that_o make_v it_o impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v be_v point_n of_o faith_n this_o i_o evidence_n by_o this_o argument_n ground_v in_o my_o former_a discourse_n every_o point_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v believe_v by_o a_o
infallible_a assent_n but_o if_o the_o church_n be_v not_o infallible_a in_o her_o definition_n of_o superstructure_n no_o superstructure_n can_v be_v believe_v with_o a_o in_o fallible_a assent_n ergo_fw-la if_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o her_o definition_n of_o superstructure_n no_o superstructure_n can_v be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o major_n be_v grant_v both_o by_o his_o lordship_n and_o those_o protestant_n who_o coin_n this_o objection_n the_o minor_a be_v already_o prove_v in_o the_o former_a argument_n for_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o believe_v any_o point_n with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n define_v those_o point_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v fallible_a neither_o can_v he_o avoid_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n by_o reply_v that_o scripture_n believe_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o introduce_v authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o its_o own_o light_n may_v be_v a_o formal_a object_n and_o reason_n of_o a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o such_o superstructure_n as_o be_v express_v in_o it_o though_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o define_v they_o for_o first_o we_o will_v show_v hereafter_o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o any_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o only_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n declare_v it_o infallible_o to_o we_o second_o there_o will_v be_v no_o infallible_a mean_n to_o know_v what_o superstructure_n be_v contain_v sufficient_o in_o scripture_n what_o not_o if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o that_o declaration_n three_o see_v as_o we_o shall_v prove_v hereafter_o many_o superstructure_n be_v not_o express_o and_o some_o not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n how_o can_v we_o believe_v they_o with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n if_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o the_o definition_n of_o they_o and_o this_o shall_v serve_v for_o the_o present_a to_o remove_v this_o objection_n as_o implicatory_a and_o chimerical_a in_o itself_o when_o we_o meet_v with_o it_o hereafter_o it_o shall_v be_v further_o satisfy_v as_o concern_v those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n either_o do_v or_o can_v define_v which_o the_o relatour_n hint_n at_o pag._n 27._o whether_o they_o must_v be_v in_o scripture_n at_o least_o implicit_o or_o whether_o they_o may_v be_v out_o of_o scripture_n though_o not_o so_o entire_o as_o perchance_o he_o will_v infer_v they_o to_o be_v but_o deduce_v from_o thence_o or_o make_v for_o the_o clear_a explication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n concern_v this_o i_o say_v catholic_n divine_v agree_v not_o and_o it_o concern_v not_o our_o present_a purpose_n to_o dispute_v neither_o will_v i_o discourse_v much_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o the_o church_n in_o general_n and_o a_o general_n council_n the_o first_o contain_v the_o head_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n the_o latter_a only_o the_o head_n and_o principal_a member_n thereof_o although_o the_o latter_a represent_v the_o former_a i_o say_v i_o will_v not_o discourse_n much_o about_o this_o difference_n because_o without_o a_o further_a distinction_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v it_o be_v as_o well_o know_v what_o we_o mean_v when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n as_o when_o we_o say_v a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v in_o define_v they_o for_o no_o man_n will_v conceive_v that_o we_o put_v this_o power_n of_o define_v in_o the_o common_a people_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o bring_v all_o thing_n to_o confusion_n but_o we_o place_v it_o in_o the_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n assemble_v together_o when_o they_o may_v write_v in_o capital_a letter_n what_o be_v write_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o we_o read_v in_o holy_a writ_n it_o have_v seem_v good_a unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o act_v 15._o 28._o now_o to_o come_v a_o little_a close_o to_o the_o point_n we_o find_v his_o lordship_n to_o say_v pag._n 28._o that_o although_o he_o shall_v grant_v that_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v yet_o this_o can_v down_o with_o he_o that_o all_o point_n even_o so_o define_v be_v fundamental_a for_o deduction_n be_v not_o prime_a and_o native_a principle_n nor_o be_v superstructure_n foundation_n but_o this_o difficulty_n of_o he_o will_v not_o have_v rise_v have_v he_o consider_v the_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not-fundamental_a which_o catholic_n divine_v admit_v in_o the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o in_o the_o manner_n before_o declare_v we_o grant_v some_o be_v prime_a and_o native_a principle_n other_o deduction_n and_o superstructure_n but_o this_o we_o stand_v to_o that_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a reductiuè_fw-fr that_o be_v points_z whereto_o when_o we_o know_v they_o to_o be_v define_v we_o can_v deny_v our_o assent_n by_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o they_o without_o destroy_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n by_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o the_o church_n whereby_o we_o may_v be_v infallible_o assure_v what_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o christian_n 7._o for_o answer_v to_o the_o rest_n in_o that_o page_n you_o will_v find_v enough_o in_o my_o discourse_n a_o little_a before_o of_o fundamental_o and_o not-fundamentals_a let_v we_o now_o examine_v those_o word_n of_o he_o pag._n 29._o that_o which_o be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o rock_n immovable_a and_o can_v never_o be_v vary_v never_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v fundamental_a after_o the_o church_n have_v define_v it_o it_o be_v fundamental_a before_o the_o definition_n all_o this_o may_v be_v grant_v if_o right_o understand_v for_o whatsoever_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v believe_v before_o though_o not_o express_o wherefore_o implicit_a faith_n of_o all_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v fundamental_a but_o explicite_fw-la faith_n of_o that_o which_o be_v only_o now_o define_v be_v not_o require_v before_o the_o definition_n therefore_o the_o christian_a to_o use_v the_o bishop_n phrase_n have_v whereon_o to_o rest_v as_o not_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v more_o express_o then_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n therefore_o the_o church_n make_v not_o the_o implicit_a faith_n fundamental_a but_o the_o explicite_fw-la faith_n it_o make_v fundamental_a when_o i_o say_v implicit_a i_o mean_v not_o a_o point_n so_o implicit_o believe_v that_o none_o before_o may_v have_v explicite_fw-la belief_n of_o it_o but_o such_o point_n as_o be_v not_o general_o know_v to_o be_v certain_o reveal_v though_o they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o some_o of_o great_a learning_n and_o knowledge_n which_o by_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v authentical_o attest_v to_o have_v be_v reveal_v from_o god_n after_o which_o declaration_n there_o arise_v a_o obligation_n to_o all_o who_o know_v they_o be_v define_v as_o such_o by_o the_o church_n to_o believe_v they_o explicit_o now_o what_o we_o have_v here_o say_v may_v be_v grant_v to_o the_o church_n without_o give_v her_o power_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n 8._o for_o to_o this_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o she_o declare_v those_o which_o be_v so_o before_o in_o themselves_o though_o not_o so_o well_o know_v to_o be_v such_o as_o always_o to_o oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v they_o explicit_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o it_o when_o they_o know_v they_o to_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n by_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o by_o this_o time_n i_o hope_v you_o find_v that_o bellarmin_n speak_v truth_n and_o wrong_v not_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o in_o those_o place_n he_o only_o say_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n give_v no_o strength_n or_o great_a certainty_n to_o the_o revelation_n of_o god_n that_o be_v whole_o impossible_a to_o be_v do_v for_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o be_v the_o revelation_n of_o god_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o but_o withal_o he_o teach_v even_o in_o the_o place_n cite_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n make_v it_o know_v to_o we_o that_o such_o and_o such_o a_o point_n be_v a_o object_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o that_o so_o certain_o that_o she_o can_v err_v in_o it_o which_o be_v all_o we_o either_o say_v or_o need_v to_o say_v for_o though_o the_o church_n make_v the_o divine_a revelation_n no_o certain_a than_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o yet_o she_o make_v we_o more_o certain_a that_o such_o a_o point_n be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n as_o a_o faithful_a and_o honest_a servant_n tell_v one_o that_o his_o master_n be_v a_o man_n of_o great_a and_o entire_a credit_n say_v such_o a_o thing_n give_v no_o strength_n to_o his_o
master_n veracity_n and_o authority_n but_o yet_o it_o give_v assurance_n to_o i_o that_o his_o master_n say_v so_o neither_o believe_v i_o that_o the_o thing_n speak_v be_v moral_o true_a because_o the_o servant_n tell_v i_o his_o master_n say_v so_o but_o because_o his_o master_n say_v it_o who_o i_o know_v to_o be_v a_o man_n of_o that_o credit_n that_o he_o will_v not_o say_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o true_a though_o i_o be_o not_o certain_a that_o his_o master_n say_v it_o save_v only_o because_o the_o servant_n tell_v i_o so_o who_o i_o know_v also_o to_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n 9_o but_o the_o bishop_n difficulty_n about_o point_n fundamental_a when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n definition_n can_v make_v superstructure_n to_o become_v principle_n or_o foundation_n be_v easy_o solve_v according_a to_o my_o former_a distinction_n the_o church_n definition_n can_v make_v a_o superstructure_n to_o become_v a_o foundation_n quoad_fw-la materiam_fw-la or_o rem_fw-la attestatam_fw-la according_a to_o the_o thing_n or_o matter_n attest_v i_o grant_v it_o for_o in_o this_o sense_n neither_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o aposty_n no_o nor_o christ_n definition_n can_v make_v a_o superstructure_n a_o foundation_n for_o what_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o they_o must_v always_o be_v the_o church_n definition_n can_v make_v a_o superstructure_n a_o foundation_n quoad_fw-la formam_fw-la or_o authoritatem_fw-la attestantis_fw-la according_a to_o the_o form_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o person_n attest_v or_o witness_v that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n i_o deny_v it_o for_o such_o a_o testimony_n or_o authentical_a declaration_n make_v it_o both_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o which_o sense_n only_o fundamental_a be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o this_o present_a dispute_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v and_o also_o reductive_o or_o consequent_o belong_v to_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n testify_v to_o reveal_v it_o which_o will_v be_v dissolve_v by_o the_o disbelief_n of_o it_o as_o be_v already_o show_v when_o he_o say_v that_o every_o fundamental_a point_n must_v be_v know_v to_o all_o i_o distinguish_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n every_o fundamental_a point_n according_a to_o the_o material_a object_n must_v be_v know_v to_o all_o i_o grant_v it_o every_o fundamental_a point_n that_o be_v every_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v according_a to_o the_o attestation_n make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o it_o must_v be_v know_v to_o all_o i_o deny_v it_o and_o this_o distinction_n solve_v all_o his_o other_o difficulty_n propound_v in_o this_o page_n 10._o scotus_n cite_v by_o his_o lordship_n num._n 6._o pag._n 30._o deliver_v nothing_o in_o behalf_n of_o his_o party_n but_o affirm_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v already_o assert_v namely_o that_o st._n basil_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n and_o other_o learned_a greek_n differ_v not_o from_o the_o latin_n viz._n st._n hierome_n augustin_n st._n ambrose_n etc._n etc._n but_o only_o in_o manner_n of_o speech_n because_o otherwise_o either_o the_o greek_n or_o the_o latin_n have_v be_v heretic_n yet_o hence_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o scotus_n think_v they_o can_v be_v heretic_n unless_o they_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v be_v reveal_v by_o god_n but_o it_o only_o follow_v that_o if_o they_o know_v this_o as_o those_o learned_a greek_n have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o know_v it_o they_o may_v well_o be_v esteem_v heretic_n before_o any_o special_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n although_o it_o be_v more_o clear_a that_o he_o be_v a_o heretic_n who_o deny_v to_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n after_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n wherefore_o scotus_n do_v well_o add_v that_o however_o it_o be_v before_o yet_o ex_fw-la quo_fw-la etc._n etc._n from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n declare_v it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v of_o faith_n wherefore_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o a_o learned_a man_n who_o oppugnes_fw-la the_o doctrine_n clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n may_v be_v account_v a_o heretic_n before_o he_o be_v as_o such_o condemn_v by_o a_o general_n council_n but_o we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o in_o themsolve_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o so_o obscure_a in_o relation_n especial_o to_o unlearned_a and_o particular_a person_n that_o before_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v not_o heretic_n though_o we_o shall_v either_o doubt_n of_o they_o or_o deny_v they_o because_o as_o yet_o there_o appear_v no_o sufficient_a reason_n that_o can_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o although_o after_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o ought_v as_o well_o to_o believe_v they_o as_o any_o other_o whence_o it_o appear_v likewise_o that_o scotus_n be_v much_o wrong_v by_o his_o lordship_n for_o first_o he_o will_v persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o this_o author_n suppose_v a_o real_a difference_n between_o the_o ancient_a greek_a and_o latin_a father_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n whereas_o scotus_n because_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o of_o they_o can_v be_v esteem_v heretic_n declare_v that_o there_o be_v no_o real_a difference_n in_o this_o point_n between_o they_o which_o the_o bishop_n very_o handsome_o leave_v out_o verisimile_fw-la igitur_fw-la est_fw-la say_v scotus_n quod_fw-la non_fw-la subest_fw-la dictis_fw-la verbis_fw-la contrariis_fw-la contrariorum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la sententia_fw-la discors_fw-la it_o be_v therefore_o likely_a that_o there_o be_v no_o disagree_v opinion_n contain_v in_o the_o contrary_a word_n of_o those_o contrary_a saint_n and_o then_o prove_v by_o a_o very_a probable_a argument_n that_o it_o be_v so_o second_o as_o he_o leave_v out_o the_o say_a word_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o sentence_n so_o to_o induce_v his_o reader_n to_o think_v that_o scotus_n as_o he_o will_v have_v he_o understand_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o belief_n shall_v say_v that_o what_o be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n before_o be_v make_v to_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o church_n definition_n and_o thereby_o infer_v a_o contradiction_n in_o this_o author_n assertion_n he_o add_v word_n and_o father_n they_o upon_o scotus_n in_o another_o part_n of_o the_o sentence_n say_v first_o that_o scotus_n say_v howsoever_o it_o be_v before_o refer_v his_o word_n to_o the_o thing_n controvert_v that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o his_o position_n whether_o the_o point_n in_o question_n be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n or_o fundamental_a before_o the_o church_n definition_n or_o no_o whereas_o scotus_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o thing_n but_o of_o the_o person_n viz._n the_o greek_a and_o latin_a father_n as_o appear_v by_o his_o word_n quicquid_fw-la sit_fw-la de_fw-la eye_n whatsoever_o may_v be_v say_v of_o they_o now_o i_o think_v he_o will_v have_v much_o ado_n to_o find_v any_o dictionary_n or_o grammar_n wherien_n eye_v signify_v it_o this_o do_v he_o make_v scotus_n say_v by_o add_v to_o his_o text_n thus_o yet_o ex_fw-la quo_fw-la from_o the_o time_n that_o the_o catholic_a church_n declare_v it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v as_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n now_o scotus_n have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n much_o less_o of_o fundamental_a which_o he_o impose_v present_o upon_o he_o but_o say_v only_o thus_o exit_fw-la quo_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la declaravit_fw-la hoc_fw-la esse_fw-la tenendum_fw-la etc._n etc._n tenendum_fw-la est_fw-la quòd_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sanctus_n procedat_fw-la ab_fw-la utroque_fw-la since_o the_o church_n have_v so_o declare_v so_o it_o must_v be_v hold_v thus_o he_o wind_v his_o author_n through_o as_o many_o meander_n as_o he_o find_v subservient_fw-fr to_o his_o own_o turn_n now_o to_o clear_v the_o difficulty_n the_o former_a distinction_n be_v here_o also_o to_o be_v use_v that_o that_o which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a in_o itself_o before_o become_v not_o fundamental_a in_o the_o matter_n or_o thing_n attest_v but_o only_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o attestation_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v to_o the_o acceptation_n of_o it_o and_o to_o be_v embrace_v as_o fundamental_a that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o divine_a truth_n and_o therefore_o scotus_n do_v not_o say_v that_o ex_fw-la quo_fw-la after_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n it_o become_v to_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o faith_n which_o it_o be_v not_o before_o but_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_o to_o be_v hold_v or_o believe_v which_o necessity_n be_v not_o before_o by_o this_o doctrine_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o scotus_n his_o discourse_n which_o his_o lordship_n endeavour_v to_o put_v upon_o he_o now_o
nothing_o against_o the_o truth_n practise_v in_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n go_v on_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o st._n augustin_n 33._o speak_v of_o a_o foundation_n of_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n because_o immediate_o before_o he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o question_n move_v to_o st._n cyprian_n whether_o baptism_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o eight_o day_n as_o well_o as_o circumcision_n and_o no_o doubt_n be_v make_v then_o of_o the_o begin_n of_o sin_n and_o that_o out_o of_o this_o thing_n about_o which_o no_o question_n be_v move_v that_o question_n that_o be_v make_v be_v answer_v and_o again_o that_o st._n cyprian_n take_v that_o which_o he_o give_v in_o answer_n from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confirm_v a_o stone_n that_o be_v shake_v but_o all_o this_o prove_v nothing_o against_o we_o but_o for_o we_o because_o st._n cyprian_a may_v answer_v the_o question_n that_o be_v make_v by_o that_o which_o be_v grant_v by_o all_o and_o question_v by_o none_o although_o the_o thing_n grant_v and_o not_o question_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n or_o foundation_n as_o the_o bishop_n call_v it_o may_v be_v give_v in_o answer_n to_o confirm_v a_o stone_n that_o be_v shake_v that_o be_v some_o particular_a matter_n in_o question_n although_o whatsoever_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n may_v be_v grant_v without_o contradict_a catholic_a principle_n to_o be_v some_o way_n or_o other_o enfold_v or_o contain_v in_o scripture_n wherefore_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v foundation_n of_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n although_o many_o time_n they_o be_v so_o involve_v there_o that_o without_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o can_v not_o be_v bind_v express_o to_o believe_v they_o nay_o without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o shall_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n itself_o as_o st._n augustin_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o word_n former_o cite_v ego_fw-la vero_fw-la evangelio_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o st._n augustins_n judgement_n be_v that_o all_o our_o faith_n depend_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o who_o oppose_v himself_o against_o this_o endeavour_v to_o shake_v and_o destroy_v the_o very_a groundwork_n and_o foundation_n of_o all_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n now_o whether_o the_o bishop_n or_o mr._n fisher_n have_v wrong_v the_o text_n of_o st._n augustin_n we_o shall_v present_o see_v for_o first_o the_o bishop_n say_v that_o st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o a_o doctrine_n found_v in_o scripture_n not_o a_o church-definition_n how_o untrue_a this_o be_v viz._n that_o st._n augustin_n speak_v not_o of_o the_o church_n definition_n let_v st._n augustin_n himself_o determine_v in_o the_o very_a place_n cite_v where_o speak_v of_o christ_n profit_v of_o child_n baptise_a he_o use_v these_o word_n hoc_fw-la habet_fw-la authoritas_fw-la matris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la hoc_fw-la fundatus_fw-la veritatis_fw-la obtinet_fw-la canon_n contra_fw-la hoc_fw-la robur_fw-la contra_fw-la hunc_fw-la inexpugnabilem_fw-la murum_fw-la quisquis_fw-la arietat_fw-la ipse_fw-la confringitur_fw-la this_o say_v he_o have_v the_o authority_n of_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n this_o have_v the_o well_o found_v canon_n or_o rule_n of_o truth_n against_o this_o invincible_a rampart_n whoever_o run_v himself_o be_v sure_o to_o be_v break_v in_o piece_n and_o again_o speak_v of_o st._n cyprian_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v show_v quid_fw-la senserit_fw-la de_fw-la baptismo_fw-la parvulorum_fw-la imò_fw-la quiá_fw-la semper_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la sensisse_fw-la monstraverit_fw-la what_o that_o holy_a martyr_n think_v of_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n or_o rather_o what_o he_o demonstrate_v the_o church_n have_v always_o teach_v concern_v it_o and_o many_o such_o like_a place_n be_v in_o this_o very_a sermon_n it_o be_v therefore_o manifest_a that_o st._n augustin_n here_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n definition_n nay_o and_o that_o so_o full_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v in_o another_o place_n that_o the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n his_o word_n be_v these_o tom._n 3._o de_fw-fr genes_n ad_fw-la literam_fw-la lib._n 10._o cap._n 13._o consuetudo_fw-la matris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la in_o baptizandis_fw-la parvulis_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la spernenda_fw-la est_fw-la neque_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la 〈◊〉_d deputanda_fw-la nec_fw-la o_fw-la m_o nino_n credenda_fw-la nisi_fw-la apostolica_fw-la esset_fw-la traditio_fw-la the_o custom_n of_o our_o mother_n the_o church_n to_o baptise_v infant_n be_v by_o no_o mean_n to_o be_v despise_v or_o count_v in_o any_o sort_n superfluous_a nor_o yet_o at_o all_o to_o be_v believe_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n though_o therefore_o st._n cyprian_n in_o those_o few_o line_n which_o st._n augustin_n refer_v to_o do_v not_o express_o mention_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n object_n yet_o a_o man_n will_v think_v st._n augustins_n authority_n shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o in_o those_o very_a word_n st._n cyprian_n show_v what_o be_v the_o sense_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o when_o the_o bishop_n himself_o propose_v any_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v he_o deliver_v a_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o scripture_n though_o himself_o do_v not_o express_o say_v at_o the_o propound_v of_o it_o it_o be_v in_o scripture_n see_v therefore_o st._n augustin_n speak_v here_o of_o a_o point_n which_o he_o say_v be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v if_o it_o be_v not_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n which_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o sole_a scripture_n how_o can_v he_o be_v understand_v to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o he_o may_v one_o way_n or_o other_o draw_v st._n augustin_n to_o speak_v in_o appearance_n for_o he_o he_o give_v a_o most_o false_a translation_n of_o his_o word_n for_o he_o translate_v these_o word_n of_o st._n augustin_n ut_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quatere_fw-la moliatur_fw-la thus_o he_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n itself_o upon_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v ground_v all_o in_o a_o different_a letter_n whereas_o in_o the_o latin_a text_n of_o st._n augustin_n there_o be_v nothing_o that_o answer_v to_o any_o of_o those_o word_n which_o the_o bishop_n thrust_v into_o his_o english_a upon_o which_o or_o whole_a church_n or_o be_v ground_v so_o that_o all_o this_o latter_a part_n be_v mere_o a_o addition_n of_o his_o own_o and_o no_o part_n of_o st._n augustins_n sentence_n but_o such_o fraudulent_a deal_n be_v necessary_a to_o give_v a_o gloss_n to_o his_o interpretation_n for_o he_o will_v make_v st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o a_o foundation_n different_a from_o the_o church_n authority_n no_o wit_n the_o scripture_n whereupon_o say_v he_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v ground_v which_o be_v far_o from_o st._n augustins_n meaning_n for_o by_o fundamentum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la ecclefea_fw-la the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o church_n itself_o or_o her_o authority_n which_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o christianity_n as_o when_o st._n paul_n say_v superadificati_fw-la super_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la &_o prophetarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n he_o mean_v nothing_o else_o but_o that_o we_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n as_o upon_o a_o foundation_n or_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v of_o a_o destroyer_n of_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o a_o nation_n fundamentum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la begum_fw-la quatere_fw-la molitur_fw-la he_o endeavour_v to_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o our_o law_n or_o of_o one_o that_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n fundamentum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la scripturarum_fw-la quatere_fw-la molitur_fw-la he_o labour_v to_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n no_o man_n will_v understand_v he_o to_o mean_v any_o other_o foundation_n than_o what_o the_o law_n and_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v now_o that_o nothing_o but_o this_o can_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o st._n augustin_n be_v evident_a for_o in_o this_o very_a sentence_n he_o allow_v of_o dispute_n hold_v in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o yet_o establish_v by_o the_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n nondum_fw-la plenâ_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la authoritate_fw-la firmatis_fw-la wherefore_o all_o consequence_n and_o coherence_n of_o discourse_n require_v that_o when_o he_o disallow_v of_o those_o dispute_n which_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n he_o must_v mean_v those_o
dispute_n which_o proper_o and_o direct_o question_v matter_n full_o establish_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n his_o lordship_n therefore_o find_v his_o first_o solution_n to_o fail_v he_o recurr_n to_o a_o second_o much_o weak_a than_o the_o first_o for_o grant_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n whereof_o st._n augustin_n speak_v he_o deny_v it_o to_o follow_v thence_o that_o all_o point_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n but_o against_o this_o i_o thus_o argue_v out_o of_o st._n augustin_n all_o those_o point_n the_o disbelief_n whereof_o shake_v the_o foundation_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n but_o all_o the_o point_v establish_v by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v such_o as_o the_o disbelief_n of_o they_o shake_v the_o foundation_n ergo_fw-la all_o point_v establish_v by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n if_o he_o distinguish_v the_o major_n that_o they_o shake_v some_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n but_o not_o every_o foundation_n i_o disprove_v he_o thus_o whoever_o shake_v the_o foundation_n st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o which_o be_v the_o church_n shake_v consequential_o every_o foundation_n of_o our_o religion_n this_o i_o have_v above_o prove_v because_o nothing_o can_v be_v infallible_o believe_v when_o the_o church_n foundation_n be_v shake_v but_o the_o denial_n of_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n shake_v the_o foundation_n st._n augustin_n speak_v of_o that_o be_v the_o church_n as_o the_o bishop_n now_o suppose_v foundation_n to_o be_v take_v ergo_fw-la the_o disbelief_n of_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n shake_v every_o foundation_n of_o religion_n his_o prove_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v found_v which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a in_o faith_n be_v very_o true_a for_o st._n paul_n steeple_n be_v well_o found_v yet_o be_v no_o fundamental_a point_n in_o faith_n but_o as_o little_a to_o the_o present_a purpose_n as_o can_v be_v for_o who_o ever_o asfirm_v that_o all_o thing_n found_v even_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n and_o as_o little_a conclude_v that_o which_o follow_v about_o church_n authority_n for_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n whereof_o only_o we_o now_o treat_v as_o it_o be_v infallible_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v either_o divine_a in_o it_o self_n to_o wit_n as_o inform_v with_o that_o assistance_n or_o so_o necessary_a for_o the_o give_v infallible_a assent_n to_o divine_a revelation_n that_o no_o man_n reject_v it_o can_v give_v a_o infallible_a assent_n to_o any_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n for_o see_v upon_o that_o authority_n only_o we_o be_v infallible_o certify_v that_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v reveal_v from_o god_n if_o in_o any_o thing_n we_o oppugn_v the_o firmness_n of_o that_o authority_n we_o can_v believe_v infallible_o that_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v reveal_v from_o god_n though_o therefore_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o church-definitive_a authority_n be_v not_o simple_o divine_a yet_o be_v it_o so_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o if_o it_o be_v reject_v it_o destroy_v salvation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fundamental_a in_o our_o present_a debate_n chap._n 3._o a_o continuation_n of_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n argument_n 1._o all_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n concern_v doctrine_n infallible_a and_o by_o many_o of_o the_o learned_a hold_v divine_a 2._o one_o text_n of_o st._n augustin_n shameful_o abuse_v three_o several_a way_n 3._o no_o man_n opinion_n confute_v by_o his_o lordship_n bellarmin_n miscit_v 4._o the_o pope_n always_o include_v in_o the_o church_n and_o council_n 5._o a._n c's_o word_n cite_v by_o half_n 6._o how_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v say_v to_o be_v her_o foundation_n 7._o a._n c._n corrupt_a the_o second_o time_n 8._o vincentius_n lirinensis_n falsify_v thrice_o at_o least_o 9_o stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n good_a friend_n notwithstanding_o the_o bishop_n endeavour_n to_o make_v they_o jar_v in_o the_o first_o place_n we_o grant_v what_o be_v here_o set_v down_o viz._n that_o thing_n may_v be_v found_v upon_o humane_a authority_n and_o be_v very_o certain_a yet_o not_o 34._o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n for_o we_o say_v nothing_o that_o have_v any_o shadow_n of_o contradict_v this_o but_o our_o assertion_n be_v that_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o to_o be_v oppose_v which_o be_v make_v firm_a by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o this_o be_v according_a to_o st._n augustin_n to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n cit_fw-la therefore_o all_o thing_n make_v firm_a by_o the_o full_a authority_n definition_n declaration_n or_o determination_n use_v what_o term_n you_o please_v of_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a to_o wit_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o god_n revelation_n contain_v in_o they_o as_o we_o have_v often_o say_v 1._o now_o concern_v what_o be_v add_v that_o full_a church-authority_n when_o ibidem_fw-la it_o be_v at_o full_a sea_n be_v not_o simple_o divine_a i_o will_v not_o dispute_v with_o his_o lordship_n whether_o it_o be_v or_o no_o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o such_o authority_n be_v infallible_a for_o if_o it_o be_v infallible_a it_o can_v propose_v to_o we_o any_o thing_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n but_o what_o be_v so_o reveal_v so_o that_o to_o dispute_v against_o this_o authority_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o take_v away_o all_o authority_n from_o god_n revelation_n we_o have_v no_o other_o absolute_a certainty_n that_o this_o or_o that_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n but_o only_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n propose_v or_o attest_v it_o unto_o we_o as_o reveal_v whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o to_o doubt_v dispute_v against_o or_o deny_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o doubt_v dispute_v against_o and_o deny_v that_o which_o be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n this_o discourse_n may_v be_v grant_v i_o say_v and_o yet_o the_o church_n be_v deny_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n notwithstanding_o that_o infallible_a and_o divine_a seem_v to_o many_o great_a divine_n to_o be_v term_n convertible_a and_o stapleton_n who_o the_o bishop_n cite_v in_o the_o margin_n be_v far_o from_o deny_v it_o as_o will_v have_v better_o appear_v if_o his_o word_n have_v be_v fair_o cite_v for_o i_o find_v he_o thus_o to_o write_v si_fw-mi quaeratur_fw-la quare_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la est_fw-la veritatis_fw-la tam_fw-la certa_fw-la testis_fw-la respondemus_fw-la 1._o quia_fw-la deus_fw-la per_fw-la illam_fw-la loquor_fw-la if_o it_o be_v ask_v why_o the_o church_n be_v so_o certain_a a_o witness_n of_o truth_n we_o answer_v because_o god_n speak_v by_o she_o thus_o he_o now_o if_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n certain_o she_o be_v of_o divine_a authority_n the_o same_o doctrine_n we_o find_v elsewhere_o teach_v by_o he_o deum_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la loqui_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la solo_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la 1230._o testimonio_fw-la sed_fw-la ex_fw-la ipsis_fw-la maximè_fw-la scripture_n &_o fidei_fw-la symbolo_fw-la ex_fw-la communi_fw-la omnium_fw-la christianorum_fw-la conceptione_n certò_fw-la constat_fw-la that_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n be_v most_o certain_a not_o only_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o the_o agree_v and_o the_o common_a persuasion_n of_o christian_n the_o bishop_n indeed_o grant_v thus_o much_o to_o the_o church_n that_o no_o err_a ibidem_fw-la disputant_n may_v be_v endure_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n which_o the_o church_n in_o general_a council_n lay_v yet_o he_o add_v that_o plain_a scripture_n with_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n must_v have_v room_n where_o a_o wrangle_a and_o err_a disputant_n may_v not_o be_v allow_v it_o must_v have_v room_n that_o be_v must_v be_v allow_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n which_o the_o church_n in_o general_a council_n lay_v for_o that_o be_v the_o necessary_a sense_n of_o his_o word_n a_o assertion_n true_o worthy_a of_o a_o protestant_a primate_n but_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o insist_v upon_o the_o manifold_a inconvenience_n of_o it_o i_o only_o tell_v his_o lordship_n at_o present_a that_o it_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o suppose_n what_o never_o be_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v prove_v viz._n that_o there_o can_v be_v plain_a scripture_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n bring_v against_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n we_o deny_v that_o any_o such_o case_n can_v happen_v or_o that_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n can_v ever_o be_v so_o ill_o found_v 2._o here_o therefore_o if_o we_o observe_v it_o the_o
bishop_n frame_v a_o notable_a turn_v in_o his_o labyrinth_n wind_v in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n augustin_n quite_o contrary_a to_o st._n augustins_n meaning_n to_o make_v they_o speak_v for_o himself_o for_o have_v affirm_v in_o his_o own_o text_n as_o we_o hear_v but_o now_o that_o plain_a scripture_n with_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n must_v have_v room_n where_o a_o wrangle_a disputant_n may_v not_o be_v allow_v just_a over_o against_o these_o word_n in_o his_o own_o margin_n at_o litera_fw-la f._n he_o put_v these_o latin_a word_n of_o st._n augustin_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la venire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o catholicâ_fw-la teneor_fw-la in_o english_a thus_o which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v so_o clear_a that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n of_o it_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o those_o thing_n by_o which_o i_o be_o hold_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o by_o cite_v these_o word_n and_o no_o more_o but_o leave_v out_o those_o immediate_o precedent_n he_o leave_v it_o also_o doubtful_a to_o what_o the_o word_n quae_fw-la which_o in_o st._n augustins_n text_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v but_o yet_o by_o put_v plain_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n in_o his_o own_o text_n right_o over_o against_o it_o he_o suppose_v doubtless_o his_o reader_n will_v not_o judge_v that_o quae_fw-la can_v be_v refer_v to_o any_o thing_n else_o save_o scripture_n and_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o in_o his_o text_n and_o consequent_o will_v conclude_v that_o st._n augustin_n and_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n viz._n that_o plain_a scripture_n evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n whereas_o st._n augustin_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v have_v nothing_o at_o all_o either_o of_o plain_a scripture_n or_o evident_a sense_n or_o a_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n but_o address_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o manichaean_o he_o write_v the_o we_o apud_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la ubi_fw-la nihil_fw-la horum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la i_o invitet_fw-la ac_fw-la teneat_fw-la sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la and_o then_o follow_v the_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o dubium_fw-la venire_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o with_o you_o say_v st._n augustin_n to_o the_o abovesaid_a heretic_n who_o have_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o may_v invite_v and_o hold_v i_o only_o a_o promise_n of_o truth_n make_v a_o noise_n which_o truth_n if_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a as_o it_o can_v be_v call_v in_o doubt_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v plain_a quae_fw-la which_o be_v relative_a only_o to_o truth_n and_o not_o to_o scripture_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o nay_o it_o be_v relative_n only_o to_o that_o truth_n in_o this_o place_n which_o the_o manichee_n brag_v of_o and_o promise_v which_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v plain_a scripture_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o that_o epistle_n of_o manichaeus_n entitle_v fundamentum_fw-la which_o st._n augustin_n at_o that_o present_a confute_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o follow_a word_n neither_o indeed_o can_v st._n augustin_n be_v understand_v to_o speak_v of_o plain_a scripture_n in_o this_o place_n as_o though_o that_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o a_o general_n council_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o possible_a case_n for_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o of_o general_a council_n to_o be_v contrary_a to_o plain_a scripture_n understand_v by_o plain_a scripture_n scripture_n true_o sense_v and_o interpret_v for_o he_o dispute_v ex_fw-la professo_fw-la against_o that_o supposition_n or_o persuasion_n and_o prove_v that_o no_o clear_a place_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v produce_v against_o the_o common_a receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n from_o this_o grand_a inconvenience_n necessary_o follow_v upon_o it_o viz._n that_o if_o such_o a_o thing_n can_v happen_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n or_o the_o gospel_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v rational_o and_o infallible_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o 4._o not_o the_o scripture_n because_o he_o receive_v they_o only_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o the_o church_n who_o authority_n be_v infringe_v by_o the_o plain_a scripture_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v bring_v against_o she_o though_o therefore_o st._n augustin_n have_v say_v in_o express_a term_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a he_o do_v not_o that_o clear_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v name_v before_o yet_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o suppose_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o suppose_v that_o evident_a scripture_n can_v be_v contrary_a to_o the_o church_n receive_v doctrine_n that_o he_o profess_o teach_v and_o prove_v the_o contrary_a and_o use_v the_o allege_a word_n quae_fw-la quidem_fw-la si_fw-la tam_fw-la manifesta_fw-la monstratur_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_o ex_fw-la suppositione_n impossibili_fw-la in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o st._n paul_n speak_v gal._n 1._o si_fw-mi angelus_n de_fw-la caelum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n teach_v otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v teach_v you_o let_v he_o be_v accurse_v saint_n paul_n well_o know_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n yet_o so_o he_o speak_v and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v in_o answer_n to_o the_o evident_a reason_n or_o full_a demonstrative_a argument_n which_o the_o bishop_n talk_v of_o for_o neither_o can_v that_o true_o and_o proper_o speak_v be_v any_o more_o bring_v against_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n then_o plain_a scripture_n the_o relatours_n supposition_n than_o have_v no_o more_o ground_n in_o st._n augustin_n then_o if_o one_o shall_v prove_v that_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n can_v preach_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o st._n paul_n say_v though_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n shall_v denounce_v unto_o you_o otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v now_o if_o the_o church_n may_v be_v a_o err_a definer_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v why_o a_o err_a disputer_n may_v not_o oppugn_v it_o so_o long_o at_o least_o as_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o see_v his_o error_n that_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v he_o err_v not_o and_o that_o the_o church_n err_v in_o define_v against_o he_o as_o those_o heretic_n be_v persuade_v against_o who_o st._n augustin_n dispute_v in_o this_o place_n his_o second_o wind_v be_v that_o he_o labour_v to_o prove_v from_o the_o forecited_n word_n of_o st._n augustin_n that_o plain_a scripture_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o may_v convince_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n if_o it_o be_v ill_o found_v now_o st._n augustin_n speak_v as_o little_a of_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a according_a to_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v in_o this_o sentence_n as_o he_o do_v of_o scripture_n for_o by_o those_o word_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o catholica_fw-la teneor_fw-la there_o be_v not_o once_o name_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a or_o any_o comparison_n or_o contrariety_n mention_v betwixt_o they_o for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o st._n augustin_n may_v reject_v some_o of_o the_o church_n definition_n which_o by_o plain_a scripture_n he_o find_v to_o be_v erroneous_a in_o matter_n of_o small_a moment_n and_o yet_o remain_v still_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n submit_v to_o she_o in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n but_o the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o st._n augustin_n be_v to_o forsake_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o become_v a_o profess_a enemy_n of_o she_o as_o he_o once_o have_v be_v in_o adhere_v to_o manichaeus_n his_o doctrine_n if_o plain_a and_o undeniable_a truth_n shall_v be_v bring_v against_o the_o church_n and_o for_o manichaeus_n so_o that_o the_o truth_n mention_v by_o he_o in_o this_o place_n be_v to_o have_v be_v so_o fundamental_a that_o it_o have_v be_v able_a utter_o to_o overthrow_v the_o church_n and_o establish_v manichaeisme_n if_o any_o such_o truth_n can_v have_v be_v undoubted_o demonstrate_v if_o therefore_o this_o text_n can_v prove_v any_o thing_n it_o must_v prove_v that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n can_v err_v fundamental_o and_o so_o become_v no_o church_n which_o be_v clear_o against_o his_o lordship_n
pag._n 65._o but_o why_o join_v he_o a_o wrangle_n to_o a_o err_a disputer_n be_v these_o think_v you_o synonyma's_n i_o esteem_v his_o lordship_n a_o err_a disputer_n yet_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v i_o uncivil_a if_o i_o shall_v call_v he_o a_o wrangle_a disputer_n if_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o signification_n why_o have_v he_o add_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o st._n augustins_n word_n the_o word_n wrangle_v see_v in_o the_o sentence_n here_o debate_v there_o be_v neither_o wrangler_n not_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o oh_o i_o see_v now_o it_o be_v do_v to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o such_o a_o disputer_n as_o proceed_v solid_o and_o demonstrative_o against_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o they_o be_v ill_o found_v but_o where_o find_v he_o any_o such_o disputer_n in_o st._n augustins_n word_n upon_o who_o authority_n he_o ground_n his_o position_n see_v that_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a doctor_n be_v so_o far_o from_o judge_v that_o any_o one_o can_v proceed_v solid_o and_o demonstrative_o against_o the_o definition_n and_o tenet_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o occumenicall_a council_n that_o he_o judge_v he_o a_o mad_a man_n who_o dispute_v against_o any_o 153._o thing_n quod_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la senti_fw-la which_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o they_o have_v heart_n not_o only_o of_o stone_n but_o even_o of_o devil_n who_o resist_v so_o great_a a_o manifestation_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v make_v by_o a_o ecumenical_a council_n for_o of_o that_o he_o speak_v 3._o after_o this_o the_o bishop_n make_v mention_n of_o one_o who_o shall_v say_v that_o thing_n be_v fundamentul_n in_o faith_n two_o way_n one_o in_o the_o matter_n such_o as_o be_v all_o thing_n in_o themselves_o the_o other_o in_o the_o manner_n such_o as_o be_v all_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n have_v define_v and_o declare_v to_o be_v of_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o set_v down_o who_o it_o be_v that_o speak_v thus_o but_o whoever_o he_o be_v i_o be_o not_o bind_v to_o defend_v he_o neither_o be_v his_o speech_n so_o proper_a he_o may_v have_v say_v some_o thing_n like_o it_o and_o have_v hit_v the_o mark_n viz._n that_o thing_n be_v fundamental_a in_o faith_n two_o way_n one_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o material_a object_n such_o as_o be_v the_o prime_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v express_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o the_o other_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n such_o as_o be_v all_o thing_n that_o the_o church_n have_v define_v to_o be_v of_o faith_n because_o he_o that_o deny_v his_o assent_n to_o any_o one_o of_o these_o when_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v do_v in_o effect_n deny_v his_o assent_n to_o the_o authority_n and_o word_n of_o god_n declare_v to_o he_o by_o the_o church_n and_o this_o be_v to_o take_v away_o or_o deny_v the_o very_a formal_a object_n of_o divine_a supernatural_a faith_n by_o consequence_n it_o destroy_v the_o foundation_n of_o all_o such_o faith_n in_o any_o other_o point_n whatsoever_o wherefore_o let_v any_o man_n with_o the_o bishop_n view_v as_o long_o as_o he_o please_v 35._o the_o mortar_n wherewith_o this_o foundation_n be_v lay_v and_o if_o he_o consider_v it_o right_o he_o will_v find_v it_o well_o temper_a our_o assertion_n be_v that_o all_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a because_o according_a to_o st._n augustin_n to_o dispute_v against_o any_o thing_n settle_v by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o such_o be_v all_o thing_n define_v by_o she_o be_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n hence_o the_o relator_n will_v infer_v we_o intend_v to_o maintain_v that_o the_o point_n there_o speak_v of_o the_o remission_n of_o original_a sin_n in_o the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n be_v define_v when_o st._n augustin_n write_v this_o by_o full_a sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n but_o i_o deny_v that_o from_o urge_v that_o place_n of_o st._n augustin_n we_o can_v be_v conclude_v to_o have_v any_o such_o meaning_n for_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n we_o mean_v and_o not_o unproper_o the_o church_n general_o practise_v this_o doctrine_n and_o define_v it_o in_o a_o national_a council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o this_o be_v plena_fw-la authoritas_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la though_o not_o plenissima_fw-la full_a though_o not_o the_o full_a and_o to_o dispute_v against_o what_o be_v so_o practise_v and_o define_v be_v in_o st._n augustins_n sense_n to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n if_o not_o whole_o to_o destroy_v it_o wherefore_o although_o one_o grant_v what_o bellarmin_n say_v that_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v never_o condemn_v in_o a_o ecumenical_a 5._o council_n but_o only_o by_o a_o national_a yet_o doubtless_o whoever_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o revive_v that_o heresy_n will_v be_v just_o condemn_v without_o call_v a_o general_n council_n as_o one_o that_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o do_v shake_v its_o foundation_n but_o the_o bishop_n say_v bellarmin_n be_v deceive_v in_o this_o business_n and_o that_o the_o pelagian_a ibidem_fw-la heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o first_o ephesine_n council_n which_o be_v ecumenical_a i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o bellarmin_n who_o write_v so_o much_o of_o controversy_n shall_v not_o have_v read_v that_o council_n nor_o can_v there_o be_v any_o suspicion_n of_o his_o conceal_v the_o matter_n have_v he_o find_v it_o there_o because_o it_o will_v make_v nothing_o against_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o rather_o for_o it_o however_o till_o the_o council_n word_n be_v bring_v i_o desire_v to_o be_v pardon_v if_o i_o suspend_v my_o assent_n to_o what_o the_o bishop_n say_v true_o i_o have_v myself_o view_v that_o council_n upon_o this_o occasion_n but_o can_v find_v it_o there_o i_o fear_v therefore_o his_o lordship_n have_v be_v misinform_v but_o suppose_v all_o be_v there_o which_o he_o pretend_v yet_o will_v it_o conclude_v nothing_o against_o bellarmin_n who_o only_o say_v that_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v never_o condemn_v in_o any_o general_n council_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o disprove_v he_o show_v that_o some_o who_o be_v infect_v both_o with_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o nestorianisme_n also_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o ephesine_fw-la council_n but_o how_o do_v this_o contradict_v bellarmin_n certain_a pelagian_n be_v indeed_o condemn_v in_o the_o ephesine_fw-la council_n but_o it_o be_v not_o for_o pelagianisme_n but_o nestorianisme_n that_o they_o be_v condemn_v have_v they_o be_v condemn_v for_o pelagianisme_n his_o lordship_n have_v hit_v the_o mark_n but_o now_o he_o shoot_v wide_a he_o shall_v have_v observe_v that_o bellarmin_n deny_v only_o the_o condemnation_n of_o the_o heresy_n and_o not_o of_o the_o person_n for_o hold_v another_o heresy_n whole_o distinct_a from_o that_o of_o pelagianisme_n 4._o as_o for_o st._n augustins_n not_o mention_v the_o pope_n when_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o place_n before_o cite_v of_o the_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o bishop_n term_n a_o inexpiable_a omisson_n if_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o 36._o pope_n authority_n be_v true_a it_o be_v easy_a to_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o any_o special_a mention_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n because_o his_o authority_n be_v always_o chief_o suppose_v as_o be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n his_o lordship_n follower_n may_v as_o well_o quarrel_n with_o i_o because_o i_o many_o time_n speak_v of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n without_o name_v the_o pope_n though_o i_o do_v ever_o both_o with_o that_o great_a doctor_n and_o all_o other_o catholic_n acknowledge_v and_o understand_v the_o pope_n authority_n comprise_v in_o that_o of_o the_o church_n when_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n find_v in_o ancient_a lawyer_n and_o historian_n that_o such_o and_o such_o thing_n be_v decree_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o the_o king_n by_o who_o authority_n and_o consent_n they_o be_v decree_v will_v he_o not_o think_v you_o condemn_v those_o author_n also_o of_o a_o inexpiable_a omission_n and_o thence_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n in_o those_o day_n have_v not_o the_o prime_a authority_n in_o parliament_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v to_o be_v decree_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v not_o eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la understand_v to_o be_v do_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n 5._o we_o grant_v what_o be_v urge_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n in_o nature_n and_o religion_n 14_o too_o to_o be_v firm_a and_o another_o to_o be_v fundamental_a for_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v fundamental_a be_v firm_a but_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v firm_a be_v not_o fundamental_a wherefore_o we_o distinguish_v before_o in_o the_o material_a
prime_a and_o fundamental_a point_n but_o in_o what_o author_n learn_v he_o that_o dogma_fw-la signify_v only_a maxim_n be_v it_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n dogma_fw-la according_a to_o our_o common_a english_a lexicon_n rider_n and_o other_o signify_v a_o decree_n or_o common_a receive_a opinion_n whether_o in_o prime_n or_o less_o principal_a matter_n but_o as_o the_o grammatical_a so_o the_o ecclesiastical_a signification_n of_o this_o word_n extend_v itself_o to_o all_o thing_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o in_o fundamental_o or_o superstructure_n thus_o scotus_n call_v transubstantiation_n dogma_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v one_o author_n who_o ever_o take_v the_o word_n dogma_fw-la for_o only_a fundamental_a point_n and_o as_o for_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n first_o he_o declare_v in_o other_o place_n that_o he_o mean_v by_o it_o such_o thing_n as_o in_o general_n belong_v to_o christian_a faith_n without_o distinction_n cap._n 23._o vocum_fw-la inquit_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la rerum_fw-la sententiarum_fw-la novitates_fw-la and_o cap._n 28._o crescat_fw-la say_v he_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n say_v in_o svo_fw-la duntaxat_fw-la genere_fw-la in_fw-la eodem_fw-la scilicet_fw-la dogmate_n eodem_fw-la sensu_fw-la eademque_fw-la sententia_fw-la the_o like_a he_o have_v cap._n 24._o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o pelagian_n err_v in_o dogmate_n fidei_fw-la who_o notwithstanding_o err_v not_o in_o a_o prime_a maxim_n but_o in_o a_o superstructure_n and_o for_o this_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o by_o catholicum_fw-la dogma_fw-la he_o must_v understand_v the_o whole_a complex_n of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o catholic_a faith_n whether_o fundamental_a in_o their_o matter_n or_o not_o whereof_o if_o a_o heretic_n deny_v any_o one_o part_n whatsoever_o say_v this_o author_n he_o may_v by_o the_o same_o rule_n deny_v all_o the_o rest_n nay_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o lirinensis_n can_v not_o understand_v only_o such_o point_n as_o be_v fundamental_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o matter_n for_o see_v this_o catholicum_fw-la dogma_fw-la contain_v the_o whole_a systeme_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o in_o that_o systeme_n some_o be_v fundamental_o some_o superstructure_n even_o according_a to_o protestant_n it_o must_v necessary_o contain_v both_o and_o vincentius_n make_v it_o clear_a in_o the_o instance_n he_o give_v that_o he_o also_o understand_v point_n not_o fundamental_a in_o the_o protestant_a sense_n for_o in_o the_o systeme_n of_o catholic_a point_n which_o he_o there_o enumerate_v be_v contain_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n decree_v by_o pope_n victor_n and_o afterward_o define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o not-rebaptizing_a of_o those_o who_o have_v be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n maintain_v by_o pope_n stephen_n against_o st._n cyprian_a and_o firmilian_a and_o likewise_o afterward_o confirm_v in_o the_o same_o council_n now_o what_o i_o say_v of_o catholicum_fw-la dogma_fw-la in_o the_o first_o sentence_n cite_v out_o of_o lirinensis_n i_o say_v the_o same_o of_o depositorum_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la custos_fw-la in_o the_o second_o for_o what_o rational_a man_n can_v imagine_v that_o no_o other_o christian_a verity_n or_o reveal_v doctrine_n be_v deposit_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o they_o with_o the_o church_n save_v only_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n wherein_o be_v express_o contain_v all_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v fundamental_a in_o respect_n of_o their_o matter_n as_o the_o bishop_n present_o affirm_v be_v not_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n with_o every_o chapter_n verse_n and_o sentence_n contain_v in_o it_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o sacrament_n the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o church_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n the_o not-rebaptizing_a of_o heretic_n the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o ever_o bless_a mother_n of_o god_n and_o many_o other_o such_o like_a point_n deposit_v with_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n whereof_o no_o one_o be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n nor_o esteem_v fundamental_a by_o protestant_n do_v not_o think_v you_o the_o church_n perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o faithful_a keeper_n of_o all_o these_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n and_o be_v not_o those_o who_o pertinacious_o err_v in_o these_o particular_n esteem_v throughout_o all_o christendom_n as_o heretic_n above_o 1200._o year_n ago_o here_o then_o in_o his_o wrest_n and_o wind_a catholico_n dogmate_v he_o give_v we_o no_o less_o than_o a_o turn_v and_o half_a in_o his_o canterburian_a labyrinth_n the_o church_n then_o ever_o do_v and_o ever_o will_v so_o keep_v those_o sacred_a depositum_n be_v they_o or_o be_v they_o not_o prime_a and_o fundamental_a in_o their_o matter_n as_o that_o hoc_fw-la idem_fw-la quod_fw-la antea_fw-la what_o she_o receive_v she_o deliver_v to_o all_o succeed_a age_n the_o very_a same_o in_o substance_n it_o ever_o be_v only_a unfolding_n what_o be_v before_o wrap_v up_o when_o any_o thing_n come_v to_o be_v call_v in_o question_n by_o novellist_n who_o she_o judge_n to_o impugn_v either_o direct_o or_o indirect_o and_o covert_o the_o faith_n that_o catholicum_fw-la dogma_fw-la which_o she_o have_v receive_v upon_o which_o occasion_n she_o sometime_o declare_v certain_a truth_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o believe_v by_o all_o to_o who_o that_o declaration_n be_v sufficient_o propound_v and_o command_v certain_a error_n to_o be_v express_o reject_v both_o which_o be_v before_o believe_v or_o reject_v only_o implicit_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o know_a and_o receive_v divine_a truth_n in_o which_o these_o other_o be_v contain_v tanquam_fw-la in_o radice_fw-la or_o in_fw-la semine_fw-la as_o vincentius_n speak_v for_o the_o church_n be_v so_o tender_o careful_a of_o every_o jota_n and_o tittle_n of_o these_o sacred_a doctrine_n in_o whatever_o matter_n they_o consist_v great_a or_o small_a which_o be_v deliver_v to_o she_o by_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n that_o she_o use_v all_o possible_a industry_n not_o only_o to_o keep_v unblemished_a what_o be_v clear_o and_o plain_o express_v in_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v to_o she_o but_o whatever_o else_o she_o find_v necessary_a for_o conserve_n they_o in_o their_o primitive_a integrity_n and_o purity_n thus_o have_v she_o use_v all_o possible_a diligence_n to_o preserve_v the_o scripture_n pure_a and_o entire_a not_o only_o in_o the_o prime_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o every_o the_o least_o truth_n deliver_v in_o they_o thus_o from_o what_o she_o have_v receive_v concern_v christ_n be_v both_o god_n and_o man_n yet_o but_o one_o christ_n she_o declare_v against_o nestorius_n that_o he_o have_v but_o one_o person_n against_o eutyches_n that_o he_o consist_v of_o two_o distinct_a nature_n the_o divine_a and_o the_o humane_a and_o against_o the_o monothelite_n that_o he_o have_v two_o will_n all_o which_o particular_n though_o they_o be_v not_o so_o full_o express_v and_o reflect_v on_o before_o those_o heresy_n arise_v yet_o be_v they_o virtual_o and_o implicit_o include_v in_o the_o doctrine_n first_o receive_v and_o afterward_o become_v necessary_a to_o be_v express_o believe_v by_o the_o declaration_n of_o general_n council_n i_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o relatours_n translate_n disputator_n errans_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 38._o disputer_n and_o dogmata_fw-la deposita_fw-la the_o principle_n of_o faith_n such_o errata_fw-la as_o these_o as_o they_o may_v seem_v perhaps_o too_o minute_n so_o be_v they_o too_o frequent_a to_o be_v reflect_v on_o but_o when_o he_o will_v have_v either_o the_o church_n herself_o or_o some_o appoint_v by_o she_o to_o examine_v her_o decree_n to_o wit_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o of_o those_o only_o be_v the_o controversy_n lest_o for_o want_n of_o it_o she_o be_v change_v in_o lupanar_fw-la errorum_fw-la a_o thing_n so_o foul_a he_o dare_v not_o english_z it_z though_o i_o wonder_v not_o much_o that_o it_o be_v say_v by_o he_o yet_o can_v i_o not_o but_o wonder_n that_o he_o venture_v to_o father_n it_o on_o lirinensis_n cite_v a_o lame_a sentence_n of_o he_o in_o the_o margin_n for_o proof_n of_o it_o whereas_o this_o author_n in_o that_o very_a place_n be_v so_o far_o from_o entertain_v the_o least_o thought_n or_o let_v fall_v the_o least_o word_n import_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v add_v novitia_fw-la veteribus_fw-la novelty_n to_o ancient_a truth_n and_o consequent_o alter_v and_o corrupt_v she_o own_o doctrine_n that_o as_o if_o he_o have_v foresee_v such_o a_o perversion_n of_o his_o meaning_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o chapter_n cite_v he_o seem_v purposely_o to_o explicate_v his_o own_o meaning_n and_o to_o point_v out_o the_o person_n guilty_a of_o such_o practice_n in_o these_o word_n sed_fw-la avertat_fw-la hoc_fw-la a_o suorum_fw-la mentibus_fw-la divina_fw-la pietas_fw-la sisque_fw-la hoc_fw-la potius_fw
impiorum_fw-la furor_fw-la but_o god_n avert_v say_v he_o this_o evil_a from_o the_o mind_n of_o he_o and_o be_v it_o rather_o the_o fury_n of_o the_o impious_a to_o do_v so_o whoever_o therefore_o be_v so_o audacious_a as_o to_o add_v novelty_n to_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v judge_v by_o vincentius_n to_o be_v impious_a person_n rage_v in_o a_o fury_n of_o madness_n which_o how_o just_o or_o true_o it_o can_v be_v affirm_v of_o christ_n true_a church_n let_v any_o discreet_a man_n be_v judge_n but_o if_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o demonstrate_v what_o this_o author_n opinion_n be_v of_o christ_n church_n in_o this_o particular_a take_v a_o further_a description_n which_o he_o give_v of_o she_o cap._n 22._o christi_fw-la vero_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sedula_fw-la &_o cauta_fw-la depositorum_fw-la apud_fw-la se_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la custos_fw-la nihil_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la unquam_fw-la permutat_fw-la nihil_fw-la minvit_fw-la nihil_fw-la addit_fw-la non_fw-la amputat_fw-la necessaria_fw-la non_fw-la apponit_fw-la superflua_fw-la non_fw-la amittit_fw-la sua_fw-la non_fw-la usurpat_fw-la aliena_fw-la where_o we_o see_v in_o opposition_n to_o those_o impious_a and_o furious_a adder_n of_o novelty_n mention_v in_o the_o last_o word_n of_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n how_o effectual_o and_o full_o in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o this_o he_o clear_v the_o church_n from_o that_o foul_a aspersion_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v cast_v upon_o she_o but_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n say_v he_o as_o a_o careful_a and_o wise_a depositary_a or_o keeper_n of_o the_o truth_n commit_v to_o she_o never_o change_n any_o thing_n at_o all_o in_o they_o lessen_v nothing_o add_v nothing_o neither_o cut_v away_o thing_n necessary_a nor_o adjoin_v thing_n superfluous_a neither_o lose_v what_o be_v she_o nor_o usurp_v what_o belong_v to_o other_o etc._n etc._n word_n as_o diametrical_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v unto_o in_o this_o passage_n viz._n suspicion_n and_o possibility_n of_o the_o church_n add_v novitia_fw-la veteribus_n and_o of_o make_v a_o change_n in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o she_o first_o receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v imagine_v but_o to_o return_v to_o that_o lame_a sentence_n which_o he_o cite_v out_o of_o lirinensis_n the_o very_a same_o do_v clear_o show_v that_o lirinensis_n never_o teach_v or_o impute_v to_o the_o church_n that_o she_o add_v new_a doctrine_n to_o the_o old_a for_o if_o she_o be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o old_a and_o never_o labour_v in_o her_o council_n to_o do_v more_o than_o preserve_v id_fw-la quod_fw-la antea_fw-la that_o which_o be_v before_o and_o that_o vincentius_n express_o aver_v this_o how_o can_v he_o in_o reason_n be_v suppose_v to_o teach_v that_o this_o very_a keeper_n of_o old_a doctrine_n and_o rejecter_n of_o novelty_n shall_v either_o corrupt_v the_o one_o or_o introduce_v the_o other_o nay_o the_o very_a word_n the_o bishop_n cite_v demonstrate_v evident_o that_o the_o church_n can_v in_o this_o author_n opinion_n be_v understand_v to_o make_v these_o addition_n for_o those_o who_o make_v they_o may_v at_o length_n by_o such_o addition_n come_v to_o change_v the_o church_n in_o errorum_fw-la lupanar_fw-la but_o it_o be_v impossible_a the_o church_n shall_v change_v herself_o or_o do_v any_o thing_n whereby_o to_o be_v change_v in_o errorum_fw-la lupanar_fw-la for_o so_o she_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n unless_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n church_n while_o it_o remain_v his_o church_n to_o be_v errorum_fw-la lupanar_fw-la which_o 〈◊〉_d as_o vincentius_n abhor_v so_o i_o presume_v the_o bishop_n himself_o will_v never_o in_o term_n and_o direct_o have_v admit_v last_o the_o bishop_n own_o exposition_n of_o vincentius_n his_o word_n destroy_v this_o unworthy_a imputation_n cast_v upon_o the_o church_n he_o interpret_v dogmata_fw-la as_o we_o have_v see_v to_o be_v the_o maxim_n or_o prime_a principle_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n whereof_o no_o one_o part_n can_v be_v reject_v without_o open_v a_o way_n to_o reject_v another_o till_o the_o whole_a be_v destroy_v therefore_o to_o make_v lirinensis_n his_o discourse_n uniform_a and_o coherent_a who_o still_o go_v on_o in_o the_o former_a matter_n and_o give_v not_o the_o least_o hint_n that_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o fundamental_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o his_o discourse_n when_o he_o mention_n change_n in_o dogmatibus_fw-la fidei_fw-la and_o of_o not_o fundamental_o in_o those_o addition_n of_o novelty_n i_o say_v to_o make_v this_o discourse_n of_o vincentius_n uniform_a and_o coherent_a he_o must_v understand_v the_o novitia_fw-la which_o vincentius_n say_v be_v add_v veteribus_fw-la to_o be_v add_v as_o new_a principal_a maxim_n to_o the_o other_o principal_a maxim_n of_o faith_n no_o less_o than_o the_o ancient_a maxim_n be_v now_o such_o a_o addition_n will_v be_v a_o fundamental_a error_n destructive_a of_o the_o church_n as_o he_o also_o grant_v wherefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o true_a church_n remain_v still_o the_o true_a church_n shall_v make_v any_o such_o addition_n even_o according_a to_o the_o relatours_n exposition_n of_o vincentius_n whence_o it_o appear_v to_o what_o strait_n this_o place_n of_o lirinensis_n put_v he_o see_v that_o while_o he_o labour_v to_o avoid_v one_o inconvenience_n he_o fall_v into_o another_o like_v he_o of_o who_o the_o poet_n sing_v incidit_fw-la in_o scyllam_fw-la cupiens_fw-la vitare_fw-la charybdim_n while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o avoid_v the_o charybdis_n as_o he_o account_v it_o of_o acknowledge_v from_o theword_n and_o testimony_n of_o lirinensis_n the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o not_o fundamental_o he_o run_v and_o split_v himself_o upon_o the_o scylla_n of_o make_v the_o whole_a church_n err_v in_o point_n fundamental_a but_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o make_v all_o seem_v as_o fair_a for_o himself_o as_o he_o can_v to_o which_o end_n observe_v a_o little_a how_o he_o use_v the_o text._n ecclesia_fw-la depositorum_fw-la apud_fw-la se_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la custos_fw-la that_o be_v well_o his_o lordship_n can_v neither_o deny_v nor_o dissemble_v but_o that_o the_o church_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o vincentius_n be_v a_o guardian_n or_o keeper_n of_o the_o truth_n deposit_v with_o she_o but_o yet_o that_o it_o may_v not_o appear_v what_o kind_n of_o keeper_n she_o be_v whether_o faithful_a and_o diligent_a or_o unfaithful_a and_o negligent_a whether_o apt_a to_o admit_v the_o addition_n of_o other_o new_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n which_o she_o receive_v not_o or_o to_o lose_v and_o corrupt_v any_o of_o those_o which_o she_o do_v receive_v he_o unfair_o leave_v out_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o will_v have_v clear_v the_o doubt_n sedula_fw-la &_o cauta_fw-la the_o church_n be_v a_o diligent_a and_o wary_a keeper_n of_o the_o truth_n commit_v to_o her_o charge_n she_o suffer_v nothing_o to_o be_v lose_v or_o embezzele_v either_o through_o neglect_n of_o duty_n or_o unskilfulness_n to_o perform_v it_o in_o brief_a that_o it_o may_v not_o appear_v in_o how_o exact_a a_o manner_n the_o church_n execute_v this_o office_n of_o depositary_a and_o guardian_n of_o divine_a truth_n he_o wrap_v up_o all_o the_o follow_a word_n nihil_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la unquam_fw-la permutat_fw-la nihil_fw-la minuit_fw-la nihil_fw-la addit_fw-la and_o the_o rest_n which_o follow_v in_o which_o the_o church_n singular_a care_n and_o faithfulness_n in_o this_o affair_n be_v most_o emphatical_o and_o true_o avouch_v with_o a_o etc._n etc._n a_o fatal_a but_o faithless_a etc._n etc._n whereas_o vincentius_n as_o we_o hear_v above_o out_o of_o the_o word_n themselves_o direct_o and_o positive_o assert_n that_o the_o church_n never_o change_v any_o part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n commit_v to_o she_o add_v nothing_o diminish_v nothing_o to_o wit_n by_o any_o corruptive_a addition_n or_o diminution_n or_o by_o any_o change_n that_o pervert_v or_o destroy_v the_o truth_n former_o deposit_v with_o she_o the_o like_a by-turn_a he_o make_v in_o the_o three_o text_n cap._n 31._o where_o cite_v it_o thus_o abrupt_o and_o unintelligibily_n impiorum_fw-la &_o turpium_fw-la errorum_fw-la lupanar_fw-la that_o it_o may_v be_v think_v the_o church_n herself_o make_v this_o addition_n of_o novelty_n he_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n adiiciunt_fw-la they_o add_v that_o be_v heretic_n and_o novelist_n do_v add_v for_o so_o vincentius_n speak_v he_o say_v not_o adiicit_fw-la she_o or_o the_o church_n add_v for_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o the_o catholic_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o by_o their_o novel_a addition_n labour_v to_o pervert_v and_o overthrow_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n we_o grant_v not_o unwilling_o what_o the_o relatour_n here_o assert_n that_o a_o 39_o whole_a frame_n of_o building_n may_v be_v shake_v and_o the_o foundation_n whereon_o it_o be_v lay_v remain_v firm_a so_o may_v hope_v charity_n and_o other_o virtue_n be_v shake_v and_o
fall_v not_o into_o a_o circle_n as_o 61._o his_o lordship_n here_o pretend_v they_o do_v for_o they_o primary_o and_o absolute_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o motive_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o by_o scripture_n though_o afterward_o and_o as_o it_o be_v secondary_o as_o we_o say_v before_o they_o prove_v it_o also_o especial_o to_o those_o who_o admit_v scripture_n as_o protestant_n do_v by_o the_o scripture_n itself_o which_o we_o acknowledge_v with_o the_o relatour_n to_o be_v a_o high_a proof_n especial_o against_o they_o than_o the_o church_n tradition_n yet_o we_o deny_v that_o those_o other_o proof_n from_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n can_v be_v in_o reason_n questionable_a as_o he_o say_v they_o be_v until_o we_o come_v to_o scripture_n neither_o do_v any_o catholic_a author_n disagree_v in_o this_o because_o they_o unanimous_o teach_v that_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n make_v our_o church_n evident_o credible_a and_o by_o consequence_n she_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v to_o be_v true_a by_o they_o alone_o now_o as_o concern_v that_o assertion_n which_o the_o bishop_n urge_v that_o ibidem_fw-la the_o principle_n of_o any_o conclusion_n must_v be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o and_o his_o inference_n thereupon_o viz._n that_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n the_o trinity_n the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v conclusion_n and_o the_o principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v conclude_v be_v only_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o the_o tradition_n be_v more_o infallible_a than_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o the_o faith_n which_o we_o have_v of_o the_o article_n shall_v be_v final_o resolve_v into_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o church_n testimony_n i_o answer_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o this_o discourse_n ibidem_fw-la be_v the_o authority_n of_o aristotle_n who_o word_n the_o bishop_n thus_o cite_v in_o the_o margin_n 1._o poster_n c._n 2._o t._n 16._o quocirca_fw-la si_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d propter_fw-la prima_fw-la scimus_fw-la &_o credimus_fw-la illa_fw-la quoque_fw-la scimus_fw-la &_o credimus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d magis_fw-la quia_fw-la per_fw-la illa_fw-la scimus_fw-la &_o credimus_fw-la etiam_fw-la posteriora_fw-la wherefore_o say_v he_o if_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v all_o other_o thing_n for_o or_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n we_o know_v and_o believe_v they_o to_o wit_n the_o first_o principle_n themselves_o much_o more_o because_o by_o they_o we_o know_v and_o believe_v all_o other_o thing_n in_o which_o word_n we_o confess_v the_o philosopher_n do_v very_o well_o declare_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o understanding_n or_o mind_n of_o man_n when_o it_o work_v natural_o and_o necessary_o by_o and_o from_o the_o evidence_n or_o clearness_n of_o its_o object_n but_o not_o when_o it_o work_v supernatural_o and_o produce_v supernatural_a and_o free_a act_n 〈◊〉_d or_o at_o least_o principal_o from_o the_o impulse_n and_o inclination_n of_o the_o will_n for_o in_o such_o case_n the_o maxim_n hold_v not_o viz._n that_o the_o principle_n of_o a_o conclusion_n must_v be_v of_o more_o credit_n than_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o now_o the_o act_n of_o believe_v be_v such_o a_o act_n that_o be_v which_o the_o understanding_n elicite_v rather_o by_o a_o voluntary_a and_o free_a inclination_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o will_n then_o from_o any_o evident_a certainty_n in_o the_o object_n whereto_o it_o assent_v 3._o that_o this_o may_v further_o appear_v i_o distinguish_v a_o double_a proceed_n in_o probation_n the_o one_o be_v per_fw-la principia_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la by_o intrinsical_v principle_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v a_o necessary_a natural_a connexion_n with_o the_o thing_n prove_v and_o do_v manifest_a and_o lay_v open_a the_o object_n themselves_o the_o other_o be_v per_fw-la principia_fw-la extrinseca_v by_o extrinsical_a principle_n that_o be_v such_o as_o have_v no_o natural_a or_o necessary_a connexion_n with_o nor_o do_v produce_v any_o such_o evident_a manifestation_n of_o the_o thing_n prove_v but_o their_o efficacy_n viz._n whereby_o they_o determine_v the_o understanding_n to_o assent_v do_v whole_o depend_v on_o the_o worth_n and_o virtue_n of_o that_o external_a principle_n whereby_o such_o probation_n be_v make_v and_o this_o kind_n of_o proof_n be_v call_v probatio_fw-la ab_fw-la authoritate_fw-la a_o argument_n from_o authority_n which_o authority_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o veracity_n knowledge_n and_o virtue_n of_o he_o to_o who_o we_o give_v assent_v when_o we_o receive_v such_o or_o such_o a_o affirmation_n from_o he_o now_o as_o i_o say_v above_o we_o ourselves_o either_o hear_v immediate_o what_o he_o affirm_v and_o then_o we_o assent_v immediate_o and_o sole_o for_o his_o authority_n or_o we_o hear_v it_o mediate_o from_o the_o report_n of_o other_o who_o if_o of_o unquestionable_a credit_n we_o assent_v that_o he_o do_v affirm_v it_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o reporter_n yet_o so_o as_o we_o shall_v not_o give_v a_o undoubted_a assent_n to_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o for_o the_o undeniable_a authority_n of_o the_o first_o deliverer_n to_o apply_v this_o doctrine_n when_o we_o believe_v any_o thing_n with_o divine_a faith_n it_o proceed_v not_o from_o any_o probation_n per_fw-la principia_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la from_o any_o thing_n that_o have_v natural_a connexion_n dependence_n or_o inference_n of_o or_o with_o the_o thing_n believe_v but_o be_v pure_o propter_fw-la principia_fw-la extrinseca_v for_o and_o from_o extrinsical_a principle_n to_o wit_n the_o authority_n veracity_n goodness_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n affirm_v it_o now_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n assent_v to_o what_o god_n speak_v immediate_o unto_o they_o and_o the_o like_a be_v affirmable_a in_o some_o proportion_n of_o their_o immediate_a hearer_n but_o succeed_a age_n have_v it_o viz._n god_n revelation_n both_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n only_o mediate_o and_o immediate_o from_o their_o respective_a pastor_n now_o that_o we_o may_v be_v assure_v hereof_o infallible_o we_o must_v have_v some_o infallible_a testimony_n to_o ascertain_v it_o unto_o we_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o church_n 4._o neither_o will_v it_o be_v necessary_a precise_o for_o this_o reason_n to_o affirm_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o church_n declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v absolute_o and_o simple_o divine_a or_o that_o god_n speak_v immediate_o by_o her_o definition_n or_o that_o our_o faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n as_o into_o its_o formal_a object_n but_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o say_v our_o faith_n be_v resolve_v into_o god_n revelation_n whether_o write_v or_o unwritten_a as_o its_o formal_a object_n and_o our_o infallible_a assurance_n that_o the_o thing_n we_o believe_v as_o god_n revelation_n be_v reveal_v from_o he_o be_v resolve_v into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n teach_v we_o that_o they_o be_v his_o revelation_n see_v therefore_o our_o faith_n in_o this_o way_n of_o proceed_v be_v not_o resolve_v into_o the_o church_n authority_n as_o the_o formal_a motive_n of_o our_o assent_n but_o only_o as_o a_o assure_a testimony_n that_o such_o and_o such_o article_n as_o the_o church_n define_v to_o be_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v true_o reveal_v from_o god_n as_o she_o assure_v we_o they_o be_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a the_o church_n testimony_n shall_v be_v a_o new_a immediate_a revelation_n from_o god_n but_o only_o supernatural_o infallible_a by_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n preserve_v she_o from_o all_o error_n in_o define_v any_o thing_n as_o a_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o be_v as_o a_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n which_o be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o so_o reveal_v if_o then_o it_o be_v demand_v why_o we_o believe_v such_o book_n as_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o answer_v because_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a unwritten_a tradition_n that_o they_o be_v his_o word_n and_o this_o divine_a tradition_n be_v the_o formal_a object_n whereon_o our_o faith_n rely_v but_o if_o it_o be_v further_o demand_v how_o we_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a tradition_n we_o answer_v the_o certainty_n we_o have_v thereof_o be_v from_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n teach_v we_o it_o be_v such_o a_o tradition_n thus_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v deliver_v from_o god_n but_o keep_v by_o the_o church_n they_o spring_v from_o god_n as_o the_o fountain_n but_o run_v down_o in_o a_o full_a stream_n through_o the_o channel_n and_o within_o the_o bank_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v sow_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n but_o grow_v up_o in_o the_o field_n of_o the_o church_n they_o be_v speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o god_n but_o we_o hear_v they_o by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v we_o
that_o god_n speak_v they_o which_o we_o can_v never_o elevate_v our_o heart_n to_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n church_n which_o give_v we_o a_o full_a assurance_n of_o his_o revelation_n thus_o than_o the_o church_n be_v supernatural_o infallible_a in_o all_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n will_v be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o ascertain_v we_o of_o those_o holy_a write_n which_o god_n by_o unwritten_a tradition_n reveal_v to_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v his_o write_a word_n for_o if_o her_o definition_n herein_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a than_o what_o she_o define_v as_o reveal_v from_o god_n to_o be_v his_o write_a word_n be_v undoubted_o such_o insomuch_o that_o christian_n be_v irrefregable_o assure_v thereof_o by_o the_o church_n infallible_a declaration_n believe_v this_o article_n with_o divine_a faith_n because_o reveal_v from_o god_n who_o can_v deceive_v they_o that_o revelation_n be_v the_o only_a formal_a object_n into_o which_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n assurance_n the_o ground_n to_o persuade_v they_o that_o it_o be_v infallible_o a_o divine_a revelation_n or_o tradition_n the_o church_n definition_n therefore_o be_v like_o approximation_n in_o the_o work_n of_o natural_a cause_n to_o wit_n a_o necessary_a condition_n prerequire_v to_o their_o work_n by_o their_o own_o natural_a force_n yet_o be_v itself_o no_o cause_n but_o a_o application_n only_o of_o the_o efficient_a cause_n to_o the_o subject_n on_o which_o it_o work_v see_v nothing_o can_v work_v immediate_o on_o what_o be_v distant_a from_o it_o thus_o god_n revelation_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n without_o writing_n be_v and_o be_v the_o only_a formal_a cause_n of_o our_o assent_n in_o divine_a faith_n but_o because_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v distant_a from_o we_o have_v be_v deliver_v that_o be_v reveal_v so_o many_o age_n past_a they_o be_v approximate_v or_o immediate_o apply_v to_o we_o by_o the_o infallible_a declaration_n of_o the_o present_a church_n which_o still_o confirm_v by_o her_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n what_o be_v first_o reveal_v make_v it_o as_o firm_o believe_v by_o we_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o who_o it_o be_v first_o reveal_v so_o a_o commonwealth_n by_o still_o maintain_v practise_v and_o approve_v the_o law_n enact_v in_o its_o first_o institution_n make_v they_o as_o much_o observe_v and_o esteem_v by_o the_o people_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n for_o their_o primitive_a law_n as_o they_o be_v by_o those_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o first_o institution_n hence_o it_o appear_v our_o faith_n rest_v only_o upon_o god_n immediate_a revelation_n as_o its_o formal_a object_n though_o the_o church_n voice_n be_v a_o condition_n so_o necessary_a for_o its_o rest_v thereon_o that_o it_o can_v never_o attain_v that_o formal_a object_n without_o it_o by_o which_o discourse_n the_o bishop_n argument_n be_v solve_v as_o also_o his_o text_n out_o of_o aristotle_n for_o see_v here_o be_v no_o scientifical_a proof_n per_fw-la principia_fw-la intrinseca_fw-la there_o can_v be_v no_o necessary_a and_o natural_a connexion_n of_o principle_n evidence_v the_o thing_n prove_v as_o be_v require_v in_o demonstrative_a knowledge_n the_o thing_n itself_o which_o be_v believe_v remain_v still_o obscure_a and_o all_o the_o assurance_n we_o have_v of_o it_o depend_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o he_o that_o testify_v it_o unto_o we_o last_o hence_o be_v solve_v the_o authority_n of_o canus_n cite_v also_o by_o his_o lordship_n who_o only_o affirm_v what_o i_o have_v here_o confess_v viz._n that_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o resolve_v into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o it_o and_o that_o of_o pag._n 65._o where_o he_o contend_v that_o the_o church_n give_v not_o the_o truth_n and_o authority_n to_o the_o scripture_n but_o only_o teach_v they_o with_o infallible_a certainty_n to_o be_v canonical_a or_o the_o undoubted_a word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n the_o very_a same_o thing_n with_o what_o i_o here_o maintain_v the_o church_n authority_n then_o be_v more_o know_v unto_o we_o than_o the_o scripture_n may_v well_o be_v some_o reason_n of_o our_o admit_v they_o yet_o the_o scripture_n still_o retain_v their_o prerogative_n above_o the_o church_n for_o be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n they_o require_v a_o great_a respect_n and_o reverence_n than_o the_o mere_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n whence_o it_o be_v likewise_o that_o our_o author_n do_v here_o common_o distinguish_v two_o sort_n of_o certainty_n the_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o other_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la the_o first_o proceed_v from_o the_o clearness_n of_o the_o object_n the_o other_o from_o the_o adhesion_n as_o philosopher_n call_v it_o of_o the_o will_n which_o make_v the_o understanding_n stick_v so_o close_o to_o the_o object_n that_o it_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o it_o this_o latter_a kind_n of_o certainty_n have_v chief_o place_n in_o faith_n a_o thing_n unknown_a to_o aristotle_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o when_o we_o believe_v we_o do_v adhere_v more_o firm_o to_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n then_o to_o any_o principle_n whatsoever_o though_o evident_a to_o natural_a reason_n which_o firm_a adhesion_n of_o we_o be_v ground_v partly_o on_o the_o greatness_n and_o nobleness_n of_o the_o object_n and_o partly_o on_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v such_o that_o our_o salvation_n depend_v upon_o it_o for_o that_o immediate_a revelation_n namely_o the_o scripture_n be_v in_o itself_o of_o so_o much_o great_a worth_n and_o dignity_n than_o the_o church_n mere_a tradition_n do_v worthy_o more_o draw_v our_o affection_n than_o the_o other_o notwithstanding_o the_o other_o be_v more_o know_v to_o we_o and_o the_o cause_n of_o our_o admit_v he_o thus_o we_o have_v show_v that_o we_o hold_v not_o the_o church_n definition_n for_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o relatour_n by_o dispute_v so_o much_o against_o it_o will_v seem_v to_o impose_v on_o we_o though_o our_o present_a faith_n it_o be_v true_a rely_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o infallible_a witness_n both_o of_o the_o write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n wherefore_o when_o we_o say_v we_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n we_o profess_v to_o believe_v not_o only_o the_o thing_n which_o she_o teach_v but_o the_o church_n herself_o so_o teach_v as_o a_o infallible_a witness_n and_o the_o contrary_n we_o shall_v never_o believe_v till_o it_o be_v prove_v otherwise_o then_o by_o say_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o do_v it_o be_v no_o hard_a thing_n to_o prove_v by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v no_o devise_n or_o cunning_a at_o all_o as_o the_o relatour_n will_v have_v it_o think_v of_o we_o either_o in_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n due_a to_o the_o father_n council_n or_o scripture_n or_o in_o give_v too_o much_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v all_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o father_n and_o as_o much_o to_o speak_v modest_o as_o any_o of_o our_o adversary_n party_n but_o they_o must_v pardon_v we_o if_o we_o prefer_v the_o general_a interpretation_n of_o the_o present_a church_n before_o the_o result_n of_o any_o man_n particular_a fancy_n as_o for_o scripture_n we_o ever_o extol_v it_o above_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v in_o many_o place_n so_o obscure_a that_o we_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o its_o true_a sense_n without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o live_n infallible_a judge_n to_o determine_v and_o declare_v it_o which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o present_a church_n and_o what_o we_o say_v of_o scripture_n may_v with_o proportion_n be_v apply_v to_o ancient_a general_n council_n for_o though_o we_o willing_o submit_v to_o they_o all_o yet_o where_o they_o happen_v to_o be_v obscure_a in_o matter_n require_v determination_n we_o seek_v the_o assistance_n and_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o live_a infallible_a rule_n viz._n the_o tradition_n or_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o present_a church_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v osten_v intimate_v it_o be_v evident_a the_o cunning_a of_o the_o device_n the_o bishop_n speak_v of_o be_v none_o of_o we_o but_o his_o own_o while_o he_o false_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o final_o resolve_v all_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n council_n and_o scripture_n into_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n whereas_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n we_o ever_o resolve_v they_o final_o into_o god_n word_n ibidem_fw-la or_o divine_a revelation_n though_o we_o must_v of_o necessity_n repair_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o have_v they_o infallible_o testify_v unto_o we_o but_o
the_o bishop_n think_v this_o injury_n not_o great_a enough_o unless_o he_o redouble_v it_o by_o any_o additional_a false_a imputation_n of_o other_o two_o absurdity_n which_o he_o aver_v to_o follow_v evident_o from_o our_o doctrine_n to_o the_o first_o viz._n that_o we_o ascribe_v as_o great_a authority_n if_o not_o great_a to_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o whole_a i_o answer_v there_o follow_v no_o such_o thing_n from_o any_o doctrine_n of_o we_o but_o from_o his_o lordship_n wilfully-mistaken_a notion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o he_o most_o desperate_o extend_v to_o all_o that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n without_o exception_n of_o either_o schismatic_n or_o heretic_n that_o so_o he_o may_v be_v sure_a to_o include_v himself_o within_o her_o pale_a and_o make_v the_o reader_n absurd_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o her_o full_a latitude_n be_v but_o a_o 〈◊〉_d or_o parcel_v of_o the_o catholic_a church_n believe_v in_o the_o creed_n this_o indeed_o to_o use_v his_o lordship_n phrase_n be_v full_a of_o absurdity_n in_o nature_n in_o reason_n in_o all_o thing_n for_o it_o be_v to_o pretend_v a_o addition_n of_o integral_a part_n to_o a_o body_n already_o entire_a in_o all_o its_o integral_n see_v the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v as_o comprise_v all_o christian_n that_o be_v in_o her_o communion_n be_v the_o sole_a and_o whole_a catholic_a church_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n which_o clear_o show_v throughout_o all_o age_n that_o none_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n or_o schism_n by_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v ever_o account_v any_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o this_o i_o will_v have_v prove_v at_o large_a have_v his_o lordship_n do_v any_o more_o than_o bare_o suppose_v the_o contrary_a if_o any_o man_n shall_v object_v that_o the_o bishop_n charge_v the_o absurdity_n upon_o we_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o we_o ascribe_v as_o great_a authority_n if_o not_o great_a to_o a_o part_n of_o it_o as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o whole_a viz._n in_o our_o general_a council_n i_o answer_v that_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o absurdity_n that_o it_o be_v absurd_a to_o suppose_v it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o which_o the_o objecter_n himself_o will_v clear_o fee_v when_o he_o consider_v that_o the_o like_a must_v needs_o be_v grant_v even_o in_o civil_a government_n for_o instance_n the_o parliament_n of_o england_n be_v but_o a_o handful_n of_o man_n compare_v with_o the_o whole_a nation_n yet_o have_v they_o great_a authority_n in_o order_n to_o the_o make_n or_o repeal_n of_o law_n than_o the_o whole_a nation_n be_v they_o meet_v together_o in_o a_o body_n man_n woman_n and_o child_n which_o will_v produce_v nothing_o but_o a_o absolute_a confusion_n the_o application_n be_v so_o easy_a i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o objecter_n himself_o to_o make_v the_o second_o accusation_n which_o the_o bishop_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n be_v this_o that_o in_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o church_n our_o proceed_n be_v most_o unreasonable_a in_o regard_n we_o will_v not_o have_v recourse_n to_o text_n of_o scripture_n exposition_n of_o father_n propriety_n of_o language_n conference_n of_o place_n etc._n etc._n but_o argue_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v true_a and_o catholic_n because_o she_o profess_v it_o to_o be_v such_o which_o say_v he_o be_v to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la whereas_o true_o we_o most_o willing_o embrace_v and_o have_v frequent_a recourse_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n mention_v help_n and_o that_o with_o much_o more_o candour_n than_o protestant_n can_v with_o any_o ground_n of_o reason_n pretend_v to_o consider_v their_o manifold_a wrest_n both_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n when_o they_o either_o urge_v they_o against_o we_o or_o endeavour_v to_o evade_v their_o clear_a testimony_n for_o we_o neither_o be_v we_o in_o any_o danger_n of_o commit_v a_o circle_n or_o prove_v 64._o idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la because_o his_o lordship_n see_v not_o how_o we_o can_v possible_o wind_v ourselves_o out_o the_o business_n be_v not_o so_o insuperable_o difficult_a in_o our_o doctrine_n for_o if_o we_o be_v ask_v how_o we_o know_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a our_o last_o answer_n be_v not_o as_o he_o feign_v because_o she_o profess_v herself_o to_o be_v such_o but_o we_o know_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n which_o sufficient_o prove_v she_o to_o be_v such_o so_o the_o prophet_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v in_o their_o time_n know_v to_o be_v infallible_a oracle_n and_o teacher_n of_o truth_n by_o the_o like_a sign_n and_o motive_n only_o this_o difference_n there_o be_v that_o these_o viz._n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n etc._n etc._n confirm_v their_o doctrine_n give_v infallible_a testimony_n that_o what_o they_o teach_v be_v the_o immediate_a revelation_n and_o word_n of_o god_n whereas_o the_o motive_n which_o confirm_v the_o declaration_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n do_v only_o show_v that_o she_o infallible_o deliver_v to_o we_o the_o same_o revelation_n i_o mean_v the_o same_o for_o sense_n and_o substance_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o other_o receive_v immediate_o from_o god_n and_o that_o to_o rest_n in_o this_o manner_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n in_o the_o resolution_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la as_o the_o bishop_n false_o impute_v to_o we_o i_o clear_o show_v by_o two_o several_a instance_n which_o even_o those_o of_o his_o party_n must_v of_o necessity_n allow_v 5._o the_o first_o instance_n be_v of_o the_o church_n in_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o a_o sectary_n may_v in_o those_o day_n have_v argue_v against_o the_o apostolical_a church_n by_o the_o very_a same_o method_n his_o lordship_n here_o use_v against_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n may_v he_o not_o have_v tax_v those_o christian_n of_o unreasonable_a proceed_n in_o their_o belief_n and_o have_v set_v it_o forth_o as_o the_o bishop_n do_v thus_o for_o if_o you_o ask_v they_o why_o they_o believe_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v the_o sole_a true_a catholic_a faith_n their_o answer_n be_v because_o it_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ._n if_o you_o ask_v they_o how_o they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v so_o they_o will_v produce_v the_o word_n sentence_n and_o work_v of_o christ_n who_o teach_v it_o but_o if_o you_o ask_v a_o three_o time_n by_o what_o mean_v they_o be_v assure_v that_o those_o testimony_n do_v indeed_o make_v for_o they_o and_o their_o cause_n or_o be_v real_o the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v not_o then_o have_v recourse_n to_o those_o testimony_n or_o doctrine_n but_o their_o final_a answer_n be_v they_o know_v it_o to_o be_v so_o because_o the_o present_a apostolic_a church_n do_v witness_v it_o and_o so_o by_o consequence_n prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la thus_o the_o sectary_n by_o which_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o bishop_n objection_n against_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n wherein_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v a_o discovery_n of_o her_o corruption_n and_o politic_a interest_n be_v equal_o applyable_a to_o the_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n in_o its_o undeniable_a purity_n but_o at_o once_o to_o answer_v both_o the_o bishop_n and_o sectary_n objection_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o prime_n and_o precise_a reason_n to_o be_v give_v why_o we_o believe_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o present_a church_n witness_v or_o give_v assurance_n of_o divine_a revelation_n to_o we_o be_v neither_o scripture_n council_n nor_o father_n no_o nor_o the_o oral_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n himself_o but_o the_o pregnant_a and_o convince_a motive_n of_o credibility_n which_o move_v both_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o we_o in_o our_o respective_a time_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n not_o that_o we_o be_v necessitate_v to_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o the_o motive_n as_o its_o formal_a object_n or_o ultimate_a reason_n of_o assent_n for_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o divine_a authority_n reveal_v but_o as_o into_o most_o certain_a inducement_n powerful_o and_o prudent_o incline_v our_o will_n to_o accept_v the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o infallible_a organ_n ordain_v by_o divine_a authority_n to_o teach_v we_o the_o sure_a way_n of_o salvation_n the_o second_o instance_n be_v ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o the_o bishop_n in_o relation_n to_o those_o fundamental_a truth_n wherein_o he_o confess_v the_o whole_a church_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v for_o suppose_v a_o separatist_n shall_v thus_o argue_v with_o his_o lordship_n your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n
of_o the_o church_n in_o fundamental_o be_v most_o unreasonable_a for_o if_o a_o man_n ask_v you_o why_o you_o believe_v all_o those_o point_n which_o you_o hold_v for_o fundamental_a for_o example_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o life_n everlasting_a your_o answer_n will_v be_v because_o they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o tradition_n of_o christ._n and_o if_o you_o be_v ask_v how_o you_o know_v they_o to_o be_v so_o you_o will_v no_o doubt_n produce_v the_o word_n sentence_n and_o work_v of_o christ_n who_o teach_v the_o say_v fundamental_a point_n but_o if_o he_o ask_v you_o a_o three_o time_n by_o what_o mean_v you_o be_v assure_v that_o those_o testimony_n do_v make_v for_o you_o or_o be_v indeed_o the_o word_n sentence_n and_o work_v of_o christ_n you_o will_v not_o then_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o testimony_n and_o word_n themselves_o that_o be_v to_o the_o bible_n but_o your_o final_a answer_n will_v be_v you_o know_v they_o to_o be_v so_o and_o that_o they_o do_v make_v for_o you_o because_o the_o present_a church_n do_v infallible_o witness_v so_o much_o to_o you_o from_o tradition_n and_o according_a to_o tradition_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la as_o much_o as_o we_o and_o if_o the_o say_a separatist_n further_o inquire_v about_o the_o precedent_a authority_n of_o scripture_n council_n father_n apostle_n and_o christ_n himself_o while_o he_o live_v on_o earth_n shall_v ask_v why_o such_o fundamental_o be_v believe_v upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o last_o testimony_n infallible_o assure_v that_o those_o fundamental_a point_n and_o all_o the_o precedent_a confirmation_n of_o they_o be_v from_o god_n it_o be_v evident_a the_o bishop_n party_n have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o avoid_v a_o circle_n but_o by_o answer_v they_o believe_v the_o scripture_n council_n etc._n etc._n by_o reason_n of_o the_o convince_v motive_n of_o credibility_n powerful_o induce_v and_o incline_v the_o will_n to_o accept_v the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o infallible_a organ_n ordain_v by_o divine_a authority_n to_o teach_v we_o which_o infallibility_n must_v come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v more_o than_o humane_a or_o moral_a and_o therefore_o must_v be_v true_o 〈◊〉_d and_o proceed_v from_o god_n most_o absolute_a and_o divine_a veracity_n in_o fulfil_v his_o promise_n as_o from_o its_o radical_a principle_n and_o from_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o the_o immediate_a cause_n preserve_v the_o church_n from_o error_n in_o all_o such_o point_n thus_o we_o be_v easy_o get_v out_o of_o the_o circle_n leave_v the_o bishop_n still_o tumble_v himself_o in_o it_o for_o we_o do_v not_o final_o rest_v on_o the_o present_a church_n as_o consist_v of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n as_o his_o lordship_n vain_o suggest_v nor_o do_v we_o rest_v upon_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n as_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o as_o induce_v we_o to_o rely_v on_o the_o say_a church_n ordain_v by_o divine_a authority_n to_o teach_v we_o and_o be_v consequent_o infallible_a whereas_o the_o bishop_n do_v but_o dance_v in_o a_o round_a while_o inquire_v for_o some_o infallible_a warrant_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o thus_o conclude_v pag._n 66._o it_o be_v agree_v on_o by_o i_o it_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o must_v needs_o end_v in_o a_o apparent_a circle_n as_o prove_v idem_fw-la per_fw-la idem_fw-la and_o whereas_o immediate_o after_o he_o run_v on_o prolix_o in_o distinguish_v between_o god_n write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n as_o though_o he_o will_v make_v the_o latter_a serve_v for_o infallible_a proof_n of_o the_o former_a he_o never_o reflect_v that_o the_o say_v latter_a viz._n god_n unwritten_a word_n do_v necessary_o stand_v in_o as_o much_o need_n of_o proof_n as_o the_o former_a now_o as_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n do_v ascertain_v we_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v esteem_v or_o style_v absolute_o divine_a as_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v it_o yet_o as_o 6._o to_o this_o purpose_n and_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v precise_a infallibility_n or_o certain_a connexion_n with_o truth_n it_o be_v so_o true_o supernatural_a and_o certain_a that_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o yield_v nothing_o to_o the_o scripture_n itself_o i_o mean_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o precise_a infallibility_n and_o absolute_a veracity_n of_o whatsoever_o it_o declare_v and_o testify_v to_o be_v matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n though_o in_o many_o other_o respect_v we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v much_o inferior_a to_o that_o of_o scripture_n for_o first_o the_o holy_a scripture_n have_v a_o large_a extent_n of_o truth_n because_o there_o not_o only_o every_o reason_n but_o every_o word_n and_o tittle_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n at_o least_o implicit_o and_o necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o that_o know_v it_o to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o scripture_n but_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o the_o argument_n reason_n nor_o word_n be_v absolute_o speak_v matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o the_o thing_n declare_v to_o be_v such_o beside_o the_o church_n have_v certain_a limit_n and_o can_v define_v nothing_o but_o what_o be_v either_o reveal_v before_o or_o have_v such_o connexion_n with_o it_o as_o it_o may_v be_v rational_o and_o logical_o deduce_v from_o it_o as_o appertain_v to_o the_o declaration_n and_o defence_n of_o that_o which_o be_v before_o reveal_v moreover_o the_o church_n have_v the_o receive_v and_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n for_o its_o end_n and_o consequent_o be_v in_o that_o respect_n inferior_a to_o it_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o holy_a scripture_n be_v per_fw-la excellentiam_fw-la call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o divine_a whereas_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n be_v only_o say_v by_o catholic_a divine_n and_o in_o particular_a by_o a._n c._n in_o some_o sort_n or_o in_o a_o manner_n divine_a by_o which_o manner_n of_o speak_v their_o intention_n be_v not_o to_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v equal_a even_o to_o scripture_n itself_o in_o point_n of_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n but_o only_o to_o show_v the_o prerogative_n of_o scripture_n above_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n add_v that_o although_o we_o hold_v it_o necessary_a and_o therein_o agree_v with_o our_o adversary_n that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n upon_o divine_a authority_n yet_o standnig_v precise_o in_o what_o be_v propound_v by_o mr._n fisher_n pag._n 59_o how_o the_o bishop_n know_v scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n there_o will_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o defend_v the_o church_n authority_n to_o be_v simple_o divine_a for_o if_o it_o be_v but_o infallible_a by_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o must_v give_v such_o assurance_n that_o whatever_o be_v define_v by_o it_o to_o be_v scripture_n be_v most_o certain_o scripture_n that_o no_o christian_n can_v doubt_v of_o it_o without_o mortal_a sin_n and_o shake_v the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o have_v be_v often_o declare_v and_o the_o immediate_a reason_n why_o the_o authority_n teach_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v be_v absolute_o infallible_a be_v because_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o all_o those_o book_n which_o the_o church_n have_v define_v for_o canonical_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o see_v every_o article_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v reveal_v or_o teach_v by_o divine_a authority_n this_o also_o must_v be_v so_o reveal_v and_o consequent_o no_o authority_n less_o than_o divine_a be_v sufficient_a to_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v it_o as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n now_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v and_o a._n c._n note_n it_o pag._n 49_o 50._o that_o the_o prime_a authority_n for_o which_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n or_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n which_o move_v we_o as_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n assure_v we_o infallible_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o tradition_n apply_v this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n unto_o we_o as_o it_o do_v all_o the_o rest_n whether_o the_o voice_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n in_o itself_o be_v absolute_o divine_a or_o no._n neither_o can_v there_o be_v show_v any_o more_o difficulty_n in_o believe_v this_o as_o a_o apostolical_a tradition_n upon_o the_o infallible_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n then_o in_o believe_v any_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n whatsoever_o upon_o the_o like_a declaration_n his_o
lordship_n argument_n that_o the_o whole_a may_v err_v because_o every_o part_n may_v err_v be_v disprove_v by_o himself_o because_o in_o fundamental_o he_o grant_v the_o whole_a church_n can_v err_v and_o yet_o that_o any_o particular_a man_n may_v err_v even_o in_o those_o point_n wherefore_o he_o must_v needs_o agree_v with_o we_o in_o this_o that_o the_o perfection_n of_o infallibility_n may_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n though_o not_o to_o every_o particular_a member_n thereof_o now_o further_o concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n though_o she_o be_v so_o tie_v to_o mean_n as_o that_o she_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v they_o yet_o in_o her_o definition_n she_o receive_v not_o her_o infallibility_n from_o the_o mean_n as_o the_o bishop_n must_v also_o affirm_v of_o his_o fundamental_o but_o from_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o the_o church_n which_o make_v her_o definition_n true_o infallible_a though_o they_o be_v not_o new_a revelation_n but_o only_a declaration_n of_o what_o be_v former_o reveal_v for_o as_o the_o immediate_a revelation_n itself_o be_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n infallible_a but_o because_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o in_o case_n it_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v not_o true_a and_o certain_a the_o error_n will_v be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n so_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n if_o she_o shall_v fall_v into_o error_n it_o will_v likewise_o be_v ascribe_v to_o god_n himself_o neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n as_o if_o the_o definition_n be_v false_a god_n revelation_n must_v be_v also_o such_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o to_o aver_v that_o god_n promise_v will_v be_v infringe_v as_o true_o it_o will_v in_o that_o supposition_n for_o do_v he_o not_o so_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n by_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o that_o she_o shall_v never_o define_v any_o thing_n for_o a_o point_n of_o catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v not_o reveal_v from_o god_n it_o will_v imply_v a_o destruction_n of_o god_n veracity_n and_o make_v he_o deny_v himself_o all_o which_o doctrine_n be_v so_o well_o ground_v on_o christ_n promise_n assure_v we_o he_o will_v always_o assist_v his_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v little_a reason_n to_o accuse_v we_o of_o rather_o maintain_v a_o party_n then_o seek_v truth_n as_o though_o we_o set_v doctrine_n on_o foot_n to_o foment_n division_n and_o be_v rather_o lead_v by_o animosity_n than_o reason_n chap._n 6._o no_o unquestionable_a assurance_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n argument_n 1._o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n and_o eight_o instance_n concern_v they_o witness_v by_o st._n augustin_n 2._o many_o thing_n speak_v by_o our_o saviour_n not_o deliver_v by_o way_n of_o tradition_n to_o the_o church_n and_o many_o church-tradition_n not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 3._o tradition_n not_o know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n any_o more_o than_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 4._o the_o private_a spirit_n hold_v by_o calvin_n and_o whitaker_n for_o the_o sole_a motive_n of_o believe_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 5._o a_o dialogue_n between_o the_o bishop_n and_o a_o heathen_a philosopher_n 6._o the_o case_n of_o a_o christian_a die_v without_o sight_n of_o scripture_n 7._o occam_n saint_n augustin_n canus_n almain_n and_o gerson_n either_o miscit_v or_o their_o sense_n pervert_v by_o the_o bishop_n 1._o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v hardly_o put_v to_o it_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n to_o find_v some_o way_n whereby_o to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o continual_o tread_v on_o the_o brink_n of_o a_o circle_n at_o length_n fall_v on_o the_o unwritten_a word_n it_o seem_v he_o be_v afraid_a he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o come_v stoop_v to_o the_o church_n to_o show_v it_o he_o and_o final_o depend_v on_o her_o authority_n but_o be_v loath_a to_o trust_v she_o he_o grow_v so_o wary_a that_o he_o will_v admit_v no_o unwritten_a word_n but_o what_o be_v show_v he_o deliver_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n will_v he_o read_v it_o in_o their_o book_n now_o if_o you_o harken_v to_o his_o discourse_n he_o present_o cry_v out_o he_o can_v swallow_v into_o his_o belief_n that_o every_o thing_n which_o his_o adversary_n say_v be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n be_v so_o indeed_o nor_o be_v it_o our_o desire_n he_o shall_v but_o we_o crave_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n patience_n to_o hear_v reason_n according_a to_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o authority_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o this_o main_a principle_n of_o faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o our_o ensurancer_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n and_o well_o may_v it_o be_v so_o for_o such_o tradition_n declare_v by_o the_o church_n be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n we_o do_v not_o pretend_v as_o the_o bishop_n object_n that_o every_o doctrine_n which_o any_o particular_a person_n as_o a._n c._n bellarmin_n or_o other_o private_a doctor_n may_v please_v to_o call_v tradition_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o god_n unwritten_a word_n but_o such_o doctrinal_a tradition_n only_o as_o be_v warrant_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n for_o true_o apostolical_a which_o be_v consequent_o god_n unwritten_a word_n of_o which_o kind_n be_v those_o which_o not_o i_o but_o st._n augustin_n judge_v to_o be_v such_o in_o his_o time_n and_o have_v ever_o since_o be_v conserve_v and_o esteem_v such_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ._n the_o first_o apostolical_a tradition_n name_v by_o saint_n augustin_n be_v that_o we_o now_o treat_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 5._o he_o affirm_v he_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n but_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n move_v he_o thereto_o and_o stick_v so_o close_o to_o her_o authority_n that_o he_o say_v ibid._n if_o any_o clear_a testimony_n be_v bring_v out_o of_o scripture_n against_o the_o church_n he_o will_v neither_o believe_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la nay_o that_o he_o as_o much_o believe_v the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o gospel_n itself_o because_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v he_o both_o of_o the_o one_o &_o the_o other_o a_o second_o tradition_n be_v 174._o that_o the_o father_n be_v not_o beget_v of_o any_o other_o person_n a_o three_o 84._o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n be_v and_o remain_v always_o a_o virgin_n both_o before_z in_o and_o after_o the_o birth_n of_o christ_n st._n augustin_n term_v helvidius_n his_o opinion_n who_o deny_v it_o a_o blasphemy_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n insert_v he_o in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o heretic_n the_o four_o 23._o that_o those_o who_o be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v the_o five_o 23._o that_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v the_o six_o finem_fw-la that_o child_n baptise_a be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o faithful_a the_o seven_o januar._n that_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v fast_v the_o eight_o temp._n that_o sunday_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v holy_a by_o christian_n it_o be_v so_o natural_a to_o protestant_n to_o build_v upon_o false_a ground_n that_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o a_o question_n without_o suppose_v a_o falsehood_n so_o his_o lordship_n here_o feed_v his_o humour_n and_o obtrude_v many_o he_o make_v bellarmin_n and_o all_o catholic_a doctor_n maintain_v that_o whatever_o they_o please_v to_o call_v tradition_n must_v present_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o as_o god_n unwritten_a word_n after_o he_o keep_v a_o flutter_v between_o tradition_n and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n ask_v if_o they_o be_v convertible_a term_n and_o than_o whether_o any_o word_n of_o god_n be_v unwritten_a etc._n etc._n which_o digressive_a discourse_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o new_a turn_v in_o his_o labyrinth_n to_o avoid_v the_o foil_n he_o foresee_v himself_o in_o danger_n of_o in_o case_n he_o do_v here_o grapple_v with_o bellarmin_n who_o clear_o deliver_v his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n cap._n 2._o viz._n that_o the_o word_n tradition_n be_v general_a and_o signify_v any_o doctrine_n communicate_v from_o one_o to_o another_o whether_o it_o be_v write_v or_o unwritten_a by_o which_o it_o be_v evident_a he_o make_v not_o tradition_n and_o the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n convertible_a afterward_o he_o divide_v tradition_n into_o divine_a apostolical_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o again_o into_o tradition_n belong_v to_o faith_n and_o tradition_n belong_v to_o manner_n so_o that_o
after_o christ_n as_o much_o reason_n and_o ability_n to_o find_v this_o light_n in_o scripture_n as_o i_o can_v pretend_v to_o yet_o many_o book_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o discover_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o that_o divine_a light_n which_o shine_v in_o they_o send_v no_o such_o light_n to_o their_o eye_n but_o be_v under_o question_n among_o they_o whether_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o not_o till_o they_o be_v declare_v such_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o i_o wonder_v much_o how_o protestant_n receive_v the_o book_n of_o the_o old_a tement_n upon_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n hierome_n and_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n and_o press_v no_o other_o reason_n notwithstanding_o they_o hold_v the_o church_n may_v deceive_v we_o in_o the_o whole_a canon_n of_o scripture_n further_o say_v this_o discourse_a christian_a if_o one_o who_o have_v not_o yet_o examine_v the_o light_n of_o scripture_n itself_o but_o only_o take_v it_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o church-tradition_n shall_v deny_v for_o example_n st._n matthew'_v gospel_n to_o be_v the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n he_o can_v not_o in_o this_o opinion_n be_v count_v a_o heretic_n because_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v god_n word_n nay_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o even_o our_o bless_a saviour_n who_o be_v wisdom_n itself_o will_v have_v be_v esteem_v by_o all_o the_o world_n not_o a_o wise_a lawgiver_n but_o a_o mere_a ignoramus_n and_o impostor_n for_o have_v he_o not_o frame_v think_v you_o a_o strange_a and_o chimericall_a commonwealth_n be_v it_o alone_o destitute_a of_o a_o full_a and_o absolute_a power_n which_o all_o other_o well-ordered_a republic_n enjoy_v to_o give_v a_o authentical_a and_o unquestionable_a declaration_n which_o be_v the_o genuine_a and_o true_a law_n now_o he_o come_v close_a to_o the_o matter_n itself_o and_o examine_v how_o this_o pretend_a light_n shall_v be_v infallible_a and_o divine_a suppose_v the_o church_n testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n be_v humane_a only_o and_o fallible_a when_o i_o come_v discourse_n he_o with_o himself_o first_o to_o settle_v my_o thought_n to_o a_o serious_a read_n of_o scripture_n i_o have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o fallible_a authority_n recommend_v scripture_n to_o i_o that_o fallible_a authority_n can_v be_v no_o foundation_n much_o less_o a_o formal_n object_n for_o a_o divine_a and_o infallible_a assent_n to_o rest_v upon_o therefore_o before_o i_o thus_o begin_v to_o read_v scripture_n i_o have_v no_o infallible_a and_o divine_a faith_n that_o it_o be_v the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n the_o tradition_n therefore_o of_o the_o church_n to_o i_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o tradition_n of_o wise_a prudent_a and_o honest_a man_n who_o have_v no_o such_o assistance_n from_o god_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o preserve_v they_o from_o error_n suppose_v therefore_o that_o as_o the_o church_n may_v so_o she_o have_v err_v in_o testify_v some_o book_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n which_o real_o be_v not_o such_o in_o this_o supposition_n i_o shall_v have_v they_o all_o equal_o recommend_v to_o i_o as_o god_n word_n by_o the_o very_a same_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n then_o i_o fall_v to_o read_v serious_o and_o peruse_v all_o those_o which_o be_v call_v canonical_a book_n in_o the_o bible_n shall_v i_o ever_o think_v by_o my_o diligence_n in_o read_v to_o discover_v that_o the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n shine_v not_o in_o those_o book_n wherein_o the_o church_n err_v as_o it_o shine_v in_o the_o rest_n shall_v i_o discern_v canonical_a book_n wherein_o she_o err_v not_o from_o the_o not-canonicall_a by_o the_o light_n i_o find_v in_o they_o when_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o so_o many_o thousand_o learned_a bishop_n who_o have_v read_v they_o more_o studious_o and_o know_o then_o i_o can_v do_v never_o discern_v any_o such_o different_a light_n more_o in_o the_o one_o then_o in_o the_o other_o but_o put_v case_n i_o be_v able_a to_o discern_v this_o difference_n in_o scripture_n by_o the_o sole_a light_n of_o scripture_n what_o follow_v see_v the_o church_n have_v as_o universal_o recommend_v also_o very_a many_o unwritten_a tradition_n for_o apostolical_a and_o divine_a whereof_o some_o at_o least_o as_o the_o not-rebaptizing_a of_o those_o who_o be_v baptise_a by_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n be_v most_o certain_o true_a and_o as_o proper_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o their_o first_o delivery_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o the_o bishop_n confess_v as_o scripture_n itself_o why_o can_v i_o not_o by_o that_o light_n which_o shine_v in_o a_o true_a apostolical_a tradition_n as_o well_o distinguish_v it_o from_o a_o false_a one_o as_o by_o the_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o true_a book_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n distinguish_v that_o from_o a_o false_a one_o since_o god_n speak_v equal_o in_o both_o why_o shall_v there_o not_o be_v a_o equal_a light_n shine_v in_o both_o nay_o see_v the_o church_n in_o the_o definition_n of_o superstructure_n wherein_o his_o lordship_n make_v her_o fallible_a very_o often_o define_v aright_o why_o may_v not_o i_o find_v by_o the_o light_n which_o shine_v in_o such_o a_o definition_n that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a truth_n and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o that_o which_o be_v not_o the_o true_a voice_n of_o god_n and_o so_o take_v no_o other_o guide_n or_o judge_n to_o myself_o in_o divine_a matter_n then_o only_o my_o own_o knowledge_n of_o god_n speak_v to_o i_o after_o this_o he_o examine_v a_o while_n of_o what_o persuasion_n the_o holy_a father_n be_v in_o this_o matter_n and_o find_v that_o 4._o st._n irenaeus_n and_o 24._o st._n augustin_n in_o many_o place_n hold_v that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sufficient_a to_o find_v christian_a faith_n even_o without_o scripture_n and_o that_o for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v write_v at_o length_n he_o return_v again_o to_o your_o hide_a light_n in_o scripture_n and_o discourse_n thus_o if_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n how_o can_v i_o ever_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o she_o have_v not_o err_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la and_o define_v some_o book_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o real_o be_v not_o his_o word_n these_o you_o may_v imagine_v be_v the_o thought_n of_o our_o perplex_a christian_n who_o weary_v out_o with_o speculation_n and_o reflection_n fall_v in_o the_o close_a upon_o this_o result_n that_o either_o the_o church_n must_v be_v infallible_a in_o the_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n or_o there_o be_v no_o possible_a mean_n to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a which_o be_v scripture_n nay_o which_o be_v more_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o true_a scripture_n at_o all_o now_o we_o return_v to_o his_o lordship_n here_o his_o dedalian_a wind_n be_v disintricate_v and_o his_o reason_n 19_o easy_o solve_v for_o first_o church-tradition_n appear_v far_o from_o be_v too_o weak_a by_o advance_v the_o proposition_n i_o do_v before_o viz._n that_o to_o give_v a_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o church-tradition_n shall_v be_v absolute_o divine_a second_o i_o agree_v with_o our_o antagonist_n in_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prime_a christian_a church_n that_o it_o be_v absolute_o divine_a and_o yet_o aver_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o the_o solve_v of_o his_o argument_n to_o assert_v the_o like_a divine_a authority_n in_o the_o present_a church_n 7._o when_o he_o say_v that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o will_v not_o endure_v that_o the_o ibidem_fw-la often_o mention_a word_n of_o st._n augustin_n ego_fw-la vero_fw-la evangello_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v understand_v save_o of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o in_o proof_n of_o this_o cite_v occam_n in_o the_o margin_n i_o ask_v the_o relatour_n how_o can_v one_o single_a author_n be_v aliqui_fw-la some_o of_o our_o own_o in_o the_o plural_a number_n have_v he_o say_v only_o some_o one_o of_o our_o own_o it_o may_v have_v pass_v but_o to_o say_v some_o of_o we_o and_o then_o cite_v but_o one_o be_v to_o make_v a_o extreme_a narrow_a passage_n in_o his_o labyrinth_n shall_v julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la to_o lay_v a_o aspersion_n upon_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v say_v that_o some_o of_o they_o betray_v their_o master_n and_o then_o have_v name_v judas_n only_o and_o that_o some_o other_o deny_v he_o and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o have_v cite_v only_o st._n peter_n or_o shall_v a_o catholic_a to_o disgrace_v the_o protestant_a primacy_n of_o canterbury_n say_v that_o some_o of_o they_o carry_v a_o holy_a sister_n of_o the_o reform_a gospel_n lock_v up_o in_o a_o chest_n
the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o be_v also_o suitable_a to_o his_o word_n §_o 16._o num_fw-la 22._o we_o resolve_v say_v he_o mean_v faith_n into_o prime_a tradition_n apostolical_a and_o scripture_n itself_o and_o yet_o confess_v we_o have_v no_o mean_n to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o church-tradition_n he_o will_v fain_o have_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o we_o to_o consist_v only_o in_o this_o that_o we_o affirm_v church-tradition_n to_o be_v the_o formal_a object_n prime_a motive_n and_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v so_o but_o the_o difference_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o resolution_n we_o have_v already_o give_v be_v not_o in_o that_o for_o 2._o we_o be_v now_o both_o agree_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o say_v the_o faith_n of_o scripture_n be_v resolve_v into_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o its_o formal_a object_n or_o prime_a motive_n etc._n etc._n but_o the_o only_a substantial_a difference_n be_v this_o we_o say_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v infallible_a and_o that_o necessary_o to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v infallible_o apply_v the_o formal_a object_n to_o we_o you_o say_v it_o be_v fallible_a grant_v we_o once_o that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a and_o the_o controversy_n in_o this_o be_v end_v how_o our_o antagonist_n can_v resolve_v his_o faith_n as_o here_o he_o speak_v into_o 23._o the_o prime_n apostostolical_a tradition_n infallible_o without_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o present_a church_n i_o see_v not_o unless_o he_o can_v tell_v how_o to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a of_o that_o tradition_n without_o it_o which_o he_o know_v not_o well_o how_o to_o compass_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o next_o number_n so_o that_o now_o he_o abandon_v his_o fort_n again_o by_o not_o show_v how_o we_o can_v know_v infallible_o that_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v divine_a otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n for_o as_o to_o what_o he_o assert_v numb_a 21._o that_o there_o be_v a_o double_a authority_n and_o both_o divine_a viz._n apostolical_a tradition_n and_o scripture_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o we_o it_o do_v not_o satisfy_v the_o difficulty_n as_o i_o have_v prove_v but_o serve_v only_o to_o make_v one_o contrary_a turn_v upon_o another_o in_o his_o labyrinth_n so_o that_o you_o know_v not_o where_o to_o follow_v he_o for_o if_o church-tradition_n fail_v to_o ascertain_v we_o infallible_o of_o that_o divine_a apostolical_a tradition_n we_o be_v leave_v without_o all_o divine_a certainty_n whether_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n or_o no._n that_o the_o authority_n then_o of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v infallible_a may_v be_v thus_o sufficient_o prove_v we_o can_v be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v infallible_a for_o we_o acknowledge_v many_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o protestant_n admit_v not_o and_o they_o now_o hold_v some_o for_o such_o which_o have_v not_o be_v always_o approve_v for_o such_o and_o those_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n have_v be_v say_v by_o catholic_n to_o be_v corrupt_v other_o also_o cry_v up_o some_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n disallow_v if_o therefore_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o this_o point_n with_o what_o shadow_n of_o truth_n can_v protestant_n pretend_v to_o bring_v a_o infallible_a ground_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o tradition_n therefore_o of_o the_o church_n serve_v to_o assure_v we_o infallible_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o as_o his_o lordship_n will_v have_v it_o to_o work_v upon_o the_o mind_n of_o 21._o unbeliever_n to_o move_v they_o to_o read_v and_o consider_v the_o scripture_n or_o among_o novice_n weakling_n and_o doubter_n of_o faith_n to_o instruct_v and_o confirm_v they_o till_o they_o may_v acquaint_v themselves_o with_o and_o understand_v the_o scripture_n 2._o neither_o can_v the_o often_o cite_a place_n of_o st._n austin_n i_o will_v not_o believe_v the_o gospel_n etc._n etc._n be_v rational_o understand_v of_o the_o foresay_a novice_n weakling_n and_o doubter_n in_o the_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o st._n austin_n by_o those_o word_n give_v a_o reason_n why_o he_o than_o a_o bishop_n will_v not_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n of_o manichaeus_n and_o why_o no_o christian_a ought_v to_o follow_v it_o as_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v say_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o gospel_n believe_v it_o only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o condemn_v manichaeus_n it_o be_v impossible_a rational_o proceed_v to_o admit_v the_o gospel_n and_o follow_v manichaeus_n neither_o be_v the_o contrary_a any_o way_n deducible_a out_o of_o those_o word_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n §_o 16._o num_fw-la 21._o if_o thou_o shall_v find_v one_o who_o do_v not_o yet_o believe_v the_o gospel_n what_o will_v thou_o do_v to_o make_v he_o believe_v for_o the_o holy_a doctor_n there_o speak_v to_o manichaeus_n and_o show_v how_o neither_o infidel_n nor_o christian_n have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o apostleship_n of_o manicheus_fw-la not_o infidel_n because_o manichaeus_n prove_v this_o only_a out_o of_o scripture_n which_o they_o not_o admit_v may_v rational_o enough_o slight_v his_o proof_n not_o christian_n because_o they_o receive_v the_o scripture_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n can_v no_o more_o approve_v of_o the_o apostleship_n of_o manicheus_fw-la condemn_v by_o the_o church_n then_o if_o they_o admit_v not_o of_o scripture_n at_o all_o wherefore_o a._n c._n have_v no_o reason_n to_o pass_v by_o this_o place_n of_o st._n austin_n which_o his_o lordship_n say_v pag._n 82._o he_o urge_v at_o the_o conference_n unless_o it_o be_v because_o he_o do_v not_o then_o remember_v it_o as_o for_o the_o catholic_a author_n cite_v by_o the_o relatour_n certain_o they_o all_o hold_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v a_o infallible_a proof_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o though_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o forementioned_a place_n of_o st._n austin_n be_v of_o force_n for_o infidel_n novice_n and_o those_o who_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o scripture_n yet_o they_o aver_v not_o that_o it_o be_v of_o less_o force_n for_o all_o other_o but_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n appear_v more_o clear_o necessary_a against_o infidel_n and_o those_o who_o doubt_v of_o the_o faith_n for_o suppose_v a_o learned_a man_n be_v a_o infidel_n or_o doubt_v of_o scripture_n he_o will_v say_v if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v he_o can_v have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n if_o you_o tell_v he_o the_o church_n though_o subject_a to_o error_n be_v yet_o of_o authority_n enough_o to_o make_v he_o esteem_v the_o scripture_n and_o read_v it_o diligent_o and_o that_o then_o he_o will_v find_v such_o a_o inbred_a light_n in_o it_o as_o will_v assure_v he_o infallible_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o will_v reply_v he_o have_v do_v what_o you_o require_v and_o yet_o find_v no_o more_o inbred_a light_n in_o those_o book_n which_o protestant_n receive_v for_o canonical_a than_o he_o do_v in_o other_o which_o catholic_n admit_v but_o protestant_n reject_v as_o apocryphal_a no_o no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v in_o other_o counterfeit_a piece_n disapprove_v both_o by_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n 3._o who_o do_v not_o here_o most_o clear_o see_v that_o we_o can_v deal_v with_o such_o a_o man_n without_o the_o unerring_a or_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o we_o will_v have_v recourse_n to_o the_o private_a spirit_n from_o which_o though_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v so_o free_a that_o he_o exclude_v it_o from_o the_o very_a state_n of_o the_o question_n yet_o he_o fall_v into_o it_o and_o palliate_v it_o under_o the_o specious_a title_n of_o grace_n and_o where_o other_o use_v to_o say_v they_o be_v infallible_o resolve_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o spirit_n within_o they_o his_o lordship_n pag._n 83_o 84._o aver_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o assurance_n by_o grace_n so_o hold_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o calvinist_n in_o this_o particular_a he_o only_o change_v their_o word_n 4._o the_o relatour_n be_v very_o much_o out_o when_o he_o maintain_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o her_o tradition_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o still_o suppose_v throughout_o his_o whole_a discourse_n that_o whoever_o come_v to_o read_v scripture_n deliver_v by_o the_o church_n find_v
they_o still_o to_o correspond_v with_o the_o church_n recommendation_n that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o the_o inbred_a light_n that_o be_v in_o they_o which_o be_v a_o very_a artificial_a turn_v and_o needs_o a_o ariadne_n clew_n to_o pass_v through_o it_o for_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o never_o enter_v into_o nay_o never_o come_v near_o the_o main_a difficulty_n which_o be_v how_o one_o shall_v discover_v true_a scripture_n and_o discern_v it_o clear_o from_o false_a when_o the_o church_n through_o error_n deliver_v as_o well_o false_a as_o true_a to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o she_o may_v do_v if_o she_o be_v fallible_a yea_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v certain_o know_v whether_o the_o facto_fw-la she_o now_o err_v not_o in_o her_o delivery_n of_o it_o and_o see_v either_o they_o or_o we_o must_v err_v who_o be_v such_o a_o lynceus_n that_o by_o the_o sole_a light_n of_o scripture_n upon_o the_o recommendation_n of_o our_o respective_a church_n can_v discover_v which_o err_v in_o the_o number_n and_o designation_n of_o canonical_a book_n and_o which_o do_v not_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v gather_v by_o his_o discourse_n what_o they_o be_v to_o do_v who_o be_v unresolved_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o go_v about_o as_o most_o of_o our_o late_a sectary_n do_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n by_o the_o scripture_n for_o see_v such_o have_v not_o the_o usher_v and_o in-leading_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o the_o bishop_n speak_v they_o must_v either_o find_v out_o the_o true_a scripture_n by_o their_o sole_a light_n or_o by_o the_o private_a spirit_n or_o last_o by_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n which_o be_v all_o equal_o against_o our_o adversary_n shall_v he_o say_v they_o be_v first_o to_o find_v out_o the_o church_n by_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n as_o we_o hold_v and_o then_o take_v scripture_n from_o her_o induce_n though_o fallible_a authority_n i_o demand_v whether_o by_o those_o motive_n in_o his_o opinion_n one_o may_v become_v sufficient_o certain_a that_o the_o congregation_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o same_o be_v the_o true_a church_n if_o one_o can_v then_o antecedent_o to_o scripture_n one_o may_v infallible_o believe_v this_o main_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n and_o consequent_o may_v have_v divine_a and_o save_a faith_n which_o be_v suppose_v sole_a scripture_n will_v not_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o the_o bishop_n every_o where_o contend_v if_o one_o can_v be_v sufficient_o certain_a which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n by_o those_o motive_n as_o he_o must_v say_v than_o one_o may_v still_o doubt_v notwithstanding_o those_o motive_n whether_o that_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o no_o and_o consequent_o shall_v not_o have_v undoubted_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o induce_v he_o into_o the_o esteem_n and_o read_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o this_o case_n scripture_n must_v be_v know_v by_o its_o own_o light_n independent_o of_o the_o recommendation_n thereof_o from_o the_o church_n the_o instance_n he_o bring_v of_o logic_n evince_v not_o the_o truth_n of_o that_o for_o 21._o which_o it_o be_v bring_v since_o there_o be_v not_o any_o such_o analogy_n between_o logic_n and_o church-tradition_n as_o he_o labour_v to_o persuade_v his_o reader_n for_o though_o logic_n it_o be_v true_a do_v help_v as_o he_o say_v to_o open_v a_o man_n understanding_n and_o prepare_v he_o to_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v a_o truth_n viz._n in_o natural_a science_n wherewith_o it_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o connexion_n they_o all_o depend_v on_o natural_a reason_n yet_o church-tradition_n can_v so_o qualify_v the_o understanding_n as_o to_o enable_v it_o to_o see_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n but_o either_o make_v a_o man_n believe_v and_o receive_v it_o for_o such_o upon_o its_o sole_a authority_n or_o leave_v he_o as_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a touch_v this_o point_n as_o it_o do_v find_v he_o and_o for_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o they_o appear_v no_o more_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n than_o the_o star_n to_o be_v of_o a_o certain_a determinate_a number_n or_o the_o distinction_n of_o colour_n to_o a_o blind_a man_n wherefore_o if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v in_o this_o point_n yea_o and_o have_v err_v according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n because_o we_o hold_v many_o book_n for_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o they_o reject_v as_o apocryphal_a we_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v infallible_a certainty_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v have_v no_o certainty_n at_o all_o no_o nor_o so_o much_o light_n as_o to_o make_v a_o rational_a man_n lean_v more_o to_o one_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n then_o to_o the_o other_o neither_o at_o the_o first_o read_v of_o scripture_n nor_o afterward_o the_o same_o may_v be_v urge_v in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n for_o protestant_n hold_v that_o the_o church_n may_v err_v yea_o and_o have_v err_v in_o this_o and_o not_o only_o in_o small_a matter_n but_o in_o such_o which_o as_o they_o say_v have_v make_v we_o guilty_a of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n how_o then_o can_v one_o that_o doubt_n in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n resolve_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v for_o to_o speak_v modest_o he_o find_v as_o many_o and_o as_o learned_a man_n defend_v our_o canon_n of_o scripture_n against_o they_o as_o there_o be_v that_o defend_v their_o canon_n against_o we_o and_o as_o many_o stand_n for_o our_o interpretation_n as_o for_o they_o it_o be_v impossible_a therefore_o to_o satisfy_v such_o a_o man_n without_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n unless_o you_o will_v betake_v yourself_o to_o the_o private_a spirit_n which_o in_o other_o respect_n will_v bring_v you_o into_o as_o great_a strait_n and_o make_v way_n for_o all_o heretic_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v what_o scripture_n they_o please_v and_o interpret_v each_o place_n according_a to_o their_o own_o fancy_n pretend_v still_o and_o with_o as_o much_o reason_n as_o you_o can_v do_v the_o private_a spirit_n 5._o the_o bishop_n here_o require_v so_o many_o condition_n viz._n grammar_n ibidem_fw-la logic_n study_n comparison_n of_o scripture_n with_o itself_o and_o other_o write_n ordinary_a grace_n a_o mind_n moral_o induce_v and_o reasonable_o persuade_v by_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n that_o he_o scarce_o make_v any_o one_o capable_a to_o perceive_v this_o scripture-light_n and_o consequent_o attain_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n without_o which_o no_o true_a faith_n can_v subsist_v or_o be_v find_v in_o any_o person_n save_v only_a man_n of_o extraordinary_a part_n and_o learning_n which_o be_v a_o very_a obscure_a passage_n indeed_o in_o this_o his_o labyrinth_n much_o dark_a than_o our_o saviour_n ever_o make_v the_o way_n to_o heaven_n for_o that_o be_v a_o way_n so_o cam_fw-la plain_a and_o open_a that_o even_o fool_n can_v err_v in_o it_o isa._n 35._o 8._o but_o how_o come_v he_o now_o to_o require_v grace_n which_o himself_o before_o reject_v under_o the_o title_n of_o private_a spirit_n as_o not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o present_a question_n grace_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o subject_n that_o believe_v not_o to_o the_o object_n believe_v nor_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o propose_v it_o to_o fit_v it_o for_o belief_n if_o the_o scripture_n have_v that_o light_n he_o speak_v of_o it_o will_v be_v able_a to_o show_v itself_o so_o clear_o that_o every_o one_o may_v see_v it_o who_o will_v but_o serious_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o consider_v it_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o so_o clear_a it_o be_v a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o light_n of_o certainty_n and_o consequent_o need_v some_o other_o light_n to_o certify_v we_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o see_v this_o certainty_n be_v not_o such_o as_o make_v the_o thing_n reveal_v evident_a but_o only_o certify_v itself_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a revelation_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o our_o faith_n can_v rest_v hereupon_o it_o must_v make_v itself_o so_o certain_a that_o to_o whosoever_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v it_o be_v no_o less_o sin_n to_o dissent_v from_o it_o than_o it_o be_v to_o dissent_v from_o the_o voice_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n in_o those_o to_o who_o their_o authority_n be_v sufficient_o propound_v scripture_n therefore_o must_v either_o show_v its_o divine_a authority_n as_o clear_o by_o itself_o in_o his_o opinion_n as_o either_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n do_v they_o by_o their_o miracle_n and_o other_o sign_n of_o credibility_n or_o it_o will_v not_o sufficient_o manifest_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n so_o far_o as_o to_o induce_v a_o obligation_n of_o
see_v the_o dextrous_a wind_n the_o bishop_n make_v to_o turn_v hooker_n word_n another_o way_n he_o first_o will_v infer_v from_o these_o word_n of_o hooker_n so_o that_o unless_o beside_o scripture_n there_o be_v some_o thing_n that_o may_v assure_v etc._n etc._n that_o therefore_o he_o exclude_v not_o scripture_n though_o he_o call_v for_o another_o proof_n to_o lead_v it_o in_o and_o help_v in_o assurance_n namely_o tradition_n suppose_v that_o hooker_n speak_v of_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o i_o wonder_v by_o what_o daedalian_a art_n his_o lordship_n discourse_v thus_o mr._n hooker_n adversary_n the_o puritan_n have_v affirm_v that_o scripture_n prove_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o authority_n mr._n hooker_n assert_v it_o impossible_a for_o scripture_n to_o be_v its_o own_o proof_n after_o he_o have_v demonstrate_v this_o he_o tell_v his_o adversary_n that_o unless_o beside_o scripture_n there_o be_v another_o proof_n etc._n etc._n scripture_n can_v never_o be_v sufficient_o evince_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n ergo_fw-la say_v the_o bishop_n he_o himself_o against_o himself_o hold_v scripture_n to_o prove_v itself_o when_o every_o one_o that_o have_v his_o eye_n open_a may_v see_v that_o hooker_n meaning_n be_v there_o must_v be_v some_o other_o thing_n different_a from_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o that_o this_o manner_n of_o express_v himself_o unless_o beside_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n be_v occasion_v by_o his_o adversary_n opinion_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v unless_o beside_o scripture_n which_o you_o puritan_n have_v unground_o put_v for_o its_o own_o proof_n there_o be_v some_o other_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v sufficient_o to_o be_v scripture_n because_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o scripture_n which_o you_o false_o suppose_v to_o be_v that_o proof_n be_v no_o such_o proof_n at_o all_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v mr._n hooker_n make_v his_o apology_n for_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o word_n it_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o do_v or_o possible_o can_v assure_v we_o that_o we_o do_v well_o to_o think_v it_o be_v his_o word_n for_o if_o any_o one_o book_n of_o scripture_n do_v give_v testimony_n to_o all_o yet_o still_o that_o scripture_n which_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o rest_n will_v require_v another_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o it_o nor_o can_v we_o ever_o come_v to_o any_o pause_n to_o rest_v our_o assurance_n this_o way_n so_o that_o unless_o beside_o scripture_n there_o be_v something_o that_o may_v assure_v we_o that_o we_o do_v well_o we_o can_v not_o think_v we_o do_v well_o no_o not_o in_o be_v assure_v that_o scripture_n be_v a_o sacred_a and_o holy_a rule_n of_o do_v well_o hooker_n lib._n 2._o §_o 4._o be_v there_o any_o thing_n here_o which_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v a_o ground_n to_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n nay_o be_v not_o the_o impossibility_n hereof_o clear_o assert_v be_v not_o hooker_n in_o search_n after_o a_o assure_v ground_n upon_o which_o scripture_n must_v stand_v but_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v this_o ground_n whether_o mr._n hooker_n will_v or_o no_o only_a concomitant_a with_o scripture_n that_o be_v church-tradition_n only_o to_o lead_v in_o and_o help_v in_o assurance_n which_o assurance_n we_o get_v by_o the_o sole_a light_n of_o scripture_n whereas_o mr._n hooker_n will_v have_v that_o assurance_n both_o that_o scripture_n be_v a_o rule_n of_o live_v well_o and_o that_o we_o do_v well_o in_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v so_o and_o also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o his_o word_n now_o cite_v declare_v to_o be_v precedent_n to_o scripture_n and_o no_o other_o than_o church-tradition_n if_o therefore_o mr._n hooker_n be_v understand_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o scriptures-being_a proof_n to_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o his_o own_o opinion_n he_o maintain_v the_o very_a same_o in_o effect_n that_o we_o say_v and_o the_o quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o bishop_n viz._n that_o suppose_v we_o be_v assure_v by_o a_o proof_n precedent_n to_o scripture_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o i_o say_v presuppose_a scripture_n as_o by_o a_o secondary_a proof_n can_v confirm_v its_o own_o authority_n viz._n either_o where_o it_o teach_v that_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n which_o so_o assure_v we_o primary_o or_o that_o itself_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o turn_v be_v end_v he_o begin_v another_o and_o that_o a_o double_a one_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o brierley_n have_v shameful_o falsify_v hooker_n in_o say_v that_o the_o main_a proof_n which_o hooker_n bring_v to_o show_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n for_o that_o author_n say_v he_o state_n the_o question_n in_o these_o word_n the_o scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n the_o authority_n of_o man_n that_o be_v the_o name_n hooker_n give_v to_o tradition_n be_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n of_o entrance_n into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n now_o see_v his_o meander_n hooker_n say_v the_o bishop_n affirm_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n but_o be_v those_o all_o hooker_n word_n in_o that_o sentence_n no_o for_o i_o find_v among_o they_o a_o therein_o which_o be_v neat_o hide_a in_o a_o dark_a corner_n although_o say_v hooker_n the_o scripture_n therein_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n this_o one_o conceal_a word_n relate_v to_o something_o which_o will_v have_v quite_o spoil_v the_o bishop_n market_n have_v it_o be_v fair_o express_v what_o mean_v he_o by_o therein_o the_o word_n immediate_o go_v before_o tell_v we_o whatsoever_o say_v hooker_n we_o believe_v concern_v salvation_n by_o christ_n although_o the_o scripture_n therein_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o hooker_n rather_o exclude_v scripture_n from_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n concern_v that_o which_o the_o bishop_n here_o pretend_v viz._n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o word_n therein_o which_o hooker_n use_v be_v in_o this_o place_n clear_o relative_a and_o restrictive_a and_o tie_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o particular_a matter_n precedent_n viz._n to_o all_o thing_n concern_v salvation_n by_o christ._n as_o if_o hooker_n shall_v say_v good_a assurance_n be_v presuppose_v by_o some_o antecedent_n proof_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n scripture_n itself_o may_v then_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o our_o belief_n touch_v all_o other_o thing_n which_o concern_v our_o salvation_n by_o christ._n how_o do_v this_o place_n of_o hooker_n now_o full_o and_o faithful_o cite_v favour_v his_o lordship_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o have_v his_o brain_n about_o ibidem_fw-la he_o to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n but_o see_v how_o little_a it_o make_v to_o his_o purpose_n but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o man_n say_v hooker_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o key_n which_o open_v the_o door_n of_o entrance_n into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o ibidem_fw-la the_o scripture_n what_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n speak_v he_o of_o let_v mr._n hooker_n be_v his_o own_o interpreter_n and_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o open_v the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n he_o speak_v thus_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o teach_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o god_n unless_o we_o do_v credit_n man_n who_o have_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n do_v signify_v those_o thing_n stay_v a_o while_n by_o this_o key_n therefore_o which_o open_v the_o entrance_n into_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o mean_v in_o this_o place_n that_o church-tradition_n fallible_o assure_v we_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v fain_o interpret_v hooker_n but_o that_o it_o teach_v we_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o thereby_o open_v to_o we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o scripture_n by_o what_o have_v be_v say_v it_o be_v evident_a his_o lordship_n have_v very_o little_a reason_n to_o fall_v so_o hot_o upon_o brierley_n as_o to_o tax_v he_o of_o falsification_n as_o he_o do_v numb_a 25._o for_o hooker_n clear_o teach_v that_o beside_o scripture_n we_o must_v have_v the_o authority_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o brierley_n affirm_v no_o more_o of_o he_o then_o this_o i_o wonder_v that_o for_o speak_a truth_n he_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o deserve_v so_o sharp_a a_o censure_n from_o his_o lordship_n chap._n 8._o a_o further_a discovery_n of_o our_o adversary_n indirect_a proceed_n in_o the_o question_n argument_n 1._o the_o question_n decline_v by_o the_o bishop_n 2._o
scripture_n moral_o speak_v more_o obnoxious_a to_o alteration_n then_o universal_a tradition_n 3._o he_o mistake_v his_o adversary_n word_n contradict_v his_o brethren_n and_o himself_o falsify_v a._n c._n and_o most_o unhandsome_o traduce_v the_o whole_a order_n of_o the_o jesuit_n 4._o text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n maintain_v 5._o why_o each_o apostle_n infallible_a and_o not_o each_o bishop_n 6._o christ_n promise_n to_o his_o apostle_n when_o to_o be_v extend_v to_o their_o successor_n 7._o not_o the_o apostle_n only_o but_o their_o successor_n also_o settle_v in_o all_o truth_n 8._o the_o scripture_n the_o church_n and_o her_o motive_n of_o credibility_n not_o unfit_o compare_v to_o a_o king_n word_n his_o ambassador_n and_o his_o credential_n 9_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o henricus_n a_o gandavo_n misconstrue_v and_o the_o father_n misalledge_v 1._o the_o bishop_n num_fw-la 26._o of_o this_o paragraph_n to_o withdraw_v his_o reader_n 26._o from_o the_o thesis_n or_o main_a matter_n in_o question_n viz._n the_o church_n descend_v very_o dextrous_o indeed_o but_o yet_o without_o any_o necessity_n to_o the_o hypothesis_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o though_o a._n c._n believe_v that_o the_o roman_a in_o a_o true_a sense_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n yet_o here_o he_o abstract_n from_o that_o question_n and_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o he_o plain_o assert_n viz._n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a etc._n etc._n but_o whether_o they_o or_o we_o or_o some_o other_o congregation_n of_o christian_n be_v the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v another_o question_n of_o which_o a._n c._n affirm_v nothing_o in_o this_o place_n yet_o the_o relatour_n as_o if_o he_o be_v somewhat_o nettle_v be_v please_v to_o say_v that_o after_o a_o long_a ibidem_fw-la silence_n he_o thrust_v himself_o in_o again_o and_o desire_v the_o bishop_n to_o consider_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o fallible_a man_n but_o as_o a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n assist_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o may_v easy_o find_v it_o to_o be_v infallible_a true_o in_o my_o opinion_n a._n c._n deserve_v no_o rough_a language_n for_o his_o respect_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o be_v so_o long_o and_o silent_o attentive_a to_o his_o discourse_n though_o at_o length_n through_o zeal_n he_o become_v something_o earnest_a in_o the_o business_n out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o bring_v his_o adversary_n into_o the_o right_a way_n and_o to_o this_o end_n urge_v he_o to_o consider_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o fallible_a man_n but_o as_o a_o tradition_n of_o a_o company_n of_o man_n assist_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o holy_a spirit_n and_o not_o assist_v by_o they_o in_o any_o common_a way_n but_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o reach_v to_o infallibility_n for_o such_o assistance_n be_v necessary_a as_o well_o to_o have_v sufficient_a assurance_n of_o the_o true_a canon_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a meaning_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o such_o assistance_n the_o relatour_n confess_v the_o prophet_n to_o have_v have_v under_o ibidem_fw-la the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o apostle_n under_o the_o new_a the_o like_a we_o say_v the_o high_a priest_n with_o his_o clergy_n have_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n as_o we_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o 17._o of_o deuteronomy_n verse_n 8._o etc._n etc._n where_o in_o doubt_n the_o people_n be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o his_o clergy_n but_o to_o submit_v and_o stand_v to_o their_o judgement_n much_o more_o than_o ought_v we_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o obligation_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o can_v not_o stand_v without_o infallibility_n witness_v the_o infinite_a dissension_n and_o division_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n among_o all_o the_o different_a sect_n of_o christian_n that_o deny_v it_o neither_o have_v he_o any_o reason_n to_o break_v forth_o into_o those_o exclamation_n good_a god_n ibidem_fw-la whither_o will_v these_o man_n go_v for_o they_o go_v no_o further_o than_o christ_n himself_o lead_v they_o by_o promise_n make_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o place_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o shall_v be_v set_v down_o 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n may_v very_o well_o acknowledge_v this_o infallibility_n yet_o make_v it_o no_o occasion_n to_o lord_n it_o over_o other_o unless_o he_o will_v also_o accuse_v the_o apostle_n upon_o the_o same_o account_n neither_o do_v they_o equal_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n as_o the_o relatour_n urge_v to_o the_o write_a word_n of_o god_n and_o this_o have_v be_v show_v before_o touch_v what_o he_o write_v of_o divine_a infallibility_n we_o have_v already_o declare_v that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o our_o present_a purpose_n to_o assert_v church-tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a whether_o it_o be_v simple_o divine_a or_o no_o be_v another_o question_n to_o be_v determine_v when_o time_n and_o place_n require_v whence_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o equalize_a church-tradition_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o we_o have_v already_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o all_o respect_v equal_a to_o scripture_n again_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o thesis_n to_o the_o hypothesis_n we_o have_v nothing_o now_o to_o do_v with_o this_o question_n whether_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o his_o clergy_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o no_o but_o whether_o that_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v able_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o divine_a faith_n or_o no_o whatsoever_o congregation_n of_o christian_n it_o be_v so_o that_o his_o impeach_v the_o roman_a church_n of_o error_n here_o whilst_o we_o be_v in_o dispute_n about_o another_o question_n be_v whole_o out_o of_o season_n his_o answer_n to_o st._n basils_n text_n 17._o parem_fw-la vim_o habent_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la that_o unwritten_a tradition_n have_v equal_a force_n to_o stir_v up_o piety_n with_o the_o write_a word_n be_v very_o deficient_a first_o it_o be_v true_a he_o speak_v of_o apostolical_a tradition_n yet_o of_o such_o as_o be_v come_v down_o from_o their_o time_n to_o st._n basils_n for_o otherwise_o how_o shall_v they_o have_v have_v in_o his_o time_n any_o force_n at_o all_o to_o move_v to_o piety_n as_o he_o say_v they_o then_o have_v parem_fw-la vim_o habent_fw-la ad_fw-la pietatem_fw-la second_o his_o exception_n take_v against_o that_o work_n of_o st._n basil_n from_o bishop_n andrews_n and_o that_o borrow_a from_o erasmus_n and_o he_o collect_v it_o only_o from_o the_o stile_n which_o yet_o other_o far_a more_o ancient_a and_o better_o acquaint_v with_o st._n basils_n stile_n than_o erasmus_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v his_o this_o exception_n i_o say_v we_o esteem_v of_o no_o great_a force_n three_o st._n basils_n make_v the_o unwritten_a tradition_n whereof_o he_o speak_v to_o be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n prove_v not_o scripture_n itself_o so_o to_o be_v the_o touchstone_n of_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o that_o scripture_n must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v of_o great_a force_n and_o superior_a dignity_n then_o that_o of_o tradition_n for_o the_o bishop_n himself_o grant_v prime_a apostolical_a tradition_n to_o be_v equal_o divine_a with_o scripture_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v true_a to_o say_v that_o those_o prime_a tradition_n be_v such_o as_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o stapletons_n word_n be_v quite_o pervert_v by_o the_o bishop_n for_o he_o speak_v as_o his_o word_n clear_o intimate_v of_o late_a and_o fresh_a tradition_n then_o be_v the_o prime_n apostolical_a viz._n such_o as_o be_v begin_v by_o general_a council_n or_o perhaps_o in_o some_o particular_a church_n his_o word_n be_v recentiorem_fw-la &_o posteriorem_fw-la sicut_fw-la &_o particularem_fw-la etc._n etc._n which_o do_v not_o signify_v such_o tradition_n as_o we_o now_o treat_v of_o viz._n tradition_n primely_a apostolical_a deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n by_o the_o universal_a and_o constant_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o convey_v as_o such_o unto_o we_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n 2._o a._n c._n urge_v the_o present_a copy_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n press_v the_o relatour_n very_o hard_o as_o i_o have_v already_o show_v now_o i_o add_v what_o if_o the_o ancient_a copy_n disagree_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n his_o say_n that_o true_a scripture_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o 27._o know_v then_o true_a tradition_n because_o the_o one_o be_v write_v and_o not_o the_o other_o be_v not_o consequent_a
society_n questionless_a he_o mean_v chief_o be_v it_o not_o fine_a sport_n the_o bishop_n here_o make_v that_o a._n c._n by_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n must_v chief_o mean_v and_o that_o without_o all_o question_n or_o dispute_n those_o of_o his_o own_o society_n when_o it_o be_v well_o know_v there_o be_v scarce_o two_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n among_o all_o the_o jesuit_n in_o europe_n and_o then_o to_o mend_v the_o matter_n that_o he_o will_v have_v mr._n fisher_n and_o a._n c._n to_o be_v those_o two_o pastor_n when_o they_o neither_o be_v pastor_n nor_o can_v be_v unless_o he_o will_v suppose_v likewise_o they_o will_v break_v their_o vow_n make_v to_o almighty_a god_n for_o by_o pastor_n the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v mean_v bishop_n never_o to_o admit_v any_o such_o dignity_n without_o express_a command_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o how_o prove_v the_o bishop_n the_o jesuit_n persuade_v themselves_o they_o be_v infallible_a rabbi_n casaubon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d must_v help_v he_o out_o a_o apologist_n say_v casaubon_n aver_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o jesuit_n to_o err_v who_o be_v this_o anonymus_fw-la apologist_n a_o jesuit_n or_o a_o minister_n for_o a_o apologist_n and_o a_o jesuit_n be_v no_o more_o convertible_a term_n than_o a_o jesuit_n and_o a_o minister_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v then_o whether_o this_o nameless_a apologist_n be_v a_o jesuit_n or_o a_o minister_n personate_n a_o jesuit_n the_o gospel_n will_v tell_v we_o exit_fw-la fructibus_fw-la corum_fw-la cognoscetis_fw-la eos_fw-la be_v it_o possible_a 20._o his_o lordship_n shall_v think_v himself_o everable_a to_o move_v wise_a man_n with_o such_o non-proof_n as_o these_o the_o relatour_n have_v be_v so_o positive_a in_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v strange_a he_o shall_v think_v it_o needless_a for_o a._n c._n to_o urge_v passage_n of_o scripture_n in_o proof_n of_o it_o which_o though_o they_o be_v well_o know_v in_o this_o controversy_n yet_o be_v they_o not_o therefore_o of_o less_o force_n the_o first_o be_v in_o st._n luke_n where_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o hear_v you_o 16._o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o etc._n etc._n the_o second_o in_o st._n matthew_n where_o christ_n tell_v we_o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o 20._o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o three_o be_v in_o st._n john_n where_o it_o be_v write_v the_o comforter_n the_o 16._o holy_a ghost_n shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o to_o the_o first_o of_o these_o passage_n viz_o luke_n 10._o 16._o allege_v by_o a._n c._n the_o bishop_n answer_v that_o those_o who_o hear_v the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n 29._o hear_v christ_n viz._n when_o they_o speak_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o when_o they_o speak_v their_o own_o word_n but_o that_o this_o be_v rather_o to_o pervert_v our_o saviour_n word_n then_o to_o interpret_v they_o be_v manifest_a for_o can_v the_o bishop_n bring_v any_o ground_n from_o the_o text_n that_o this_o restraint_n may_v not_o by_o some_o other_o sectary_n who_o deny_v the_o apostle_n infallibility_n no_o less_o than_o the_o church_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o as_o well_o as_o he_o now_o apply_v it_o to_o their_o successor_n but_o his_o lordship_n have_v haply_o ground_n for_o what_o he_o say_v if_o not_o here_o yet_o in_o st._n matthew_n chap._n 28._o ver_fw-la 20._o where_o they_o be_v command_v to_o teach_v all_o thing_n which_o christ_n command_v they_o ergo_fw-la say_v i_o and_o with_o more_o reason_n for_o the_o command_n be_v give_v express_o and_o immediate_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o the_o apostle_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v hear_v when_o they_o preach_v other_o thing_n than_o what_o christ_n have_v command_v they_o and_o so_o both_o these_o text_n will_v either_o include_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o exclude_v it_o from_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o if_o he_o reply_v we_o ourselves_o must_v acknowledge_v a_o difference_n in_o apply_v this_o text_n to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n for_o it_o be_v true_a in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n apart_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o we_o confess_v in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o succeed_a pastor_n i_o answer_v first_o the_o difference_n allege_v by_o we_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a that_o our_o very_a adversary_n agree_v with_o we_o in_o it_o second_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o experience_n itself_o that_o many_o pastor_n even_o of_o very_o eminent_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n have_v not_o only_o err_v but_o invent_v and_o maintain_v heresy_n three_o we_o have_v the_o universal_a tradition_n and_o consent_n in_o all_o age_n that_o all_o pastor_n apart_o be_v not_o infallible_a four_o we_o have_v plain_a scripture_n for_o it_o act_v 20._o 30._o where_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o even_o from_o among_o themselves_o that_o be_v from_o among_o the_o pastor_n and_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n to_o who_o he_o there_o speak_v ver_fw-la 17_o 28._o there_o shall_v arise_v some_o in_o future_a age_n that_o shall_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n five_o we_o so_o interpret_v the_o word_n for_o future_a age_n that_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o preserve_v the_o church_n in_o the_o purity_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v still_o subsistent_a in_o all_o age_n in_o the_o infallibility_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n whereby_o we_o make_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n in_o both_o text_n absolute_o true_a without_o all_o if_n and_o condition_n which_o our_o adversary_n exposition_n do_v utter_o frustrate_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n six_o we_o according_a to_o the_o most_o receive_a persuasion_n among_o we_o preserve_v that_o infallibility_n in_o one_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n successive_o which_o they_o continue_v neither_o in_o one_o nor_o in_o all_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n assemble_v together_o let_v those_o therefore_o of_o his_o lordship_n party_n bring_v as_o strong_a reason_n for_o the_o bishop_n exposition_n of_o this_o text_n of_o st._n luke_n 10._o 16._o as_o we_o do_v for_o we_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v unwilling_a to_o yield_v to_o it_o but_o we_o and_o they_o too_o know_v that_o to_o be_v impossible_a his_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o place_n matth._n 28._o 20._o i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n run_v in_o the_o same_o strain_n with_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o former_a text_n and_o so_o require_v not_o our_o further_a refutation_n we_o extend_v those_o word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o whole_a church_n representative_a not_o to_o every_o pastor_n apart_o whereby_o st._n 29._o gregory_n text_n be_v no_o way_n against_o we_o for_o he_o speak_v of_o preacher_n take_v several_o and_o apart_o we_o say_v also_o with_o rhabanus_fw-la maurus_n that_o christ_n in_o his_o holy_a spirit_n be_v always_o present_a with_o his_o church_n diffusive_a in_o communicate_v his_o grace_n unto_o it_o but_o that_o suppose_v at_o least_o deny_v not_o a_o conjunctive_a infallibility_n of_o the_o pastor_n as_o a_o necessary_a foundation_n and_o support_v of_o the_o church_n diffusive_a whence_o it_o appear_v how_o vain_a the_o bishop_n challenge_n be_v whereby_o he_o urge_v we_o to_o show_v any_o one_o father_n 29._o of_o the_o church_n that_o extend_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n to_o divine_a and_o infallible_a assistance_n grant_v thereby_o to_o all_o the_o aposties_n successor_n for_o as_o to_o divine_a assistance_n we_o have_v all_o along_o prove_v it_o not_o to_o be_v necessary_a but_o as_o to_o infallible_a assistance_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o father_n in_o effect_n do_v attribute_v such_o a_o prerogative_n to_o the_o church_n viz._n that_o christ_n do_v assist_v and_o preserve_v she_o from_o error_n in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o teach_v ecclesiae_fw-la that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v adulterate_v with_o heresy_n 18._o that_o what_o she_o once_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n she_o ever_o hold_v 29._o that_o she_o can_v never_o fail_v trinitat_fw-la that_o her_o faith_n be_v invincible_a even_o to_o the_o very_a power_n of_o hell_n 54._o that_o she_o be_v found_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o truth_n for_o ever_o isa._n that_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n can_v pervert_v the_o tradition_n of_o her_o doctrine_n and_o the_o like_a which_o see_v also_o they_o limit_v not_o to_o any_o determinate_a age_n or_o age_n but_o extend_v indefinite_o to_o all_o it_o be_v likewise_o clear_a that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n this_o assistance_n be_v grant_v and_o intend_v by_o christ_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o the_o sense_n above_o declare_v but_o whether_o the_o father_n ground_n their_o doctrine_n
in_o this_o point_n upon_o this_o particular_a text_n or_o no_o be_v little_a material_a it_o be_v sufficient_a they_o acknowledge_v the_o thing_n we_o contend_v for_o viz._n the_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n and_o immunity_n from_o error_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o general_o derive_v it_o from_o our_o saviour_n special_a promise_n unto_o the_o church_n and_o his_o presence_n with_o it_o which_o presence_n and_o promise_v this_o text_n with_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n do_v clear_o contain_v as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v wherefore_o with_o far_o great_a reason_n we_o return_v the_o challenge_n upon_o himself_o and_o press_v the_o relatours_n party_n to_o produce_v any_o one_o father_n that_o ever_o deny_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o place_n to_o reach_v to_o infallible_a assistance_n grant_v thereby_o to_o all_o the_o apostle_n successor_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o we_o maintain_v it_o the_o like_a answer_n of_o our_o satisfy_v his_o exposition_n of_o the_o three_o place_n john_n 14._o 16._o for_o what_o be_v promise_v there_o for_o ever_o must_v in_o some_o absolute_a sense_n so_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n from_o error_n be_v verify_v in_o future_a age_n he_o frame_v also_o a_o answer_n to_o a_o four_o place_n viz._n john_n 16._o 13._o which_o speak_v of_o lead_v the_o apostle_n into_o all_o truth_n this_o he_o restrain_v to_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o and_o he_o need_v not_o tell_v we_o so_o often_o of_o simple_o all_o for_o sure_o none_o be_v so_o simple_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o without_o his_o tell_n it_o but_o we_o contend_v that_o in_o whatsoever_o sense_n all_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v in_o respect_n of_o each_o apostle_n apart_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o relation_n to_o their_o successor_n assemble_v in_o a_o full_a representative_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n 5._o now_o one_o main_a reason_n of_o this_o difference_n between_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n i_o take_v to_o be_v this_o that_o every_o apostle_n apart_o have_v receive_v a_o immediate_a power_n from_o our_o saviour_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o that_o whatever_o any_o one_o of_o they_o teach_v as_o christian_a faith_n all_o the_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v and_o consequent_o have_v he_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n the_o whole_a church_n will_v have_v be_v oblige_v to_o follow_v and_o believe_v that_o error_n whereas_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o succeed_a bishop_n general_o speak_v be_v not_o to_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o each_o of_o his_o own_o respective_a diocese_n so_o that_o if_o particular_a pastor_n preach_v any_o error_n in_o faith_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v unconcern_v in_o it_o have_v no_o obligation_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o in_o regard_n those_o respective_a pastor_n when_o they_o be_v assemble_v in_o a_o lawful_a representative_a or_o general_a council_n be_v in_o quality_n of_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n if_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o such_o a_o body_n the_o whole_a church_n will_v be_v oblige_v to_o err_v with_o they_o which_o be_v against_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n hence_o also_o it_o follow_v in_o proportion_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n when_o he_o teach_v any_o thing_n in_o that_o quality_n viz._n as_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o intend_v to_o oblige_v the_o whole_a church_n by_o his_o definition_n can_v in_o the_o common_a opinion_n err_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n 6._o to_o give_v also_o the_o fundamental_a reason_n for_o this_o exposition_n one_o and_o that_o a_o certain_a way_n to_o know_v when_o our_o saviour_n word_n speak_v immediate_o to_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o their_o successor_n in_o all_o age_n be_v this_o that_o when_o the_o necessary_a good_a and_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n require_v the_o performance_n of_o christ_n word_n in_o future_a age_n no_o less_o than_o it_o require_v it_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v that_o his_o word_n extend_v themselves_o to_o those_o age_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o express_a limitation_n add_v to_o his_o word_n tie_v they_o to_o the_o apostle_n only_o thus_o when_o our_o saviour_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o preach_v baptise_v remit_v sin_n feed_v their_o flock_n etc._n etc._n see_v these_o action_n be_v as_o necessary_a for_o all_o future_a age_n as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o be_v to_o reach_v to_o all_o succeedinga_fw-mi ge_n again_o in_o regard_n he_o also_o promise_v john_n 16._o 13._o to_o lead_v the_o apostle_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n into_o all_o truth_n and_o see_v it_o be_v as_o necessary_a now_o for_o those_o who_o act_n as_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o all_o succeed_a bishop_n do_v when_o they_o meet_v in_o a_o lawful_a ecumenical_a council_n to_o be_v lead_v into_o all_o those_o truth_n into_o which_o he_o promise_v to_o lead_v the_o apostle_n for_o the_o reason_n but_o now_o allege_v it_o evident_o follow_v by_o virtue_n of_o our_o saviour_n promise_n that_o they_o be_v always_o and_o effectual_o so_o lead_v and_o though_o it_o will_v be_v boldness_n as_o the_o relatour_n term_v it_o to_o enlarge_v that_o promise_n in_o the_o fullness_n of_o it_o beyond_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n so_o far_o as_o to_o give_v to_o every_o single_a succeed_a bishop_n as_o infallible_a a_o lead_n into_o all_o truth_n as_o each_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v yet_o may_v it_o without_o any_o boldness_n at_o all_o be_v affirm_v that_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n assemble_v as_o abovesaid_a have_v a_o infallible_a lead_n into_o all_o truth_n as_o be_v then_o representative_a pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v she_o what_o she_o be_v to_o believe_v st._n augustine_n etc._n word_n therefore_o which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v call_v they_o in_o a_o manner_n prophetical_a be_v not_o with_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o reason_n applyable_a to_o we_o but_o to_o a_o world_n of_o fanatic_n spring_v from_o the_o stock_n of_o protestancy_n and_o who_o still_o pass_v under_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o protestant_n and_o this_o i_o may_v bold_o assert_v in_o regard_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o say_v great_a saint_n and_o doctor_n hold_v the_o selfsame_a doctrine_n we_o here_o maintain_v while_o for_o instance_n he_o account_v our_o obligation_n to_o communicate_v fast_v to_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n of_o which_o will_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n we_o be_v not_o ascertain_v by_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n alone_o jannar_n it_o be_v manifest_a say_v he_o that_o when_o the_o disciple_n first_o receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n they_o do_v not_o receive_v fast_v must_v we_o therefore_o calumniate_v the_o universal_a church_n for_o always_o receive_v fast_v since_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v please_v herewith_o that_o in_o honour_n of_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o a_o christian_n mouth_n before_o any_o other_o meat_n for_o this_o cause_n this_o custom_n be_v observe_v throughout_o the_o world_n i_o may_v easy_o produce_v several_a other_o instance_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n if_o this_o one_o be_v not_o sufficient_a as_o i_o presume_v it_o be_v 7._o neither_o have_v the_o bishop_n any_o ground_n to_o aver_v that_o this_o promise_n of_o settle_v the_o apostle_n in_o all_o truth_n be_v for_o the_o person_n of_o the_o apostle_n only_o because_o the_o truth_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v settle_v be_v to_o continue_v inviolable_o in_o the_o church_n what_o wise_a man_n will_v go_v about_o to_o raise_v a_o stately_a building_n to_o continue_v for_o many_o age_n and_o satisfy_v himself_o with_o lay_v a_o foundation_n to_o last_v but_o for_o few_o year_n our_o saviour_n the_o wise_a of_o architect_n be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v to_o have_v found_v this_o incomparable_a building_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o sand_n which_o must_v infallible_o have_v happen_v have_v he_o not_o intend_v to_o afford_v his_o continual_a assistance_n also_o to_o the_o succeed_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o lead_v they_o when_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n into_o all_o those_o truth_n wherein_o he_o first_o settle_v the_o apostle_n as_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n above_o attest_n etc._n the_o church_n never_o change_v nor_o diminish_v nor_o add_v any_o thing_n at_o all_o nihil_fw-la unquam_fw-la no_o she_o change_v nothing_o she_o neither_o cut_v off_o any_o thing_n necessary_a nor_o adjoin_v any_o thing_n superfluous_a she_o lose_v not_o what_o be_v she_o own_o she_o usurp_v not_o what_o belong_v to_o another_o etc._n etc._n but_o only_o
this_o divine_a authority_n to_o that_o company_n of_o man_n or_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a._n c._n there_o discourse_v of_o one_o who_o consider_v church-tradition_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v from_o a_o company_n of_o man_n assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v thus_o he_o will_v find_v no_o difficulty_n in_o that_o respect_n to_o account_v the_o authority_n of_o church-tradition_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o consequent_o not_o only_a able_a to_o be_v a_o introduction_n but_o also_o a_o infallible_a motive_n or_o reason_n or_o at_o least_o a_o condition_n exit_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la to_o make_v both_o itself_o and_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n appear_v infallible_o though_o obscure_o to_o have_v in_o they_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o to_o be_v worthy_a of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a credit_n sufficient_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n these_o word_n in_o they_o be_v clear_o refer_v to_o book_n of_o scripture_n not_o to_o any_o company_n of_o man_n and_o those_o word_n sufficient_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o divine_a faith_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n and_o not_o to_o those_o man_n for_o though_o he_o put_v before_o two_o antecedent_n itself_o that_o be_v church_n tradition_n and_o book_n of_o scripture_n to_o both_o which_o in_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v relation_n yet_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o affirm_v that_o church-tradition_n have_v in_o it_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n and_o another_o to_o affirm_v that_o those_o man_n so_o assist_v have_v in_o they_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n as_o he_o accuse_v a._n c._n to_o have_v say_v for_o see_v that_o in_o church-tradition_n be_v include_v apostolical_a tradition_n in_o a._n c_n principle_n and_o that_o even_o according_a to_o our_o adversary_n apostolical_a tradition_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n it_o will_v be_v true_a to_o assert_v that_o church-tradition_n have_v in_o it_o divine_a authority_n even_o though_o those_o man_n deliver_v it_o have_v not_o in_o they_o any_o absolute_a divine_a but_o only_o infallible_a authority_n our_o apology_n for_o a._n c._n be_v end_v let_v we_o see_v how_o his_o lordship_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n for_o the_o better_a understanding_n whereof_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v what_o he_o be_v to_o prove_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o his_o method_n and_o manner_n of_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o 32._o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o same_o which_o the_o ancient_a church_n ever_o hold_v etc._n etc._n now_o his_o lordship_n method_n and_o manner_n of_o prove_v this_o include_v two_o particular_n the_o first_o that_o church-tradition_n be_v only_o a_o humane_a moral_a and_o fallible_a inducement_n able_a only_o to_o found_v a_o moral_a persuasion_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o insufficient_a to_o convey_v infallible_o to_o we_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n of_o the_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o before_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n we_o can_v in_o virtue_n of_o that_o apostolical_a tradition_n thus_o convey_v to_o we_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o position_n the_o second_o be_v that_o scripture_n by_o the_o internal_a light_n which_o be_v in_o it_o find_v a_o divine_a faith_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o we_o frame_v a_o high_a moral_a esteem_n of_o it_o and_o be_v induce_v to_o read_v it_o as_o a_o thing_n most_o likely_a to_o be_v god_n word_n by_o the_o fallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n while_o therefore_o he_o here_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o his_o method_n and_o manner_n of_o prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v according_a to_o the_o use_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n let_v we_o have_v a_o eye_n to_o these_o two_o point_n and_o see_v whether_o his_o authority_n prove_v they_o or_o no._n first_o then_o his_o authority_n must_v prove_v that_o before_o we_o read_v scripture_n itself_o we_o have_v not_o divine_a faith_n but_o only_o a_o moral_a persuasion_n by_o church-tradition_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o cite_v first_o vincentius_n 1._o lirinensis_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 1._o who_o make_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v confirm_v both_o by_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o faith_n he_o here_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o any_o humane_a fallible_a persuasion_n but_o true_a christian_a and_o divine_a faith_n for_o he_o oppose_v it_o to_o heresy_n and_o call_v it_o sound_v faith_n and_o his_o faith_n fidem_fw-la svam_fw-la the_o faith_n of_o a_o christian_a nay_o he_o say_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n must_v needs_o as_o true_o munire_fw-la fidem_fw-la confirm_v divine_a faith_n as_o scripture_n though_o scripture_n do_v it_o in_o a_o more_o high_a and_o noble_a manner_n as_o be_v the_o immediate_a prime_a revelation_n of_o god_n this_o then_o prove_v not_o his_o intent_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a second_o henricus_fw-la à_fw-la gandavo_fw-la say_v express_o credunt_fw-la per_fw-la istam_fw-la famam_fw-la they_o believe_v by_o this_o relation_n of_o church-tradition_n and_o this_o be_v such_o a_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o enter_v their_o heart_n by_o mean_n of_o the_o church_n christus_fw-la intrat_fw-la per_fw-la mulierem_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la but_o christ_n can_v enter_v into_o a_o soul_n by_o a_o mere_a humane_a fallible_a persuasion_n but_o by_o divine_a faith_n only_o a_o gandavo_n go_v on_o plus_fw-fr verbis_fw-la christi_fw-la in_o scripture_n credit_n quam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la testificanti_fw-la ergo_fw-la credit_n ecclesiae_fw-la he_o believe_v the_o church_n but_o how_o can_v he_o believe_v without_o faith_n a_o little_a after_o à_fw-fr gandavo_n say_v primam_fw-la fidem_fw-la tribuamus_fw-la scripture_n canonicis_fw-la secundam_fw-la subistâ_fw-la definitionibus_fw-la &_o consuetudinibus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la here_o be_v prima_fw-la &_o secunda_fw-la fides_fw-la but_o yet_o both_o of_o they_o be_v proper_o and_o true_o faith_n and_o to_o the_o end_n all_o may_v understand_v he_o mean_v no_o other_o but_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a faith_n as_o to_o be_v give_v both_o to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n he_o add_v a_o three_o manner_n of_o give_v credit_n to_o other_o post_z istas_fw-la studiosis_fw-la viris_fw-la non_fw-la sub_fw-la poenâ_fw-la ibidem_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la sed_fw-la proterviae_fw-la after_o these_o two_o viz._n scripture_n and_o church-definition_n he_o say_v we_o believe_v also_o learned_a man_n but_o in_o a_o far_o other_o degree_n of_o assent_n from_o that_o which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o church_n non_fw-la sub_fw-la poenâ_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la sed_fw-la proterviae_fw-la for_o the_o credit_n we_o give_v to_o they_o oblige_v not_o under_o pain_n of_o infidelity_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n if_o we_o dissent_v from_o they_o but_o under_o pain_n of_o pertinacious_a pride_n in_o prefer_v ourselves_o before_o they_o see_v therefore_o he_o add_v this_o limitation_n to_o the_o three_o kind_n of_o belief_n only_o he_o tacit_o grant_v that_o if_o we_o contradict_v either_o scripture_n or_o church_n it_o be_v sub_fw-la poenâ_fw-la perfidiae_fw-la under_o pain_n of_o infidelity_n and_o not_o of_o proterviousness_n only_o ergo_fw-la he_o account_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o infallible_o of_o divine_a truth_n otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o be_v infidelity_n error_n in_o faith_n or_o heresy_n to_o contradict_v they_o last_o à_fw-la gandavo_fw-la be_v cite_v in_o these_o word_n quod_fw-la autem_fw-la credimus_fw-la ibidem_fw-la posterioribus_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o be_v credimus_fw-la again_o and_o that_o with_o a_o divine_a faith_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o assert_v present_o that_o it_o be_v clear_a constat_fw-la that_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n preach_v by_o the_o former_a pastor_n be_v not_o change_v by_o their_o successor_n and_o this_o do_v constare_fw-la ex_fw-la consensione_n concordi_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d omnium_fw-la succedentium_fw-la 〈◊〉_d ad_fw-la tempor_fw-la a_o nostra_fw-la by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o succeeder_n even_o to_o our_o present_a time_n but_o sure_a a_o thing_n that_o be_v fallible_a uncertain_a and_o questionable_a can_v be_v say_v constare_fw-la to_o be_v clear_a and_o unquestionable_a as_o he_o affirm_v the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o succeed_a age_n to_o be_v now_o the_o bishop_n mince_v it_o in_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o word_n constat_fw-la turn_v it_o now_o it_o appear_v for_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v to_o appear_v either_o clear_o or_o obscure_o he_o shall_v therefore_o have_v rather_o translate_v it_o now_o it_o evident_o appear_v have_v he_o not_o intend_v to_o make_v some_o pretty_a turn_v by_o his_o translation_n hence_o be_v evince_v that_o every_o
one_o of_o his_o authority_n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o church-tradition_n find_v only_o a_o probable_a humane_a persuasion_n that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n rather_o evince_v the_o quite_o contrary_a the_o second_o point_n to_o be_v conclude_v be_v that_o scripture_n thus_o lead_v in_o by_o the_o church_n prove_v itself_o infallible_o and_o divine_o by_o its_o internal_a light_n to_o such_o as_o have_v no_o supernatural_a faith_n precedent_o this_o he_o labour_v to_o evince_v from_o some_o expression_n of_o the_o father_n who_o use_v sometime_o the_o like_a proof_n to_o show_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o first_o do_v they_o always_o bring_v these_o proof_n to_o such_o as_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n before_o of_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n do_v they_o not_o use_v they_o both_o for_o themselves_o and_o other_o who_o precedent_o have_v a_o divine_a faith_n of_o that_o point_n second_o do_v the_o father_n say_v that_o those_o proof_n of_o they_o be_v the_o primary_n infallible_a and_o divine_a proof_n of_o scriptures-being_a the_o word_n of_o god_n 〈◊〉_d do_v they_o not_o rather_o use_v they_o as_o secondary_a argument_n persuasive_a only_o to_o such_o as_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n precedent_o to_o they_o three_o do_v they_o use_v only_o such_o proof_n as_o be_v whole_o internal_a to_o scripture_n itself_o all_o these_o condition_n must_v be_v make_v good_a to_o make_v a_o full_a proof_n for_o his_o purpose_n out_o of_o they_o now_o touch_v the_o two_o first_o condition_n it_o be_v evident_a these_o proof_n be_v make_v by_o christian_n namely_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o common_o to_o christian_n who_o live_v in_o their_o time_n and_o as_o clear_a be_v it_o that_o they_o never_o pronounce_v they_o to_o be_v the_o primary_n infallible_a and_o divine_a motive_n of_o their_o belief_n in_o that_o point_n not_o use_v they_o they_o as_o such_o and_o for_o the_o three_o condition_n viz._n of_o the_o proof_n be_v internal_a to_o scripture_n they_o be_v not_o all_o such_o for_o first_o that_o of_o miracle_n be_v external_a the_o scripture_n themselves_o work_v none_o neither_o be_v ever_o any_o miracle_n wrought_v to_o confirm_v that_o all_o the_o book_n now_o in_o the_o canon_n and_o no_o more_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n second_o the_o conversion_n of_o so_o many_o people_n and_o nation_n by_o the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o scripture_n be_v also_o external_a to_o scripture_n unless_o haply_o it_o come_v by_o read_v the_o scripture_n and_o not_o by_o the_o declaration_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o prove_v not_o and_o the_o contrary_n be_v rather_o manifest_a again_o many_o other_o book_n beside_o scripture_n contain_v the_o same_o doctrine_n yet_o be_v not_o thereby_o prove_v to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v not_o many_o thousand_o convert_v to_o that_o humble_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n before_o divers_a of_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v write_v nay_o many_o whole_a nation_n as_o st._n irenaeus_n already_o allege_v witness_n some_o hundred_o of_o year_n after_o the_o say_v book_n be_v write_v who_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o scripture_n but_o suppose_v these_o four_o proof_n mention_v by_o the_o bishop_n viz._n first_o miracle_n second_o doctrine_n nothing_o carnal_a three_o performance_n of_o it_o four_o the_o conversion_n almost_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o this_o doctrine_n have_v be_v all_o of_o they_o internal_a to_o scripture_n yet_o how_o prove_v they_o infallible_o and_o divine_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n persuade_v true_o they_o may_v but_o convince_v they_o can_v touch_v the_o first_o how_o will_v it_o appear_v that_o miracle_n be_v ever_o wrought_v in_o immediate_a proof_n of_o the_o whole_a bible_n as_o it_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o canon_n as_o for_o the_o second_o how_o many_o book_n be_v there_o beside_o scripture_n which_o have_v nothing_o of_o carnal_a doctrine_n at_o all_o in_o they_o concern_v the_o three_o and_o four_o how_o can_v it_o ever_o be_v prove_v that_o either_o the_o performance_n of_o this_o doctrine_n or_o the_o conversion_n of_o nation_n be_v internal_a to_o scripture_n but_o who_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v that_o his_o lordship_n for_o these_o four_o motive_n shall_v so_o easy_o make_v the_o scripture_n give_v divine_a testimony_n to_o itself_o upon_o which_o our_o faith_n must_v rest_v and_o yet_o deny_v the_o same_o privilege_n to_o the_o church_n see_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o every_o one_o of_o these_o motive_n be_v much_o more_o immediate_o and_o clear_o applyable_a to_o the_o church_n then_o to_o scripture_n for_o first_o miracle_n have_v most_o copious_o and_o familiar_o confirm_v the_o authority_n and_o lawful_a mission_n of_o the_o pastor_n second_o the_o doctrine_n of_o god_n true_a church_n have_v nothing_o of_o carnal_a in_o it_o the_o performance_n or_o verify_v of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v only_o find_v in_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n last_o it_o be_v the_o church_n that_o have_v preach_v this_o humble_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o have_v convert_v and_o still_o do_v convert_v nation_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o and_o submission_n to_o it_o who_o see_v not_o by_o this_o that_o while_o he_o dispute_v most_o eager_o against_o the_o present_a church_n infallibility_n he_o argue_v main_o for_o it_o chap._n 9_o a_o end_n of_o the_o controversy_n touch_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n argument_n 1._o st._n augustine_n word_n explicate_v 2._o the_o bishop_n can_v avoid_v the_o circle_n without_o mis-stating_a the_o question_n 3._o he_o wave_v the_o difficulty_n 4._o st._n cyril_n and_o st._n augustine_n word_n examine_v 5._o the_o bishop_n eight_o point_n of_o consideration_n weigh_v and_o find_v too_o light_a 6._o according_a to_o his_o principle_n no_o man_n can_v lawful_o say_v his_o creed_n till_o he_o have_v learn_v the_o article_n thereof_o out_o of_o scripture_n 7._o his_o synthetical_a way_n one_o of_o the_o dark_a passage_n in_o his_o labyrinth_n 8._o scripture_n when_o and_o by_o who_o to_o be_v suppose_v for_o god_n word_n 9_o his_o lordship_n argue_v a_o dicto_fw-la secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la dictum_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la 10._o bring_v non-cognita_a for_o praecognita_fw-la and_o prove_v what_o he_o affirm_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v 11._o the_o jew_n resolve_v their_o faith_n into_o tradition_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o do_v 12._o moral_a certainty_n not_o absolute_o infallible_a 1._o it_o be_v now_o high_a time_n to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o controversy_n touch_v the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o resolution_n of_o faith_n which_o i_o shall_v have_v do_v long_o since_o have_v not_o our_o antagonist_n lead_v we_o so_o long_o and_o so_o intricate_a a_o dance_n through_o the_o redouble_a meander_n of_o his_o labyrinth_n st._n augustine_n prove_v scripture_n by_o a_o internal_a argument_n 32._o lib._n 13._o cap._n 5._o contr_n faust._n make_v little_a for_o the_o bishop_n purpose_n unless_o st._n austin_n either_o affirm_v that_o argument_n to_o be_v such_o as_o faith_n may_v full_o rest_v upon_o as_o its_o primary_n formal_a motive_n and_o object_n for_o proof_n of_o scripture_n or_o that_o he_o himself_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v so_o for_o st._n austin_n often_o urge_v argument_n which_o be_v only_o secondary_a and_o probable_a yea_o sometime_o pure_o conjectural_a in_o this_o kind_n see_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o the_o 2._o margin_n what_o the_o bishop_n quote_v out_o of_o thomas_n waldensis_n doct._n fid._n tom._n 1._o lib._n 2._o art_n 2._o cap._n 23._o num_fw-la 9_o that_o if_o the_o church_n shall_v speak_v anything_o contrary_n to_o scripture_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v she_o be_v most_o true_a but_o it_o be_v likewise_o as_o true_a what_o st._n austin_n say_v above_o contr_n epist._n fundament_n cap._n 5._o that_o if_o the_o scripture_n shall_v speak_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o church_n we_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o neither_o the_o truth_n be_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o be_v both_o waldensis_n and_o st._n augustine_n expression_n proceed_v ex_fw-la suppositione_n impossibili_fw-la and_o be_v whole_o like_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n gal._n 1._o if_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v any_o thing_n otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v preach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v 2._o but_o for_o all_o these_o turn_v and_o wind_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o free_v the_o bishop_n from_o a_o vicious_a circle_n for_o if_o he_o allow_v not_o scripture_n to_o be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o church_n testimony_n and_o tradition_n what_o answer_n can_v be_v make_v to_o this_o question_n why_o believe_v you_o infallible_o that_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n if_o he_o say_v for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n it_o will_v not_o serve_v see_v he_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n that_o
which_o be_v not_o the_o facto_fw-la false_a yet_o may_v be_v false_a and_o another_o cui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la falsum_fw-la which_o neither_o be_v false_a nor_o can_v be_v false_a since_o all_o infallibility_n be_v such_o cui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la falsum_fw-la to_o obtain_v therefore_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o scriptures-being_a the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v of_o necessity_n rely_v upon_o the_o never-erring_a tradition_n of_o god_n church_n all_o other_o ground_n assignable_a be_v uncertain_a and_o consequent_o insufficient_a to_o breed_v in_o we_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a faith_n but_o enough_o of_o this_o yet_o before_o i_o go_v further_o i_o can_v omit_v to_o observe_v the_o bishop_n earnest_a endeavour_n to_o possess_v the_o reader_n that_o the_o scripture_n both_o the_o old_a and_o new_a be_v come_v down_o to_o we_o so_o unquestionable_o by_o mere_a humane_a authority_n that_o a_o man_n may_v thereby_o be_v ibidem_fw-la infallible_o assure_v that_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o a_o acquire_v habit_n of_o faith_n when_o he_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a that_o there_o be_v hardly_o any_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v not_o be_v reject_v by_o some_o sect_n or_o other_o of_o christian_n and_o that_o several_a part_n even_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o most_o concern_v we_o be_v long_o doubt_v of_o by_o divers_a of_o the_o father_n and_o ancient_a orthodox_n writer_n till_o the_o church_n decide_v the_o controversy_n nay_o that_o their_o great_a reformer_n luther_n himself_o admit_v not_o for_o canonical_a scripture_n the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n james_n the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n judas_n nor_o any_o part_n of_o the_o apocalypse_n or_o revelation_n call_v you_o this_o candid_a deal_n be_v it_o not_o rather_o to_o say_v and_o unsay_v or_o indeed_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n in_o defence_n of_o a_o ruinous_a cause_n 2._o after_o this_o the_o relatour_n pretend_v to_o come_v close_o to_o the_o particular_a say_v the_o time_n be_v before_o this_o miserable_a rent_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o you_o and_o we_o be_v all_o of_o one_o belief_n i_o wonder_v who_o he_o mean_v by_o that_o we_o of_o he_o before_o the_o rent_n see_v the_o say_v we_o begin_v with_o and_o by_o that_o rent_n not_o make_v by_o we_o but_o by_o those_o that_o go_v out_o from_o we_o and_o desert_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o be_v breed_v up_o and_o so_o become_v a_o we_o by_o themselves_o which_o before_o the_o rent_n so_o make_v have_v no_o other_o than_o a_o mere_a utopian_a or_o chimerical_a be_v yet_o as_o it_o seem_v by_o his_o lordship_n discourse_n they_o be_v please_v in_o fancy_v themselves_o reformer_n of_o our_o corruption_n while_o they_o themselves_o be_v the_o corrupter_n they_o think_v themselves_o safe_a in_o hold_v the_o creed_n and_o other_o common_a principle_n of_o belief_n but_o so_o do_v many_o of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n who_o yet_o be_v condemn_v for_o such_o by_o lawful_a ecumenical_a council_n they_o glory_n in_o ascribe_v as_o he_o say_v more_o sufficiency_n to_o the_o scripture_n then_o be_v do_v by_o we_o in_o that_o they_o affirm_v it_o to_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n while_o by_o so_o do_v in_o the_o sense_n they_o mean_v it_o they_o contradict_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o which_o often_o send_v they_o to_o tradition_n call_v you_o this_o give_v honour_n to_o the_o scripture_n this_o indeed_o be_v not_o only_a enough_o but_o more_o then_o enough_o as_o the_o ibidem_fw-la bishop_n express_v it_o himself_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o for_o beget_v and_o settle_v a_o belief_n of_o this_o principle_n viz._n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o go_v the_o same_o way_n with_o we_o and_o a_o better_a too_o he_o mean_v they_o go_v some_o part_n of_o the_o way_n with_o we_o and_o the_o rest_n by_o themselves_o but_o certain_o he_o ought_v rather_o to_o have_v continue_v in_o our_o way_n to_o the_o end_n then_o for_o want_v of_o a_o good_a reason_n why_o he_o leave_v it_o to_o pin_v this_o falsehood_n upon_o we_o that_o we_o make_v the_o present_a tradition_n always_o a_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n unwritten_a apostolical_a tradition_n we_o hold_v for_o such_o indeed_o since_o to_o be_v write_v or_o not-written_a be_v condition_n mere_o accidental_a to_o god_n word_n but_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n by_o which_o we_o be_v infallible_o ascertain_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o those_o apostolical_a tradition_n as_o much_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o we_o oblige_v not_o any_o man_n to_o receive_v it_o for_o god_n unwritten_a word_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v make_v you_o believe_v their_o way_n say_v the_o bishop_n be_v better_a than_o we_o because_o they_o resolve_v 2._o their_o faith_n touch_v this_o principle_n into_o the_o write_a word_n which_o be_v in_o plain_a english_a that_o they_o resolve_v their_o faith_n of_o the_o scriptures-being_a god_n word_n into_o no_o word_n of_o god_n at_o all_o since_o there_o be_v not_o any_o write_a word_n of_o god_n to_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o or_o that_o book_n or_o indeed_o any_o book_n of_o their_o whole_a bible_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n they_o therefore_o ultimate_o resolve_v their_o faith_n of_o this_o point_n into_o little_a more_o than_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o consequent_o have_v no_o divine_a or_o supernatural_a faith_n of_o this_o article_n at_o all_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v by_o they_o lay_v for_o the_o basis_n or_o groundwork_n of_o their_o belief_n of_o all_o other_o point_n of_o christian_a religion_n behold_v the_o excellency_n of_o their_o better_a way_n than_o we_o who_o ultimate_o resolve_v our_o faith_n hereof_o into_o god_n unwritten_a word_n viz._n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n oral_o teach_v it_o to_o the_o christian_n of_o their_o own_o day_n and_o of_o this_o apostolical_a testimony_n tradition_n or_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n all_o the_o succeed_a christian_n of_o god_n church_n even_o to_o this_o day_n have_v be_v render_v certain_a by_o the_o infallible_a i_o say_v not_o divine_a testimony_n or_o tradition_n of_o the_o say_a church_n of_o christ._n last_o the_o bishop_n to_o close_v this_o dispute_n speak_v again_o to_o that_o well_o know_a place_n of_o st._n austin_n 5._o ego_fw-la vero_fw-la evangelio_n non_fw-la crederem_fw-la nisi_fw-la i_o catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la commoveret_fw-la authoritas_fw-la which_o he_o attempt_v to_o solve_v by_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o verb_n commovere_fw-la be_v not_o applyable_a to_o one_o motive_n alone_o but_o must_v signify_v to_o move_v together_o with_o other_o motive_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o he_o must_v be_v a_o mean_a grammarian_n who_o know_v not_o this_o to_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n when_o no_o plurality_n of_o motive_n be_v express_v second_o that_o in_o case_n st._n augustine_n word_n commoveret_fw-la be_v to_o be_v take_v in_o the_o sense_n the_o bishop_n give_v it_o viz._n to_o move_v together_o with_o scripture_n yet_o his_o lordship_n will_v gain_v little_a by_o it_o since_o his_o faith_n be_v consequent_o to_o be_v resolve_v into_o it_o as_o be_v a_o partial_a motive_n of_o his_o faith_n now_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v in_o true_a philosophy_n that_o if_o one_o partial_a motive_n be_v fallible_a the_o act_n produce_v by_o that_o motive_n must_v of_o necessity_n have_v a_o mixture_n of_o fallibility_n in_o it_o every_o effect_n participate_v the_o nature_n of_o its_o cause_n so_o even_o in_o logic_n shall_v a_o syllogism_n have_v for_o one_o of_o its_o premise_n a_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o other_o but_o a_o probable_a proposition_n the_o conclusion_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o probable_a and_o this_o doctrine_n be_v according_a to_o what_o st._n austin_n deliver_v in_o the_o place_n above_o cite_v when_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n authority_n he_o say_v quâ_fw-la infirmatâ_fw-la jam_fw-la nec_fw-la evangelio_n oredere_fw-la potero_fw-la which_o be_v weaken_v or_o call_v in_o question_n i_o shall_v no_o long_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n itself_o thus_o by_o god_n favour_n we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o grand_a controversy_n touch_v the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n wherein_o i_o have_v not_o only_o show_v the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o several_a way_n and_o method_n propound_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o clear_v and_o establish_v our_o own_a catholic_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n the_o infallible_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n be_v the_o sole_a clew_n that_o guide_v we_o through_o the_o dark_a and_o intricate_a meander_n of_o our_o adversary_n labyrinth_n it_o be_v the_o only_a expedient_a by_o which_o we_o can_v infallible_o resolve_v our_o faith_n into_o its_o prime_n and_o formal_a object_n god_n revelation_n this_o thread_n be_v
to_o err_v in_o this_o sort_n be_v certain_o to_o commit_v high_a and_o mortal_a offence_n against_o the_o honour_n and_o veracity_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o the_o direct_a way_n to_o eternal_a perdition_n yea_o whatever_o congregation_n of_o christian_n teach_v in_o this_o manner_n if_o it_o be_v do_v through_o malice_n they_o be_v seducer_n if_o through_o ignorance_n they_o be_v seduce_v and_o blind_a guide_n and_o so_o lead_v the_o blind_a into_o the_o same_o destruction_n with_o themselves_o to_o neither_o of_o which_o inconvenience_n can_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v liable_a if_o there_o be_v truth_n in_o the_o promise_v of_o christ._n the_o example_n then_o of_o a_o man_n who_o may_v be_v term_v a_o man_n though_o 2._o he_o be_v not_o honest_a come_v not_o home_n to_o our_o case_n have_v the_o bishop_n in_o lieu_n of_o the_o word_n man_n put_v saint_n which_o essential_o include_v both_o man_n and_o holiness_n the_o parallel_n will_v have_v hold_v better_a for_o the_o word_n church_n in_o our_o present_a debate_n imply_v not_o a_o simple_a or_o uncompounded_a term_n as_o that_o of_o man_n but_o be_v a_o compound_n of_o substance_n and_o accident_n together_o which_o accident_n signify_v perfection_n and_o integrity_n of_o condition_n and_o exclude_v the_o contrary_a defect_n viz._n heresy_n schism_n and_o error_n in_o faith_n wherefore_o if_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v as_o the_o relatour_n feign_v it_o so_o corrupt_a as_o to_o misuse_v the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o make_v scripture_n a_o imperfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n when_o christ_n have_v make_v it_o a_o perfect_a one_o it_o will_v be_v unchurch_v this_o a_o man_n may_v learn_v even_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n by_o which_o he_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n moreover_o st._n athanasius_n in_o his_o creed_n teach_v that_o unless_o a_o man_n keep_v the_o whole_a catholic_a faith_n entire_a and_o inviolate_a he_o shall_v without_o all_o doubt_n perish_v it_o be_v undeniable_a then_o no_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v have_v where_o such_o false_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v and_o by_o consequence_n no_o true_a church_n again_o the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o pure_a virgin_n who_o lose_v her_o honour_n by_o prostitute_v herself_o to_o error_n much_o more_o by_o force_v all_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v those_o very_a error_n for_o god_n word_n to_o say_v then_o that_o a_o congregation_n so_o gross_o erroneous_a and_o seduce_a be_v a_o true_a church_n be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o christ_n have_v a_o harlot_n to_o his_o spouse_n 4._o there_o be_v yet_o much_o skirmish_v about_o the_o form_n of_o word_n in_o which_o the_o lady_n ask_v the_o question_n a._n c._n aver_v he_o be_v certain_a that_o she_o desire_v to_o know_v of_o the_o bishop_n whether_o he_o will_v grant_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v a_o right_a church_n because_o he_o have_v particular_o speak_v with_o she_o before_o and_o wish_v she_o to_o insist_v upon_o that_o point_n whereupon_o his_o lordship_n make_v a_o special_a reflection_n with_o what_o cunning_a adversary_n the_o clergy_n 4._o of_o england_n have_v to_o deal_v who_o prepare_v their_o disciple_n and_o instruct_v they_o before_o hand_n upon_o what_o point_v to_o insist_v but_o this_o be_v no_o cunning_a but_o necessary_a prudence_n and_o charity_n to_o wish_v the_o lady_n to_o require_v satisfaction_n in_o those_o point_n wherein_o she_o have_v the_o great_a difficulty_n and_o which_o it_o most_o import_v she_o to_o understand_v certain_o have_v any_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n address_v themselves_o to_o the_o bishop_n for_o satisfaction_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n he_o will_v never_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v account_v a_o cunning_a disputant_n have_v scruple_v to_o instruct_v they_o to_o make_v the_o strong_a objection_n he_o can_v against_o the_o roman_a tenet_n but_o the_o bishop_n go_v on_o and_o acquaint_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o perfect_a 4._o jesuitism_n if_o you_o believe_v he_o viz._n which_o measure_v the_o catholic_a church_n by_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o city_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n and_o not_o rome_n by_o the_o catholic_a as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n but_o this_o be_v no_o jesuitism_n but_o rather_o a_o solecism_n against_o truth_n and_o a_o falsify_v of_o the_o text._n for_o i_o find_v not_o those_o word_n in_o a._n c._n which_o be_v cite_v viz._n the_o lady_n will_v know_v not_o whether_o that_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o rome_n agree_v but_o whether_o that_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n which_o agree_v with_o rome_n no_o such_o quere_z as_o this_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o lady_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o former_a word_n of_o a._n c._n it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o she_o whether_o rome_n must_v always_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o catholic_n church_n always_o agree_v with_o rome_n such_o punctilio_n as_o these_o the_o lady_n never_o dream_v of_o nor_o be_v they_o so_o much_o as_o hint_v at_o by_o a._n c._n it_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o lady_n satisfaction_n to_o know_v whether_o rome_n and_o all_o particular_a church_n agree_v with_o she_o in_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n or_o constantinople_n if_o you_o please_v and_o those_o which_o communicate_v with_o she_o or_o the_o english-protestant_n church_n and_o they_o who_o consent_n with_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n thus_o that_o the_o jesuit_n may_v be_v think_v to_o have_v singularity_n and_o novelty_n in_o their_o doctrine_n find_v none_o of_o their_o own_o he_o have_v endeavour_v to_o coin_v one_o for_o they_o which_o he_o esteem_v a_o strange_a paradox_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v none_o for_o put_v case_n a._n c._n have_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v style_v catholic_n by_o agree_v with_o rome_n yet_o have_v it_o be_v no_o jesuitism_n but_o a_o receive_v and_o know_v truth_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n 5._o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o this_o we_o be_v to_o note_v the_o word_n catholic_n may_v be_v use_v in_o three_o different_a acception_n viz._n either_o formal_o causal_o or_o by_o way_n of_o participation_n formal_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v the_o society_n of_o all_o true_a particular_a church_n unite_v together_o in_o one_o body_n in_o one_o communion_n and_o under_o one_o head_n be_v call_v catholic_n causal_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v catholic_n because_o it_o have_v a_o influence_n and_o force_n to_o cause_v universality_n in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o which_o universality_n two_o thing_n be_v necessary_a one_o be_v multitude_n which_o serve_v as_o a_o analogical_a matter_n whereof_o it_o consist_v for_o where_o there_o be_v no_o multitude_n there_o can_v be_v no_o universality_n the_o other_o be_v in_o place_n of_o form_n viz._n unity_n for_o multitude_n without_o unity_n will_v never_o make_v universality_n take_v away_o say_v st._n austin_n 26._o unity_n from_o multitude_n and_o it_o be_v turba_n a_o rout_n but_o join_v to_o it_o unity_n an_o it_o become_v populus_fw-la a_o community_n the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o which_o as_o a_o centre_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n infuse_v this_o unity_n which_o be_v the_o form_n of_o universality_n into_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o thereby_o cause_v in_o her_o universality_n may_v be_v call_v catholic_n causal_o though_o she_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a church_n so_o he_o that_o command_v in_o chief_a over_o a_o whole_a army_n and_o make_v a_o unity_n in_o that_o military_a body_n be_v style_v general_n though_o he_o be_v but_o a_o particular_a person_n three_o every_o particular_a orthodox_n church_n be_v term_v catholic_n participatiuè_n by_o way_n of_o participation_n because_o they_o agree_v in_o and_o participate_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n address_v her_o epistle_n thus_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o philomilion_n and_o to_o all_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v 5._o spread_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n thus_o we_o see_v both_o how_o proper_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v call_v catholic_n and_o how_o the_o catholic_n church_n itself_o take_v causal_o the_o denomination_n of_o universal_a or_o catholic_n from_o the_o roman_a consider_v as_o the_o chief_a particular_a church_n infuse_v unity_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n as_o have_v dependence_n of_o she_o and_o relation_n to_o she_o nay_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a practice_n in_o primitive_a time_n to_o account_v those_o catholic_n who_o agree_v with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o this_o be_v manifest_a by_o many_o example_n st._n 〈◊〉_d relate_v that_o his_o brother_n satyrus_n go_v on_o shore_n in_o a_o certain_a city_n of_o sardinia_n where_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v baptize_v demand_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o
that_o city_n fratr_n whether_o he_o consent_v with_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n that_o be_v say_v he_o with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n theophil_n according_a to_o st._n hierome_n make_v it_o her_o glory_n to_o participate_v of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v thus_o to_o pope_n hermisda_n conc._n we_o promise_v say_v he_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o be_v sever_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v who_o consent_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a thus_o saint_n austin_n address_v himself_o to_o the_o donatist_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o 9_o succession_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v the_o rock_n which_o the_o proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n overcome_v not_o thereby_o 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o very_a succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n be_v in_o some_o true_a sense_n the_o catholic_a church_n so_o optatus_n milevitanus_fw-la after_o he_o have_v say_v 2._o sy_n peter_n be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o he_o will_v have_v be_v a_o sohismatick_a who_o shall_v have_v erect_v another_o chair_n against_o that_o singular_a one_o of_o st._n peter_n as_o also_o that_o in_o that_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v but_o one_o unity_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o all_o he_o add_v that_o with_o syricius_n than_o pope_n he_o himself_o be_v unite_v in_o communion_n ibidem_fw-la with_o who_o the_o whole_a world_n say_v he_o mean_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n agree_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n in_o one_o society_n of_o communion_n see_v here_o how_o clear_o he_o make_v the_o union_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o measure_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o the_o bishop_n call_v a_o jesuitism_n and_o further_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n ibid._n because_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n st._n herome_n 47._o profess_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n sea_n and_o that_o whoever_o eat_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v pretend_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o sacrament_n out_o of_o that_o house_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n be_v profane_a and_o a_o alien_n yea_o that_o he_o belong_v to_o antichrist_n and_o not_o to_o christ_n whoever_o consent_v not_o with_o the_o successor_n of_o st._n peter_n st._n fulgentius_n 11._o style_v the_o roman_a church_n the_o top_n of_o the_o world_n and_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o syracuse_n tell_v the_o same_o fulgentius_n that_o it_o will_v avail_v he_o nothing_o to_o go_v into_o those_o country_n which_o he_o desire_v to_o visit_v because_o 15._o say_v he_o the_o inhabitant_n thereof_o certain_a religious_a man_n be_v sever_v by_o a_o faithless_a dissension_n from_o the_o sea_n of_o peter_n last_o gratian_n the_o emperor_n make_v a_o decree_n 2._o that_o the_o church_n former_o possess_v by_o heretic_n shall_v be_v restore_v to_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v of_o pope_n damasus_n his_o communion_n understand_v thereby_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n therefore_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o day_n be_v the_o measure_n and_o distinctive_a badge_n whereby_o to_o know_v who_o be_v and_o who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n 6._o hence_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o his_o lordship_n be_v please_v to_o term_v a_o perfect_a jesuitism_n in_o a._n c._n be_v a_o perfect_a mistake_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o a_o lose_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o labyrinth_n neither_o be_v that_o vulgar_a exception_n against_o roman_a catholic_n any_o better_a for_o as_o all_o country_n how_o distant_a soever_o from_o one_o another_o under_o the_o command_n and_o obedience_n of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v call_v the_o roman_a empire_n take_v collective_o because_o the_o chief_a seat_n of_o their_o emperor_n be_v at_o rome_n so_o all_o the_o church_n subject_n to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v call_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o their_o supreme_a head_n and_o pastor_n under_o christ_n sit_v at_o rome_n and_o see_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o israelite_n be_v proper_o call_v the_o jewish_a church_n which_o name_n strict_o take_v belong_v only_o to_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n because_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o it_o appertain_v to_o that_o tribe_n where_o the_o high_a priest_n reside_v and_o officiate_v why_o may_v not_o also_o the_o whole_a orthodox_n christian_n church_n be_v name_v the_o roman_a church_n because_o its_o supreme_a bishop_n keep_v his_o residence_n in_o the_o roman_a city_n the_o truth_n be_v in_o all_o doubt_n concern_v matter_n of_o doctrine_n recourse_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o st._n peter_n successor_n who_o at_o least_o with_o a_o general_n council_n can_v infallible_o resolve_v all_o difficulty_n this_o infallibility_n be_v independent_a of_o all_o place_n insomuch_o that_o as_o st._n peter_n have_v be_v infallible_a though_o he_o have_v never_o be_v at_o rome_n so_o though_o his_o successor_n shall_v leave_v to_o reside_v in_o that_o city_n yet_o shall_v he_o not_o leave_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o manner_n specify_v and_o shall_v as_o well_o then_o as_o now_o judge_v both_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o other_o church_n this_o i_o have_v say_v to_o show_v how_o the_o faith_n of_o every_o particular_a church_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v and_o prove_v to_o be_v catholic_a to_o wit_n by_o its_o conformity_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n conclude_v nothing_o whither_o the_o pope_n can_v transfer_v his_o chair_n from_o rome_n or_o not_o and_o whether_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n can_v desert_v he_o and_o the_o true_a faith_n or_o not_o for_o these_o question_n make_v nothing_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n 7._o by_o way_n of_o appendix_n to_o this_o chapter_n since_o so_o fair_a a_o occasion_n be_v present_v we_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o perform_v what_o we_o promise_v chap._n 1._o viz._n to_o examine_v a_o little_a more_o full_o his_o lordship_n pretend_a solution_n of_o beauties_n authority_n which_o the_o bishop_n bring_v §_o 3._o num_fw-la 3._o but_o my_o intention_n be_v to_o maintain_v they_o so_o far_o only_a as_o they_o make_v for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n define_v article_n of_o faith_n in_o a_o general_n council_n for_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o no_o more_o the_o first_o authority_n be_v out_o of_o st._n cyprian_n who_o shall_v here_o speak_v a_o little_o full_a then_o either_o the_o bishop_n or_o bellarmin_n cite_v he_o to_o the_o end_n the_o force_n of_o his_o word_n may_v the_o better_o appear_v this_o holy_a martyr_n write_v thus_o to_o cornelius_n bish_n 〈◊〉_d of_o rome_n 1648._o post_fw-la ista_fw-la adhuc_fw-la insuper_fw-la pseudoepiscopo_a sibi_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la constituto_fw-la navigare_fw-la audent_fw-la ad_fw-la petri_n cathedram_fw-la atque_fw-la ad_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la à_fw-la schismaticis_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d literas_fw-la far_o nec_fw-la cogitare_fw-la eos_fw-la esse_fw-la romanos_fw-la quorum_fw-la fides_fw-la apostolo_n praedicante_fw-la laudata_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la quos_fw-la perfidia_fw-la habere_fw-la non_fw-la 〈◊〉_d accessum_fw-la why_o call_v he_o st._n peter_n chair_n ecclesiam_fw-la principalem_fw-la the_o chief_a church_n but_o because_o it_o be_v the_o head_n to_o which_o all_o other_o church_n must_v be_v subordinate_a in_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n the_o word_n follow_v signify_v as_o much_o unde_fw-la unitas_fw-la sacerdotalis_fw-la exorta_fw-la est_fw-la from_o which_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n as_o it_o be_v from_o its_o fountain_n unity_n in_o priesthood_n and_o consequent_o unity_n in_o faith_n be_v derive_v why_o bring_v he_o the_o apostle_n himself_o as_o panegyrist_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n quorum_fw-la fides_fw-la apostolo_n praedicante_fw-la laudataest_n be_v it_o forsooth_o because_o no_o malicious_a 〈◊〉_d in_o matter_n of_o trust_n or_o error_n in_o fact_n against_o the_o discipline_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n can_v have_v access_n unto_o they_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o misinterpret_v the_o place_n or_o rather_o because_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v approach_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a certain_a it_o be_v perfidia_fw-la in_o this_o sentence_n be_v diametrical_o oppose_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_n immediate_o before_o commend_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v true_a christian_a faith_n and_o consequent_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v take_v for_o the_o quite_o contrary_a viz._n misbelief_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n hence_o his_o other_o explication_n also_o vanish_v into_o smoke_n viz._n when_o he_o assert_n that_o 〈◊〉_d non_fw-la potest_fw-la may_v be_v take_v hyperbolical_o for_o non_fw-la facile_fw-la potest_fw-la because_o this_o
drive_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o a_o hard_a strait_n that_o it_o evident_o argue_v the_o truth_n and_o uncorruptedness_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o even_o her_o adversary_n can_v but_o confess_v it_o neither_o do_v the_o roman_a church_n reject_v all_o that_o ruffinus_n write_v even_o in_o that_o book_n wherein_o he_o express_v his_o heresy_n but_o only_o such_o part_n of_o it_o as_o be_v dissonant_n to_o the_o receive_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o if_o one_o condemn_v of_o error_n by_o another_o may_v not_o be_v cite_v in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o he_o favour_v the_o party_n that_o condemn_v he_o why_o do_v the_o relatour_n so_o often_o cite_v our_o author_n who_o he_o condemn_v of_o error_n in_o faith_n when_o they_o seem_v to_o favour_v he_o the_o bishop_n have_v examine_v beauty_n authority_n in_o the_o manner_n you_o see_v return_v again_o to_o a.c._n and_o the_o jesuit_n tell_v we_o in_o very_o positive_a 14._o term_n that_o no_o jesuit_n nor_o any_o other_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v any_o particular_a church_n infallible_a but_o to_o this_o i_o have_v often_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v neither_o to_o the_o lady_n purpose_n nor_o we_o to_o dispute_v concern_v a_o particular_a infallible_a church_n it_o suffice_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a at_o least_o with_o a_o general_n council_n which_o question_n as_o i_o have_v often_o observe_v the_o relatour_n wise_o decline_v and_o divert_v another_o way_n namely_o to_o a_o unnecessary_a dispute_n with_o bellarmin_n about_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o particular_a church_n or_o diocese_n of_o rome_n viz._n whether_o the_o roman_a clergy_n can_v at_o any_o time_n forsake_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o doctrine_n or_o not_o or_o whether_o the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n can_v be_v transfer_v to_o another_o place_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o that_o account_n be_v leave_v subject_n to_o error_n as_o be_v no_o long_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a both_o which_o be_v matter_n of_o that_o nature_n that_o they_o do_v no_o way_n engage_v i_o to_o contend_v with_o his_o lordship_n about_o they_o further_o then_o to_o tell_v he_o that_o they_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o his_o purpose_n nor_o to_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o lady_n and_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v thrust_v into_o his_o book_n only_o to_o fill_v up_o some_o vacant_a page_n and_o to_o avoid_v the_o question_n which_o he_o be_v oblige_v but_o not_o able_a direct_o to_o answer_v in_o the_o same_o page_n i_o observe_v the_o bishop_n charge_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o err_v in_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n in_o alter_v christ_n institution_n in_o the_o 15._o bless_a sacrament_n by_o take_v away_o the_o cup_n from_o the_o people_n and_o divers_a other_o particular_n but_o because_o he_o endeavour_v not_o in_o any_o sort_n to_o prove_v his_o charge_n i_o presume_v i_o may_v take_v liberty_n to_o answer_v in_o a_o more_o convenient_a place_n to_o wit_n where_o the_o bishop_n dispute_v formal_o against_o they_o but_o his_o lordship_n will_v not_o part_v without_o another_o fling_n at_o bellarmin_n he_o think_v he_o have_v spy_v a_o great_a inconsistency_n in_o some_o word_n of_o the_o cardinal_n the_o matter_n thus_o bellarmin_n lib._n 4._o de_fw-fr rom._n pont._n cap._n 4._o §_o 2._o as_o the_o bishop_n cite_v he_o of_o this_o proposition_n the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n can_v err_v in_o faith_n so_o long_o as_o st._n peter_n chair_n be_v at_o rome_n say_v it_o be_v a_o most_o true_a proposition_n but_o praesenti_fw-la after_o speak_v of_o it_o say_v only_o peradventure_o it_o be_v as_o true_a as_o this_o viz._n the_o pope_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n can_v err_v at_o this_o the_o bishop_n exclaim_v as_o at_o a_o great_a absurdity_n of_o speech_n what_o say_v he_o a_o proposition_n most_o true_a and_o yet_o 15._o but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o another_o that_o be_v not_o possible_a with_o he_o but_o soft_a and_o fair_a what_o need_v so_o much_o noise_n let_v we_o see_v what_o ground_n the_o relatour_n have_v for_o this_o criticism_n first_o he_o shall_v have_v reflect_v that_o in_o such_o expression_n as_o this_o there_o be_v always_o a_o latitude_n of_o moral_a sense_n and_o meaning_n to_o be_v allow_v even_o by_o common_a right_n and_o custom_n of_o speak_v when_o i_o say_v for_o example_n such_o a_o man_n be_v vir_fw-la prudentissimus_fw-la or_o vir_fw-la optimus_fw-la a_o most_o wise_a and_o most_o honest_a man_n i_o be_o not_o present_o think_v to_o prefer_v he_o in_o those_o respect_n before_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o shall_v i_o be_v count_v i_o hope_v a_o liar_n though_o some_o other_o man_n be_v find_v as_o wise_a and_o honest_a as_o he_o bellarmin_n therefore_o may_v have_v be_v excuse_v with_o indifferent_a judge_n for_o say_v what_o he_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o this_o but_o i_o shall_v not_o here_o use_v this_o plea_n let_v the_o word_n verissima_fw-la be_v take_v in_o the_o strict_a rigour_n of_o scholastical_a sense_n that_o can_v be_v yet_o may_v not_o a_o proposition_n be_v right_o say_v most_o true_a viz._n in_o its_o proper_a rank_n and_o order_n of_o such_o proposition_n and_o yet_o be_v but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o a_o proposition_n of_o another_o and_o high_a rank_n for_o certainty_n or_o infallibility_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v manifest_a bellarmin_n hold_v his_o first_o proposition_n touch_v the_o pope_n infallibility_n when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o be_v true_a veritate_fw-la fidei_fw-la for_o he_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v a_o proposition_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o other_o touch_v the_o roman_a clergy_n not_o err_v or_o not_o depart_v from_o the_o pope_n doctrine_n so_o long_o as_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a continue_v there_o to_o be_v true_a only_a veritate_fw-la theologiae_n as_o other_o theological_a proposition_n be_v true_a which_o be_v not_o divine_o reveal_v but_o mere_o by_o humane_a discourse_n and_o way_n of_o argument_n deduce_v from_o other_o theological_a proposition_n and_o principle_n who_o truth_n consequent_o be_v never_o so_o absolute_o infallible_a as_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o more_o or_o less_o certain_a according_a as_o the_o principle_n or_o proposition_n whence_o we_o deduce_v they_o be_v more_o or_o less_o infallible_a and_o the_o deduction_n of_o they_o from_o such_o principle_n more_o or_o less_o evident_a and_o necessary_a what_o absurdity_n then_o be_v it_o for_o bellarmin_n to_o say_v this_o proposition_n viz._n of_o the_o roman_a clergy_n never_o forsake_v the_o pope_n doctrine_n etc._n etc._n be_v most_o true_a meaning_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o a_o theological_a conclusion_n and_o yet_o but_o peradventure_o as_o true_a as_o that_o other_o viz._n of_o the_o pope_n not_o err_v when_o he_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n which_o latter_a proposition_n bellarmin_n undoubted_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o proposition_n of_o divine_a faith_n but_o do_v not_o hold_v the_o other_o to_o be_v such_o true_o just_a as_o much_o absurdity_n as_o it_o be_v to_o say_v of_o a_o little_a man_n that_o in_o comparison_n of_o a_o pygmie_n he_o be_v a_o tall_a fellow_n but_o in_o comparison_n of_o some_o yeoman_n of_o the_o guard_n he_o be_v but_o a_o dwarf_n thus_o have_v acquit_v myself_o of_o what_o i_o stand_v oblige_v by_o promise_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o treatise_n i_o return_v again_o to_o the_o bishop_n in_o pursuit_n of_o his_o present_a discourse_n chap._n ii_o protestant_n schismatic_n argument_n 1._o no_o pure_a church_n in_o the_o world_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n if_o the_o roman_a church_n corrupt_v 2._o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it favour_n not_o the_o bishop_n card._n bellarmin_n most_o false_o quote_v by_o he_o almainus_n cassander_n etc._n etc._n not_o for_o he_o 3._o schism_n and_o heresy_n in_o rome_n but_o not_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o who_o make_v the_o present_a schism_n roman-catholiques_a or_o protestant_n 5._o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n augustine_n word_n right_o urge_v by_o a._n c._n and_o beauty_n as_o wrongful_o by_o the_o bishop_n 6._o protestant_n though_o they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n unerrable_a in_o fundamental_o only_o yet_o can_v never_o be_v bring_v to_o give_v a_o list_n of_o they_o 7._o christ_n church_n by_o inseparable_a property_n both_o caththolique_a and_o holy_a the_o relatour_n be_v still_o make_v personal_a reflection_n upon_o a._n c._n here_o he_o will_v have_v he_o trouble_v again_o about_o the_o form_n of_o the_o lady_n question_n 5._o but_o i_o see_v no_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o be_v trouble_v whether_o the_o lady_n ask_v her_o question_n by_o be_v or_o be_v because_o if_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o right_a church_n it_o still_o be_v so_o see_v no_o change_n can_v be_v show_v in_o her_o doctrine_n
lie_n but_o whether_o the_o bishop_n say_v the_o protestant_n do_v make_v the_o schism_n or_o the_o rent_n or_o a_o division_n or_o breach_n it_o be_v not_o a_o straw_n matter_n the_o word_n it_o be_v true_a be_v different_a but_o the_o sense_n be_v the_o same_o well_o therefore_o may_v the_o jesuit_n be_v say_v to_o relate_v at_o least_o in_o sense_n what_o the_o bishop_n utter_v without_o either_o enterfeir_a or_o shuffle_n his_o lordship_n therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v boggle_v at_o this_o but_o clear_o have_v grant_v that_o protestant_n do_v depart_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o get_v the_o name_n of_o protestant_n by_o protest_v against_o she_o for_o this_o be_v so_o apparent_a that_o the_o whole_a world_n acknowledge_v it_o and_o the_o relatour_n himself_o can_v deny_v it_o without_o retract_v his_o own_o word_n §_o 20._o num_fw-la 5._o pag._n 131._o where_o speak_v of_o luther_n he_o grant_v he_o make_v a_o breach_n from_o it_o and_o it_o be_v a_o very_a poor_a shift_n to_o say_v protestant_n get_v not_o that_o name_n by_o protest_v against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o against_o her_o error_n and_o superstition_n for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o be_v the_o common_a pretext_n of_o all_o heretic_n when_o they_o sever_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o ordinary_a with_o protestant_n then_o to_o reproach_n the_o roman_a church_n and_o belch_v out_o virulent_a execration_n against_o she_o yet_o all_o must_v be_v understand_v forsooth_o not_o against_o the_o church_n but_o against_o her_o error_n as_o if_o mr._n fisher_n and_o a._n c._n can_v be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o or_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o such_o a_o needless_a comment_n to_o understand_v what_o protestant_n mean_v when_o they_o protest_v or_o use_v uncivil_a language_n against_o the_o church_n but_o say_v the_o bishop_n if_o 3._o you_o take_v the_o whole_a body_n and_o cause_n of_o protestant_n together_o you_o can_v so_o easy_o charge_v they_o with_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n i_o know_v not_o well_o what_o this_o passage_n mean_v but_o desire_v to_o have_v any_o either_o whole_a body_n or_o part_n of_o protestant_n show_v who_o by_o their_o profession_n and_o practice_n do_v not_o effective_o make_v a_o true_a and_o real_a departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o in_o so_o do_v remain_v separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n nor_o do_v it_o much_o mend_v the_o matter_n to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o margin_n ibidem_fw-la that_o the_o protestation_n make_v by_o his_o party_n in_o the_o year_n 1529._o from_o whence_o they_o take_v their_o name_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o simple_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o against_o a_o edict_n viz._n that_o of_o worm_n which_o command_v the_o restore_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o their_o former_a estate_n without_o any_o reformation_n for_o to_o stand_v as_o they_o do_v for_o innovation_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o to_o protest_v against_o restore_v of_o thing_n to_o their_o former_a estate_n which_o have_v be_v unwarrantable_o and_o wicked_o alter_v by_o certain_a lawless_a people_n without_o any_o colour_n of_o authority_n be_v sure_o in_o effect_n to_o protest_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o see_v the_o thing_n protest_v against_o be_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o christian_a piety_n wherein_o the_o roman_a and_o all_o other_o true_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n agree_v to_o protest_v against_o they_o be_v with_o the_o same_o breath_n to_o protest_v against_o all_o the_o particular_a true_a visible_a church_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o none_o but_o notorious_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_n use_v to_o do_v it_o be_v not_o then_o the_o word_n protestation_n that_o we_o dislike_v so_o much_o but_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v the_o protest_v and_o stand_v for_o novel_a and_o corrupt_a tenet_n against_o the_o ancient_a and_o undefiled_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n beside_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o note_n that_o the_o relatour_n here_o add_v a_o little_a to_o his_o author_n when_o he_o say_v the_o edict_n of_o worm_n be_v for_o the_o restore_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o their_o former_a estatc_n without_o any_o reformation_n at_o all_o as_o if_o the_o edict_n have_v cut_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o reformation_n even_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o need_v it_o viz._n abuses_n in_o manner_n and_o discipline_n which_o be_v most_o false_a and_o confute_v by_o evidence_n of_o fact_n for_o even_o the_o pope_n themselves_o always_o profess_a reformation_n in_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v necessary_a and_o intend_v by_o they_o according_a as_o it_o be_v not_o long_o after_o effectual_o ordain_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 5._o but_o a._n c._n say_v the_o bishop_n go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o though_o the_o 4._o church_n of_o rome_n do_v thrust_v protestant_n from_o she_o by_o excommunication_n yet_o they_o have_v first_o divide_v themselves_o by_o obstinate_a hold_v and_o teach_v opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o to_o do_v st._n bernard_n think_v be_v pride_n and_o st._n austin_n madness_n at_o this_o his_o lordship_n take_v several_a exception_n and_o first_o begin_v with_o the_o supposition_n of_o error_n and_o superstition_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o in_o my_o opinion_n say_v he_o be_v the_o prime_a cause_n of_o the_o division_n and_o force_v many_o man_n to_o hold_v and_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o roman_a faith_n to_o which_o we_o answer_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v st._n peter_n successor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o infallible_a at_o least_o with_o a_o general_n council_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o protestant_n or_o other_o sectary_n shall_v ever_o find_v such_o error_n or_o corruption_n definitive_o teach_v by_o he_o or_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o shall_v either_o warrant_v they_o to_o preach_v against_o her_o doctrine_n or_o in_o case_n she_o refuse_v to_o conform_v to_o their_o preach_n lawful_o to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n second_o he_o quarrel_v with_o a._n c._n for_o style_v it_o the_o roman_a faith_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o general_a faith_n of_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v wont_a say_v the_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o christian_a faith_n but_o now_o all_o be_v roman_a with_o a._n c._n and_o the_o jesuit_n but_o first_o it_o be_v no_o incongruity_n of_o speech_n to_o style_v the_o christian_n or_o catholic_a faith_n sometime_o the_o roman_a for_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a or_o catholic_a church_n the_o faith_n approve_v and_o teach_v by_o he_o as_o head_n thereof_o though_o it_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o general_a faith_n and_o profession_n of_o all_o christian_n may_v yet_o very_a well_o be_v call_v the_o roman_a faith_n why_o because_o the_o root_n origin_n and_o chief_a foundation_n under_o christ_n of_o its_o beingpreached_a and_o believe_v by_o christian_n be_v at_o rome_n and_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o frequent_a than_o denomination_n take_v à_fw-la parte_fw-la digniori_fw-la again_o here_o be_v a_o manifest_a robbery_n of_o part_n of_o a._n c_n word_n for_o which_o his_o lordship_n be_v bind_v to_o restitution_n a._n c._n as_o it_o be_v foresee_v this_o cavil_n wary_o add_v to_o roman_a faith_n these_o word_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o relatour_n for_o reason_n best_o know_v to_o himself_o crafty_o leave_v out_o and_o make_v he_o speak_v as_o if_o the_o opinion_n by_o which_o the_o protestant_n stand_v divide_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o for_o which_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o she_o be_v only_o contrary_a to_o the_o roman_a faith_n as_o protestant_n usual_o understand_v the_o word_n roman_n viz._n as_o contradistinguisht_v from_o catholic_a or_o the_o church_n in_o general_a whereas_o a._n c._n to_o prevent_v any_o such_o mistake_n as_o express_o as_o he_o can_v say_v they_o be_v contrary_a both_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o must_v excuse_v our_o adversary_n for_o this_o slip_n though_o it_o be_v a_o unhandsome_a one_o for_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o have_v no_o other_o way_n to_o hide_v the_o guiltiness_n of_o his_o own_o pen_n in_o style_v the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n corruption_n and_o superstition_n for_o to_o have_v charge_v the_o whole_a church_n with_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n have_v be_v perhaps_o a_o little_a too_o bold_a a_o check_n especial_o for_o a_o person_n of_o his_o lordship_n temper_n and_o will_v have_v bring_v he_o too_o apparent_o under_o the_o lash_n of_o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n augustine_n censure_n intimate_v by_o a._n c._n whereas_o to_o charge_v only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o they_o be_v a_o thing_n the_o modest_a man_n in_o all_o that_o party_n
find_v no_o difficulty_n to_o do_v three_o his_o lordship_n except_v against_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n bring_v by_o a._n c._n out_o of_o st._n bernard_n and_o st._n austin_n but_o we_o answer_v his_o exception_n do_v not_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o the_o say_a place_n for_o first_o concern_v that_o of_o st._n bernard_n let_v we_o suppose_v as_o the_o relatour_n contend_v that_o st._n bernard_n by_o those_o word_n quae_fw-la major_n superbia_fw-la etc._n etc._n resurrect_v what_o great_a pride_n can_v there_o be_v then_o for_o one_o man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n as_o if_o he_o alone_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mean_v only_o that_o particular_a congregation_n to_o which_o he_o be_v then_o preach_v yet_o be_v his_o say_n not_o unapt_o apply_v by_o a._n c._n to_o our_o present_a purpose_n by_o a_o argument_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la to_o show_v the_o more_o exorbitant_a pride_n of_o those_o who_o prefer_v their_o private_a fanatic_a opinion_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n this_o certain_o protestant_n do_v by_o their_o solemn_a protestation_n and_o obstinate_a maintain_v their_o private_a opinion_n what_o the_o relatour_n add_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n for_o a_o private_a man_n to_o prefer_v his_o judgement_n before_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o another_o thing_n for_o a_o intelligent_a man_n in_o some_o thing_n unsatisfied_a modest_o to_o propose_v his_o doubt_n even_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v of_o no_o advantage_n to_o he_o for_o first_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v his_o lordship_n that_o martin_n luther_n ulrick_n 〈◊〉_d john_n calvin_n theodore_n beza_n john_n knox_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o crew_n be_v to_o be_v account_v intelligent_a person_n yet_o will_v he_o or_o can_v he_o say_v they_o propose_v their_o doubt_n modest_o to_o the_o church_n sure_o not_o and_o whoever_o say_v so_o will_v easy_o be_v convince_v of_o ignorance_n in_o their_o opinion_n or_o practice_n but_o put_v case_n a_o more_o modest_a propound_v of_o doubt_n have_v be_v use_v as_o the_o bishop_n seem_v to_o wish_v yet_o unless_o the_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n undecided_a by_o the_o church_n the_o modest_a proposal_n of_o they_o can_v not_o at_o all_o help_n the_o protestant_a cause_n in_o regard_n their_o doubt_n be_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n already_o determine_v for_o such_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o question_v any_o of_o which_o with_o what_o seem_a modesty_n soever_o be_v sinful_a heretical_a and_o damnable_a his_o exception_n against_o a._n c_n interpretation_n of_o st._n austin_n be_v no_o less_o weak_a the_o holy_a doctor_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n for_o a_o man_n to_o dispute_v whether_o that_o aught_o to_o be_v to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v 5._o usual_o hold_v and_o do_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n the_o bishop_n first_o except_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o catholic_a yet_o have_v often_o show_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o catholic_a be_v all_o one_o and_o see_v a._n c._n add_v to_o roman_a faith_n the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n this_o authority_n remain_v still_o entire_a against_o he_o next_o he_o say_v a._n c._n apply_v this_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n whereas_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n but_o first_o i_o answer_v a._n c._n apply_v the_o place_n both_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o practice_n the_o place_n be_v most_o proper_o understand_v even_o in_o that_o sense_n which_o the_o bishop_n himself_o give_v to_o the_o word_n second_o if_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n much_o great_a will_v it_o be_v to_o dispute_v against_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n hold_v by_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o application_n of_o the_o place_n be_v still_o good_a by_o the_o rule_n à_fw-fr minore_fw-la ad_fw-la majus_fw-la and_o reach_n to_o every_o person_n that_o in_o any_o matter_n whatever_o obstinate_o oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o church_n of_o god_n the_o reason_n may_v be_v because_o there_o be_v always_o some_o point_n or_o matter_n of_o faith_n involve_v in_o every_o universally-practised_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o a_o pertinacious_a defend_n of_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v be_v by_o st._n austin_n term_v a_o most_o insolent_a madness_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o a_o right-sobe_a man_n modest_o proceed_v may_v in_o some_o case_n dispute_v a_o point_n with_o the_o roman_a either_o church_n or_o prelate_n as_o irenaeus_n do_v with_o pope_n victor_n in_o the_o controversy_n which_o arise_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o century_n provide_v it_o be_v do_v with_o submission_n and_o profession_n of_o due_a obedience_n to_o that_o church_n and_o prelate_n which_o can_v never_o be_v unless_o the_o dispute_n be_v about_o matter_n as_o yet_o undecided_a by_o the_o church_n 6._o touch_v a._n c's_o illation_n i_o answer_v since_o it_o be_v certain_a the_o whole_a catholic_a or_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o sense_n often_o explicate_v can_v err_v a._n c._n do_v well_o infer_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o make_v a_o divorce_n or_o schism_n from_o it_o the_o relatour_n grant_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n 5._o can_v universal_o err_v in_o absolute_a fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o blame_v bellarmin_n for_o needless_o busy_v himself_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n can_v never_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o i_o answer_v beauties_n labour_n be_v not_o needless_a since_o protestant_n grant_v not_o the_o church_n exempt_v from_o all_o error_n save_v only_o in_o fundamental_o as_o they_o call_v they_o whereas_o bellarmin_n prove_v it_o equal_o of_o all_o fundamental_o or_o not-fundamentals_a moreover_o bellarmin_n well_o observe_v that_o protestant_n general_o grant_v this_o only_a to_o the_o invisible_a church_n whereas_o he_o prove_v 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o visible_a and_o though_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o margin_n endeavour_v to_o show_v they_o hold_v the_o same_o also_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n yet_o this_o only_a prove_n that_o protestant_n contradict_v one_o another_o which_o we_o deny_v not_o and_o bellarmin_n likewise_o observe_v it_o 1._o elsewhere_o yea_o calvin_n himself_o here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n can_v err_v add_v this_o restriction_n if_o she_o do_v not_o propose_v doctrine_n beside_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o if_o she_o do_v it_o seem_v according_a to_o he_o she_o may_v err_v but_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o have_v often_o desire_v and_o do_v yet_o much_o long_o to_o know_v which_o be_v doctrine_n absolute_o fundamental_a and_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n i_o believe_v scarce_o any_o man_n will_v be_v able_a to_o set_v they_o down_o our_o tenet_n be_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o whatever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o catholic_a church_n can_v be_v deny_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n and_o consequent_o be_v fundamental_a to_o we_o and_o to_o all_o true_a christian_n so_o that_o these_o follow_a word_n of_o the_o bishop_n viz._n that_o she_o may_v err_v in_o superstructure_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n if_o her_o curiosity_n or_o other_o weakness_n carry_v she_o beyond_o or_o cause_v she_o to_o fall_v short_a of_o her_o rule_n be_v injurious_a to_o the_o church_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o that_o prerogative_n of_o holiness_n which_o as_o he_o himself_o in_o this_o very_a place_n confess_v always_o accompany_v the_o true_a church_n 7._o this_o holiness_n consist_v chief_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n so_o the_o relatour_n himself_o profess_v in_o these_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la consist_v as_o much_o if_o not_o more_o in_o the_o verity_n of_o the_o faith_n as_o in_o the_o integrity_n of_o manner_n etc._n etc._n insomuch_o that_o if_o the_o church_n fail_v in_o the_o verity_n of_o faith_n she_o can_v be_v no_o long_o holy_a nay_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n have_v prevail_v much_o against_o she_o contrary_a to_o the_o promse_n of_o christ._n i_o assert_v therefore_o that_o the_o present_a church_n be_v 18._o no_o more_o liable_a to_o error_n through_o curiosity_n or_o weakness_n than_o be_v the_o primitive_a nor_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n with_o a_o general_n council_n more_o subject_a to_o err_v upon_o that_o account_n than_o be_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o follow_a word_n the_o relatour_n to_o
of_o holy_a image_n invocation_n of_o saint_n purgatory_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v ease_v of_o their_o pain_n and_o receive_v the_o full_a remission_n of_o their_o sin_n general_o use_v and_o practise_v by_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o freewill_n 〈◊〉_d of_o good_a work_n and_o justification_n by_o charity_n or_o inherent_a grace_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o universal_o teach_v and_o believe_v in_o all_o church_n of_o christendom_n yea_o even_o among_o those_o who_o in_o some_o few_o other_o point_v dissent_v from_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o latin_a church_n to_o what_o purpose_n then_o do_v the_o bishop_n urge_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v publish_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v catholic_a this_o do_v not_o justify_v at_o all_o his_o reformation_n he_o shall_v prove_v that_o it_o may_v not_o only_o add_v but_o take_v away_o something_o that_o be_v catholic_a from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o the_o pretend_a reformer_n do_v as_o well_o in_o england_n as_o elsewhere_o 5._o it_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n so_o evident_a in_o antiquity_n when_o or_o where_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la be_v add_v to_o the_o creed_n that_o his_o lordship_n shall_v so_o so_o easy_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v without_o proof_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n add_v it_o in_o quality_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n all_o that_o can_v be_v gather_v from_o author_n so_o far_o as_o i_o can_v yet_o learn_v concern_v this_o point_n be_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o toledo_n and_o luca_n assemble_v against_o the_o heretic_n call_v priscillianist_n the_o word_n be_v find_v insert_v in_o the_o creed_n which_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v do_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o epistle_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o pope_n leo_fw-la the_o first_o wherein_o he_o affirm_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v both_o from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n i_o confess_v 16._o hugo_n eterianus_n in_o his_o book_n write_v upon_o this_o subject_a about_o the_o year_n 1100_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v add_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o a_o full_a council_n at_o rome_n but_o he_o name_v not_o the_o pope_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v general_o know_v what_o pope_n it_o be_v i_o can_v certain_o say_v but_o of_o this_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o silence_n we_o now_o know_v not_o with_o any_o certainty_n who_o he_o mean_v traditioon_v card._n perron_n direct_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v first_o add_v by_o a_o assembly_n of_o french_a bishop_n but_o perhaps_o that_o may_v be_v more_o probable_a which_o stanislaus_n socolovius_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o answer_n of_o hieremias_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o lutheran_n pag._n 8._o viz._n that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o first_o council_n at_o constantinople_n which_o be_v the_o second_o general_n send_v the_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o pope_n damasus_n and_o his_o council_n at_o rome_n the_o pope_n and_o council_n at_o rome_n approve_v of_o their_o say_a confession_n but_o yet_o add_v by_o way_n of_o explication_n the_o word_n filioque_fw-la to_o the_o article_n which_o concern_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o this_o they_o do_v to_o signify_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o true_a god_n proceed_v from_o the_o son_n and_o be_v not_o make_v or_o create_v by_o he_o as_o some_o heretic_n in_o those_o time_n begin_v to_o teach_v neither_o do_v he_o affirm_v this_o without_o citation_n of_o some_o credible_a authority_n add_v withal_o that_o this_o definition_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v for_o some_o hundred_o of_o year_n general_o admit_v and_o embrace_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n neither_o greek_n nor_o latin_n dissent_v or_o take_v any_o exception_n at_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la till_o about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o eight_o synod_n where_o the_o greek_n first_o begin_v public_o to_o cavil_v against_o it_o more_o out_o of_o pride_n and_o peevish_a emulation_n against_o the_o latin_n then_o for_o any_o urgent_a reason_n they_o have_v to_o contest_v it_o more_o than_o their_o predecessor_n before_o they_o but_o of_o this_o i_o need_v not_o contend_v further_o with_o his_o lordship_n 6._o to_o return_v therefore_o to_o our_o business_n of_o reformation_n we_o grant_v in_o effect_n as_o great_a power_n as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v to_o particular_a church_n to_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n in_o reform_v error_n and_o abuse_n either_o of_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n only_o we_o require_v that_o they_o proceed_v with_o due_a respect_n to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o in_o all_o matter_n and_o decree_n of_o faith_n especial_o when_o they_o define_v or_o declare_v point_v not_o general_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v catholic_a truth_n for_o this_o even_a capellus_n himself_o by_o the_o relatour_n here_o cite_v require_v and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v evident_a for_o it_o in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o milevitan_n and_o carthaginian_a council_n which_o as_o st._n austin_n 93._o witness_n send_v their_o decree_n touch_v grace_n original_a sin_n in_o infant_n and_o other_o matter_n against_o pelagius_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v not_o esteem_v by_o st._n austin_n and_o those_o father_n the_o disease_n of_o the_o church_n a_o term_n very_o 3._o unhandsome_a from_o a_o inferior_a but_o rather_o the_o physician_n of_o it_o to_o who_o care_n and_o government_n it_o be_v commit_v neither_o do_v i_o think_v it_o convenient_a to_o stay_v for_o a_o general_n council_n when_o the_o error_n and_o abuse_n to_o be_v redress_v be_v such_o as_o call_v for_o speedy_a remedy_n and_o threaten_v great_a mischief_n if_o they_o be_v not_o timely_o prevent_v when_o the_o gangrene_n endanger_v life_n we_o do_v well_o to_o betake_v ourselves_o to_o the_o next_o chirurgeon_n that_o be_v a_o provincial_a council_n this_o in_o such_o a_o case_n with_o the_o pope_n assistance_n be_v acknowledge_v a_o physician_n competent_a and_o able_a to_o apply_v all_o due_a remedy_n to_o the_o church_n infirmity_n although_o i_o confess_v the_o most_o proper_a expedient_a special_o for_o all_o matter_n that_o concern_v the_o church_n in_o general_n be_v a_o ecumenical_a council_n such_o as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v whatever_o the_o bishop_n without_o 4._o any_o reason_n give_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a nor_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v object_v against_o it_o which_o upon_o due_a examination_n will_v not_o be_v find_v as_o easy_o applyable_a to_o all_o other_o approve_a council_n which_o the_o church_n have_v yet_o have_v so_o that_o by_o disow_v this_o we_o shall_v in_o effect_n disow_v all_o other_o but_o suppose_v it_o have_v not_o be_v general_n yet_o sure_o it_o be_v for_o number_n learning_n and_o authority_n far_o surpass_v any_o national_a council_n or_o synod_n which_o the_o protestant_n either_o of_o england_n or_o any_o other_o nation_n ever_o have_v wherefore_o if_o their_o assembly_n or_o synod_n so_o inconsiderable_a as_o they_o be_v be_v yet_o esteem_v of_o sufficient_a authority_n to_o make_v reformation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o correct_v what_o doctrine_n they_o imagine_v erroneous_a in_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v not_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v as_o sufficient_a to_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o say_v pretend_a error_n be_v indeed_o no_o error_n at_o all_o but_o divine_a truth_n and_o the_o perpetual_a universal_o receive_v tradition_n of_o christ_n church_n 7._o but_o it_o be_v yet_o more_o strange_a that_o our_o adversary_n shall_v also_o object_v want_n of_o freedom_n to_o this_o council_n see_v that_o even_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o their_o own_o partial_a and_o malevolent_a authority_n historian_n it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o neither_o the_o prelate_n want_v full_a liberty_n of_o suffrage_n nor_o the_o divine_n of_o disputation_n and_o maintain_v their_o several_a assertion_n in_o the_o best_a manner_n they_o can_v his_o lordship_n have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v look_v near_a home_n and_o consider_v how_o matter_n be_v carry_v in_o england_n much_o about_o that_o time_n if_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o a_o free_a council_n what_o be_v that_o protestant_a synod_n of_o london_n anno_fw-la 1562._o in_o which_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n that_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o protestant_a faith_n and_o religion_n in_o england_n be_v frame_v be_v that_o a_o free_a synod_n first_o at_o trent_n all_o the_o prelate_n in_o christendom_n that_o can_v be_v invite_v and_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o that_o council_n be_v solemn_o call_v do_v come_v and_o assist_v either_o in_o their_o person_n or_o proxy_n both_o at_o the_o deliberation_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o assembly_n i_o add_v that_o the_o protestant_n themselves_o be_v
general_n church_n as_o to_o make_v it_o err_v general_o in_o any_o one_o point_n of_o divine_a truth_n and_o much_o less_o to_o teach_v any_o thing_n by_o its_o full_a authority_n to_o be_v mater_fw-la of_o faith_n 4._o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o divine_a truth_n express_v or_o involve_v in_o scripture_n right_o understand_v and_o that_o therefore_o no_o reformation_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v needful_a in_o the_o general_n church_n but_o only_o in_o particular_a church_n cite_v to_o this_o purpose_n matth._n 16._o 18._o luc._n 22._o 32._o john_n 14._o 16._o in_o answer_n to_o which_o the_o bishop_n only_o tell_v we_o how_o unwilling_a he_o be_v in_o this_o troublesome_a and_o quarrel_a age_n to_o meddle_v with_o the_o err_a of_o the_o church_n in_o geveral_a he_o add_v though_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v err_v even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o of_o the_o err_a of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n she_o be_v modest_o silent_a it_o matter_n not_o what_o she_o say_v or_o say_v not_o in_o this_o but_o our_o question_n be_v what_o she_o must_v say_v if_o she_o speak_v consequent_o either_o to_o her_o principle_n or_o practice_v for_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o of_o those_o particular_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v reject_v as_o error_n by_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n be_v hold_v and_o teach_v for_o point_n of_o faith_n by_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o christendom_n when_o this_o pretend_a reformation_n begin_v if_o therefore_o they_o be_v dangerous_a error_n as_o the_o bishop_n with_o his_o english_a church_n profess_v 3._o they_o be_v by_o good_a consequence_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n hold_v that_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n have_v err_v dangerous_o but_o how_o unwilling_o soever_o his_o lordship_n seem_v to_o meddle_v with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n yet_o at_o last_o he_o meddle_v with_o it_o and_o that_o very_o free_o too_o for_o in_o effect_n he_o profess_v she_o may_v err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n hear_v his_o own_o word_n in_o answer_n to_o a._n c.'s_n assertion_n that_o the_o general_n church_n can_v not_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n if_o say_v the_o bishop_n he_o mean_v no_o more_o than_o this_o viz._n that_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v universal_o err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n he_o fight_v against_o no_o adversary_n but_o his_o 〈◊〉_d fiction_n what_o be_v this_o but_o tacit_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n may_v universal_o err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n not_o simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n be_v not_o this_o great_a modesty_n towards_o the_o church_n nay_o a_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o all_o christian_n who_o by_o this_o opinion_n must_v needs_o be_v leave_v in_o a_o wood_n touch_v the_o knowledge_n of_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o their_o salvation_n 3._o but_o the_o bishop_n suspect_v a_o dangerous_a consequence_n will_v be_v ground_v upon_o this_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o church_n can_v not_o ibidem_fw-la err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o divine_a truth_n in_o general_n though_o by_o sundry_a consequence_n deduce_v from_o principle_n of_o faith_n especial_o if_o she_o presume_v to_o determine_v without_o her_o proper_a guide_n the_o scripture_n as_o he_o affirm_v bellarmin_n to_o say_v she_o may_v i_o answer_v when_o god_n himself_o who_o wisdom_n be_v such_o that_o he_o can_v be_v deceive_v and_o verasity_n such_o that_o he_o can_v deceive_v speak_v by_o his_o organ_n the_o holy_a church_n that_o be_v by_o a_o general_n council_n unite_v with_o its_o head_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n what_o danger_n be_v there_o of_o error_n as_o concern_v bellarmin_n who_o be_v false_o accuse_v i_o wonder_v the_o relatour_n shall_v not_o observe_v a_o main_a difference_n between_o define_v matter_n absolute_o without_o scripture_n and_o define_v without_o express_a scripture_n which_o be_v all_o that_o 5._o bellarmin_n affirm_v for_o though_o the_o point_n define_v be_v not_o express_o in_o scripture_n yet_o they_o may_v be_v there_o implicit_o and_o right_o deduce_v from_o scripture_n as_o for_o example_n no_o man_n read_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n divinity_n as_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o receive_v for_o catholic_a faith_n even_o by_o protestant_n themselves_o express_o in_o scripture_n it_o be_v not_o there_o say_v in_o express_a term_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n or_o that_o he_o be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n and_o true_a god_n of_o true_a god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o who_o doubt_n but_o the_o sense_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o define_v of_o this_o and_o other_o point_n of_o like_a nature_n by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o do_v absolute_o speak_v without_o scripture_n beside_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v express_o commend_v tradition_n wherefore_o if_o the_o doctrine_n define_v for_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v according_a to_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n yet_o the_o church_n do_v not_o define_v it_o without_o scripture_n but_o according_a to_o scripture_n follow_v therein_o the_o rule_n which_o be_v give_v she_o in_o scripture_n but_o it_o be_v further_o urge_v by_o the_o bishop_n that_o a._n c._n grant_v the_o church_n ibidem_fw-la may_v be_v ignorant_a of_o some_o divine_a truth_n which_o afterward_o it_o may_v learn_v by_o study_n of_o scripture_n or_o otherwise_o therefore_o in_o that_o state_n of_o ignorance_n she_o may_v both_o err_v and_o teach_v her_o error_n yea_o and_o teach_v that_o to_o be_v divine_a truth_n which_o be_v not_o nay_o perhaps_o teach_v that_o as_o matter_n of_o divine_a truth_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o divine_a truth_n he_o add_v to_o this_o that_o we_o have_v as_o large_a a_o promise_n for_o the_o church_n know_v all_o point_n of_o divine_a truth_n as_o a._n c._n 13._o or_o any_o jesuit_n can_v produce_v for_o she_o not_o err_v in_o any_o thus_o the_o bishop_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v the_o argument_n be_v there_o any_o force_n in_o it_o will_v conclude_v as_o well_o against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o of_o the_o present_a catholic_a church_n for_o doubtless_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o divine_a truth_n though_o the_o promise_v intimate_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o be_v teach_v all_o truth_n john_n 16._o 13._o be_v immediate_o direct_v to_o they_o and_o yet_o it_o be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n that_o the_o apostle_n can_v not_o teach_v that_o to_o be_v divine_a truth_n which_o be_v not_o much_o less_o can_v they_o teach_v that_o as_o matter_n of_o divine_a truth_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o ignorance_n therefore_o of_o some_o divine_a truth_n and_o for_o some_o time_n only_o when_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v do_v not_o infer_v error_n or_o possibility_n of_o err_v in_o those_o truth_n when_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v the_o apostle_n matth._n 10._o 19_o be_v charge_v not_o to_o be_v solicitous_a beforehand_o what_o they_o shall_v answer_v to_o king_n and_o precedent_n be_v bring_v before_o they_o because_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o in_o that_o hour_n what_o to_o speak_v in_o like_a manner_n with_o due_a proportion_n be_v it_o now_o give_v to_o their_o successor_n what_o to_o answer_v that_o be_v what_o to_o define_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n when_o ever_o emergent_a occasion_n require_v it_o second_o i_o say_v that_o a_o ignorant_a man_n be_v of_o himself_o subject_a to_o error_n but_o teach_v and_o inform_v by_o a_o master_n that_o be_v infallible_a he_o may_v become_v infallible_a so_o that_o his_o lordship_n argument_n from_o bare_a ignorance_n conclude_v error_n or_o a_o absolute_a possibility_n of_o err_a be_v itself_o as_o erroneous_a as_o this_o a_o young_a scholar_n of_o himself_o alone_o be_v ignorant_a and_o apt_a to_o mistake_v the_o signification_n of_o word_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v do_v no_o otherwise_o then_o mistake_v while_o his_o master_n stand_v by_o he_o and_o teach_v he_o 4._o but_o the_o bishop_n at_o last_o bethink_v himself_o and_o put_v in_o a_o proviso_n provide_v always_o say_v he_o that_o this_o err_a of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o in_o any_o 4._o point_n simple_o fundamental_a for_o of_o such_o point_n even_o in_o his_o own_o judgement_n the_o whole_a church_n can_v be_v ignorant_a nor_o err_v in_o they_o to_o which_o proposition_n of_o his_o lordship_n at_o present_a we_o shall_v return_v no_o other_o answer_n but_o this_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v what_o
those_o point_n be_v which_o he_o call_v simple_o fundamental_a or_o simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n bellarmin_n from_o very_o good_a authority_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o barbarous_a and_o 14._o ignorant_a people_n have_v be_v save_v without_o believe_a scripture_n at_o all_o and_o if_o trial_n be_v make_v i_o believe_v it_o will_v be_v find_v the_o more_o common_a opinion_n even_o among_o protestant_n themselves_o that_o the_o explicite_fw-la belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o incarnation_n itself_o as_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n declare_v it_o be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n so_o that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v exempt_a from_o error_n only_o in_o such_o point_n the_o promise_n of_o christ_n will_v be_v bring_v to_o little_o more_o than_o nothing_o and_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n be_v shrink_v into_o so_o narrow_a a_o compass_n that_o most_o of_o the_o heretic_n she_o ever_o yet_o condemn_v will_v be_v find_v to_o have_v be_v out_o of_o her_o reach_n and_o may_v require_v she_o if_o not_o to_o reverse_v yet_o at_o least_o to_o review_v her_o sentence_n against_o they_o since_o his_o lordship_n will_v have_v it_o fallible_a lest_o perhaps_o she_o may_v err_v in_o pronounce_v it_o neither_o indeed_o can_v any_o rational_a man_n be_v ever_o satisfy_v by_o hear_v only_o in_o general_n that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n simple_o necessary_a to_o all_o man_n salvation_n if_o he_o be_v not_o withal_o determinate_o inform_v which_o be_v those_o point_n for_o so_o long_o as_o he_o know_v not_o what_o be_v or_o be_v not_o so_o universal_o necessary_a how_o can_v he_o be_v assure_v whether_o the_o church_n may_v not_o err_v or_o have_v not_o err_v in_o define_v such_o and_o such_o a_o particular_a matter_n let_v it_o therefore_o be_v first_o establish_v either_o by_o a_o determinate_a catalogue_n of_o such_o simple_o necessary_a and_o fundamental_a point_n or_o by_o some_o certain_a and_o determinate_a rule_n whereby_o we_o may_v undoubted_o know_v they_o otherwise_o we_o speak_v at_o random_n 5._o the_o strength_n of_o the_o place_n former_o allege_v by_o a._n c_o for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n whatever_o his_o lordship_n here_o again_o endeavour_n to_o enervate_a tell_v we_o first_o that_o they_o be_v know_v 5._o place_n and_o cite_v by_o a._n c._n three_o several_a time_n and_o to_o three_o several_a purpose_n what_o matter_n this_o they_o lose_v nothing_o of_o their_o force_n for_o be_v thrice_o cite_v by_o a._n c._n and_o more_o than_o thrice_o by_o stapleton_n bellarmin_n and_o other_o champion_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n circumstance_n so_o require_v it_o and_o do_v it_o seem_v strange_a to_o his_o lordship_n that_o a._n c._n shall_v apply_v they_o to_o several_a purpose_n he_o shall_v have_v remember_v how_o often_o scripture_n it_o be_v style_v by_o the_o father_n gladius_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o two-edged_a sword_n which_o sure_o cuts-several_a way_n bellarmin_n stapleton_n and_o a._n c._n follow_v the_o receive_a assertion_n of_o most_o catholic_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a even_o without_o a_o general_n council_n when_o he_o define_v any_o thing_n ex_fw-la cathedrâ_fw-la and_o with_o intention_n to_o oblige_v the_o whole_a church_n urge_v the_o place_n to_o that_o purpose_n as_o with_o very_o great_a probability_n they_o may_v yet_o because_o some_o catholic_a divine_n deny_v it_o the_o matter_n itself_o being_n not_o yet_o clear_o de_n fide_fw-la i_o shall_v be_v content_a that_o the_o say_v place_n prove_v at_o least_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n or_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n which_o in_o this_o question_n be_v to_o be_v account_v all_o one_o for_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v as_o be_v oblige_v to_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n and_o definition_n of_o such_o a_o council_n and_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v fallible_a what_o infallible_a certainty_n can_v we_o have_v of_o any_o tradition_n wherefore_o see_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n council_n and_o tradition_n depend_v so_o necessary_o upon_o each_o other_o whatever_o authority_n prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o any_o one_o do_v in_o effect_n and_o by_o good_a consequence_n prove_v the_o same_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n 6._o but_o let_v we_o come_v to_o the_o place_n in_o particular_a the_o first_o assure_v we_o that_o hell_n gate_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o the_o church_n here_o the_o bishop_n speak_v loud_a and_o send_v we_o a_o challenge_n there_o be_v no_o one_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o for_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n that_o ever_o conclude_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n out_o of_o this_o place_n and_o here_o i_o challenge_v a._n c._n and_o all_o that_o party_n to_o show_v the_o contrary_a if_o they_o can_v st._n austin_n have_v he_o be_v more_o full_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n will_v alone_o have_v be_v able_a to_o answer_v this_o challenge_n let_v we_o hear_v he_o speak_v ipsa_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la sancta_fw-la say_v he_o ecclesia_fw-la una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la catholica_fw-la 6._o contra_fw-la omnes_fw-la haereses_fw-la pugnans_fw-la pugnare_fw-la potest_fw-la expugnari_fw-la tamen_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la she_o be_v the_o holy_a church_n the_o only_a church_n the_o true_a church_n the_o gatholick_a church_n which_o fight_v against_o all_z heresy_n therefore_o yield_v to_o none_o complye_v with_o none_o fight_v she_o may_v but_o she_o can_v be_v overcome_v all_o heresy_n depart_v from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n cut_v off_o from_o the_o vine_n but_o she_o remain_v still_o in_o her_o root_n in_o her_o vine_n in_o her_o charity_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o overcome_v she_o thus_o saint_n austin_n can_v any_o man_n doubt_v but_o this_o holy_a doctor_n in_o the_o precedent_a word_n do_v in_o effect_n teach_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a when_o he_o say_v she_o perpetual_o fight_v against_o all_o heresy_n or_o error_n in_o faith_n and_o that_o she_o can_v never_o be_v over_o come_v by_o they_o do_v he_o not_o clear_o prove_v this_o truth_n by_o the_o allegation_n of_o this_o text_n in_o the_o close_a of_o they_o but_o i_o shall_v add_v one_o or_o two_o authority_n more_o to_o this_o purpose_n first_o st._n cyril_n secundum_fw-la hanc_fw-la promissionem_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la apostolica_fw-la petri_n etc._n etc._n according_a to_o this_o promise_n loci_fw-la say_v he_o the_o church_n apostolic_a of_o st._n peter_n abide_v always_o immaculate_a or_o free_a from_o all_o spot_n of_o heretical_a circumvention_n and_o error_n the_o text_n have_v be_v cite_v already_o you_o may_v observe_v the_o like_a sense_n in_o 〈◊〉_d st._n epiphanius_n ipse_fw-la autem_fw-la dominus_fw-la constituit_fw-la eum_fw-la primum_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la 14._o petram_fw-la firmam_fw-la supra_fw-la quam_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o lord_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o st._n peter_n ordain_v he_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n a_o firm_a rock_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v build_v and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o which_o gate_n of_o hell_n be_v heresy_n and_o arch-heretique_n 6._o for_o the_o better_a understanding_n of_o which_o text_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v that_o every_o error_n contrary_a to_o divine_a faith_n be_v heresy_n as_o st._n austin_n and_o all_o divine_n general_o teach_v wherefore_o if_o the_o church_n shall_v teach_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v she_o shall_v teach_v heresy_n and_o contradict_v these_o father_n who_o all_o clear_a the_o church_n from_o that_o aspersion_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n matth._n 16._o 18._o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o withal_o tacit_o at_o least_o acknowledge_v that_o if_o she_o do_v teach_v heresy_n at_o any_o time_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n in_o that_o case_n will_v be_v find_v to_o have_v prevail_v against_o she_o see_v therefore_o every_o error_n in_o faith_n or_o against_o divine_a revelation_n be_v heresy_n and_o since_o the_o church_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o father_n ground_v upon_o this_o promise_n can_v teach_v heresy_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o same_o father_n she_o can_v err_v in_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n whatever_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n how_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o second_o place_n have_v be_v show_v already_o and_o be_v here_o confirm_v even_o by_o his_o ibidem_fw-la lordship_n own_o discourse_n out_o of_o st._n leo_n epist_n 91._o which_o be_v that_o christ_n in_o that_o place_n promise_v to_o be_v present_a with_o his_o minister_n in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o commit_v
to_o their_o execution_n but_o sure_o one_o and_o a_o chief_a one_o of_o those_o all_z be_v to_o teach_v infallible_o the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n gospel_n wherefore_o christ_n be_v still_o present_a with_o his_o minister_n enable_v they_o to_o perform_v this_o so_o important_a a_o work_n when_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v execute_v that_o be_v when_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n require_v some_o point_n in_o controversy_n among_o christian_n to_o be_v determine_v nor_o will_v that_o conclusion_n hence_o follow_v which_o his_o lordship_n fear_n viz._n that_o all_o the_o sermon_n of_o every_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v infallible_a ibidem_fw-la for_o it_o be_v no_o way_n necessary_a that_o every_o particular_a pastor_n shall_v be_v infallible_a but_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o the_o church_n in_o general_n or_o a_o general_n council_n shall_v be_v infallible_a because_o otherwise_o there_o will_v no_o mean_n be_v leave_v in_o the_o church_n sufficient_a to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n or_o prevent_v the_o spread_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n to_o the_o end_n my_o reader_n may_v the_o better_o conceive_v this_o he_o be_v to_o understand_v there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o christ_n presence_n and_o assistance_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n all_o of_o they_o can_v challenge_v all_o privilege_n but_o must_v be_v content_a with_o those_o that_o proper_o belong_v to_o their_o respective_a state_n and_o condition_n in_o the_o sacred_a hierarchy_n and_o yet_o as_o all_o the_o say_a degree_n be_v ground_v upon_o this_o and_o the_o like_a promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a they_o be_v all_o verify_v according_a to_o the_o respective_a necessity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o supreme_a degree_n we_o affirm_v to_o be_v that_o of_o infallible_a assistance_n and_o therefore_o assign_v it_o only_o to_o those_o who_o have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o the_o church_n and_o in_o case_n only_o of_o most_o urgent_a necessity_n for_o prevent_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n in_o all_o other_o case_n and_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n we_o profess_v that_o so_o long_o as_o the_o teach_v and_o govern_v part_n of_o they_o be_v continual_o so_o assist_v by_o christ_n that_o it_o general_o lead_v not_o his_o flock_n into_o error_n in_o faith_n nor_o neglect_v to_o teach_v they_o the_o observation_n of_o all_o thing_n christ_n command_v the_o promise_n be_v sufficient_o perform_v on_o christ_n part_n and_o st._n leo_n word_n in_o omnibus_fw-la 91._o quae_fw-la ministris_fw-la suis_fw-la commisit_fw-la exequenda_fw-la right_o enough_o explicate_v though_o every_o private_a pastor_n become_v not_o a_o prophet_n and_o every_o pulpit_n a_o oracle_n as_o the_o relatour_n vain_o surmize_v the_o three_o place_n urge_v by_o a._n c._n be_v out_o of_o st._n luke_n 22._o 32._o where_o christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n be_v as_o efficacious_a as_o his_o promise_n both_o of_o they_o imply_v a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n against_o all_o error_n in_o faith_n whatsoever_o the_o word_n be_v these_o simon_n simon_n behold_v satan_n have_v require_v to_o have_v you_o to_o sift_v as_o wheat_n but_o i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o thou_o once_o convert_v confirm_v thy_o brethren_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o christ_n here_o pray_v that_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n may_v not_o fail_v either_o by_o pray_v for_o st._n peter_n as_o he_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o be_v the_o exposition_n of_o the_o parisian_n or_o by_o pray_v immediate_o for_o st._n peter_n person_n and_o mediate_o for_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o represent_v and_o thus_o at_o least_o that_o our_o saviour_n in_o that_o tax_v pray_v for_o the_o whole_a church_n bellarmin_n express_o grant_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o chapter_n cite_v by_o the_o ivitio_fw-la bishop_n it_o seem_v strange_a therefore_o that_o his_o authority_n shall_v be_v bring_v for_o denial_n of_o our_o saviour_n pray_v here_o for_o the_o church_n the_o prayer_n then_o of_o christ_n extend_v itself_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n and_o by_o they_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o st._n bernard_n dignum_fw-la namque_fw-la arbitror_fw-la ibi_fw-la potissimum_fw-la resarciri_fw-la damna_fw-la fidei_fw-la innocent_n ubi_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la fides_n sentire_fw-la defectum_fw-la cui_fw-la enim_fw-la alteri_fw-la sedi_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la aliquando_fw-la ego_fw-la rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o think_v it_o fit_v say_v he_o that_o the_o damage_n in_o faith_n shall_v be_v there_o chief_o repair_v where_o faith_n can_v suffer_v no_o defect_n for_o to_o what_o other_o chair_n be_v it_o ever_o say_v i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o take_v therefore_o which_o of_o these_o exposition_n you_o please_v if_o a_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o christ_n be_v once_o grant_v whereby_o his_o church_n be_v sufficient_o preserve_v from_o all_o error_n in_o faith_n whether_o that_o assistance_n be_v immediate_o intend_v in_o this_o prayer_n to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o supreme_a teacher_n of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o the_o church_n immediate_o as_o represent_v in_o st._n peter_n yet_o still_o the_o church_n will_v be_v infallible_a by_o virtue_n of_o this_o prayer_n of_o our_o saviour_n 8._o the_o four_o place_n name_v by_o a._n c._n be_v that_o of_o st._n john_n chap._n 14._o 16._o to_o which_o he_o add_v a_o consequent_a place_n john_n 16._o 13._o both_o of_o they_o contain_v another_o promise_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o in_o they_o to_o his_o church_n viz._n that_o the_o comforter_n the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v come_v and_o abide_v with_o they_o for_o ever_o teach_v they_o all_o thing_n etc._n etc._n and_o guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o have_v already_o sufficient_o explicate_v these_o place_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n so_o that_o our_o chief_a labour_n at_o present_a shall_v be_v to_o observe_v the_o bishop_n various_a trip_n and_o wind_n in_o his_o review_n of_o they_o first_o he_o say_v these_o promise_n if_o you_o apply_v they_o to_o the_o church_n consist_v of_o all_o believer_n and_o include_v the_o apostle_n be_v absolute_a and_o without_o any_o restriction_n which_o certain_o be_v but_o a_o loose_a assertion_n take_v it_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n which_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v free_a not_o only_o from_o all_o error_n but_o from_o all_o 2._o ignorance_n in_o divine_a thing_n for_o so_o his_o author_n a_o dr._n field_n speak_v who_o he_o cite_v in_o the_o margin_n be_v the_o apostle_n not_o ignorant_a of_o any_o divine_a matter_n why_o then_o do_v st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 13._o 9_o we_o know_v in_o part_n do_v the_o apostle_n understand_v the_o whole_a counsel_n of_o god_n concern_v mankind_n why_o then_o do_v the_o same_o apostle_n cry_v out_o rom._n 11._o 33_o 35._o o_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n how_o unsearchable_a be_v his_o judgement_n etc._n etc._n and_o who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n second_o if_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v so_o absolute_a and_o without_o any_o restriction_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o what_o purpose_n be_v that_o text_n of_o 15._o theodoret_n cite_v in_o his_o margin_n which_o say_v express_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v limit_v in_o regard_n of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o do_v not_o signify_v the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v lead_v simple_o into_o all_o truth_n but_o into_o all_o truth_n necessary_a or_o expedient_a to_o salvation_n three_o the_o bishop_n have_v limit_v the_o promise_n of_o be_v teach_v and_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n as_o they_o relate_v to_o the_o present_a church_n only_o to_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o satisfy_v but_o add_v another_o limitation_n to_o that_o viz._n direction_n of_o scripture_n against_o this_o truth_n say_v he_o mean_v truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o whole_a 5._o catholic_a church_n can_v err_v keep_v herself_o to_o the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n as_o christ_n have_v appoint_v she_o but_o i_o ask_v what_o privilege_n then_o have_v the_o catholic_a church_n in_o these_o promise_n of_o christ_n more_o than_o every_o private_a christian_n sure_o with_o this_o condition_n of_o follow_v the_o direction_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o faithful_a but_o may_v pretend_v to_o be_v as_o infallible_a as_o the_o church_n four_o they_o must_v be_v limit_v say_v he_o to_o all_o such_o truth_n as_o our_o saviour_n have_v tell_v they_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v teach_v divers_a thing_n of_o principal_a concernment_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n
even_o after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n have_v they_o no_o promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n in_o the_o delivery_n of_o those_o truth_n thus_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o nothing_o but_o if_o one_o shall_v ask_v some_o of_o this_o bishop_n disciple_n how_o their_o master_n prove_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n they_o must_v answer_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ipse_fw-la dixit_fw-la just_a as_o pythagoras_n his_o pupil_n do_v of_o old_a when_o they_o be_v urge_v to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o their_o master_n philosophy_n for_o where_o i_o pray_v have_v christ_n so_o limit_v his_o promise_n where_o do_v the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o to_o understand_v they_o with_o such_o limitation_n neither_o do_v we_o extend_v they_o to_o truth_n whole_o unnecessary_a or_o to_o curious_a truth_n as_o the_o bishop_n seem_v willing_a to_o insinuate_v no_o we_o tell_v he_o there_o be_v a_o medium_n a_o middle_a sort_n of_o truth_n between_o those_o which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o all_o man_n salvation_n and_o those_o which_o be_v simple_o unnecessary_a or_o curious_a we_o extend_v these_o promise_n to_o all_o truth_n of_o this_o middle_a sort_n that_o be_v to_o all_o such_o truth_n as_o the_o church_n find_v consonant_a to_o catholic_a faith_n and_o piety_n and_o necessary_a to_o be_v define_v for_o the_o prevent_n of_o heresy_n schism_n and_o dissension_n among_o christian_n but_o i_o pray_v observe_v our_o adversary_n unparalleled_a subtlety_n in_o the_o close_a of_o all_o christ_n say_v he_o have_v promise_v that_o the_o spirit_n shall_v lead_v his_o church_n into_o all_o truth_n but_o he_o have_v no_o where_o promise_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v follow_v her_o leader_n what_o a_o rare_a acumen_fw-la be_v here_o then_o belike_o to_o lead_v and_o to_o follow_v be_v not_o relative_n in_o protestant_a logic_n but_o let_v they_o take_v heed_n it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v they_o will_v be_v find_v relative_n and_o that_o if_o the_o devil_n chance_v to_o lead_v any_o of_o they_o to_o hell_n for_o their_o heresy_n and_o other_o sin_n nothing_o will_v help_v but_o they_o must_v infallible_o follow_v he_o and_o i_o wish_v that_o all_o his_o lordship_n party_n will_v due_o consider_v this_o as_o often_o as_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n after_o this_o manner_n chap._n 15._o of_o the_o roman_a church_n authority_n argument_n 1._o whether_o protestant_n beside_o reform_v themselves_o do_v not_o condemn_v the_o church_n of_o error_n in_o faith_n 2._o that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o large_a and_o high_a power_n over_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n 3._o the_o history_n or_o matter_n of_o fact_n touch_v the_o donatists_n appeal_n to_o the_o emperor_n relate_v and_o how_o little_a it_o advantage_n the_o bishop_n or_o his_o party_n 4._o st._n gregory_n authority_n concern_v the_o question_n of_o appeal_n and_o the_o civil_a law_n notable_o wrest_v by_o the_o bishop_n 5._o st._n wilfrid_n archbishop_n of_o york_n twice_o appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o be_v twice_o restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n by_o virtue_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n 6._o the_o african_a church_n always_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a 7._o st._n peter_n place_v his_o sea_n at_o rome_n no_o ground_n of_o his_o successor_n supremacy_n 8._o why_o the_o emperor_n for_o some_o time_n ratify_v the_o pope_n election_n 9_o inferior_a clerk_n only_o forbid_v by_o the_o canon_n to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n 10._o the_o pope_n never_o accuse_v by_o the_o ancient_n of_o falsify_v the_o canon_n and_o that_o he_o may_v just_o cite_v the_o canon_n of_o sardica_n as_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o bishop_n main_a task_n for_o a_o long_a time_n have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o general_n church_n may_v err_v and_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o reformation_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o be_v 7._o the_o thing_n which_o a._n c._n most_o constant_o deny_v but_o his_o lordship_n find_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o not_o so_o easy_a by_o little_a and_o little_o be_v fain_o to_o slide_v into_o another_o question_n concern_v the_o power_n particular_a church_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o think_v by_o this_o to_o authorize_v the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o his_o particular_a english_a church_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v his_o many_o allegation_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n rome_n gangre_n toledo_n etc._n etc._n §_o 24._o num_fw-la 5._o which_o how_o they_o succeed_v the_o reader_n may_v easy_o have_v perceive_v by_o our_o answer_n in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n 1._o he_o go_v on_o with_o his_o wont_a art_n which_o be_v to_o allege_v his_o adversary_n with_o not_o overmuch_o sincerity_n a._n c._n treat_v the_o abovesaid_a question_n touch_v the_o power_n particular_a church_n have_v to_o reform_v themselves_o and_o not_o deny_v but_o in_o some_o case_n particular_a church_n may_v reform_v what_o be_v amiss_o even_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o great_a caution_n add_v these_o express_a word_n pag._n 58._o when_o the_o need_n of_o reformation_n be_v only_a questionable_a particular_a pastor_n and_o church_n may_v not_o condemn_v other_o of_o error_n in_o faith_n but_o these_o word_n when_o the_o need_n be_v only_o questionable_a the_o bishop_n think_v fit_a to_o leave_v out_o to_o what_o end_n but_o to_o have_v some_o colour_n to_o contradict_v his_o adversary_n and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n let_v we_o now_o see_v whether_o his_o lordship_n party_n be_v far_o from_o judge_v and_o condemn_v other_o church_n as_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v they_o by_o his_o simile_n a_o man_n that_o live_v religious_o say_v he_o do_v not_o by_o and_o by_o sit_v in_o judgement_n and_o condemn_v with_o his_o mouth_n all_o profane_a liver_n but_o yet_o while_o he_o be_v silent_a his_o very_a life_n condemn_v they_o first_o of_o all_o who_o be_v these_o man_n that_o live_v so_o religious_o they_o who_o to_o propagate_v the_o gospel_n the_o better_o marry_v wife_n contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n and_o bring_v forsooth_o scripture_n for_o it_o 18._o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr bonum_fw-la esse_fw-la hominem_fw-la solum_fw-la and_o again_o 5._o numquid_fw-la non_fw-la habemus_fw-la potestatem_fw-la mulierem_fw-la sororem_fw-la circumducendi_fw-la who_o be_v these_o man_n i_o say_v that_o live_v so_o religious_o they_o who_o pull_v down_o monastery_n both_o of_o religious_a man_n and_o woman_n they_o who_o cast_v altar_n to_o the_o ground_n they_o who_o partly_o banish_v priest_n partly_o put_v they_o to_o death_n they_o who_o deface_v the_o very_a tomb_n of_o saint_n and_o will_v not_o permit_v they_o to_o rest_v even_o after_o they_o be_v dead_a these_o be_v the_o man_n who_o live_v so_o religious_o but_o who_o be_v according_a to_o his_o lordship_n profane_a liver_n they_o who_o stick_v close_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n they_o who_o for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n endure_v most_o willing_o sequestration_n imprisonment_n banishment_n death_n itself_o they_o in_o a_o word_n who_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o righteousness_n these_o in_o his_o lordship_n opinion_n be_v profane_a liver_n i_o return_v now_o to_o the_o relatour_n man_n that_o live_v so_o religious_o do_v these_o man_n never_o condemn_v the_o catholic_a church_n but_o by_o their_o virtuous_a life_n which_o you_o have_v see_v sure_o they_o condemn_v she_o not_o only_o by_o quite_o dissonant_n live_v but_o also_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n by_o their_o pen_n nay_o by_o public_a and_o solemn_a censure_n witness_v to_o go_v no_o further_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n artic._n 19_o where_o she_o condemn_v of_o error_n not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n but_o even_o of_o rome_n itself_o again_o rogers_n in_o his_o allow_a analyse_v and_o article_n comment_v upon_o the_o say_a article_n pronounce_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v not_o only_o shameful_o err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n may_v likewise_o err_v from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o have_v err_v in_o doctrine_n as_o well_o as_o conversation_n do_v they_o not_o say_v artic._n 21._o that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v even_o in_o thing_n pertain_v to_o god_n do_v they_o not_o pronounce_v of_o purgatory_n pray_v to_o saint_n worship_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n etc._n etc._n artic._n 22._o of_o transubstantiation_n artic._n 28._o and_o of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n artic._n 31._o respective_o that_o they_o be_v fond_a thing_n vain_o invent_v by_o man_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n blasphemous_a fable_n and_o dangerous_a deceit_n though_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o sun_n at_o noonday_n that_o both_o these_o and_o many_o other_o point_n deny_v and_o reject_v by_o protestant_n be_v the_o doctrine_n and_o
unto_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n we_o grant_v to_o you_o the_o use_n of_o the_o pall_n the_o proper_a badge_n or_o sign_n of_o archiepiscopal_a dignity_n to_o wear_v it_o when_o you_o say_v mass_n and_o we_o condescend_v that_o you_o ordain_v twelve_o bishop_n under_o your_o jurisdiction_n yet_o so_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n be_v consecrate_v hereafter_o by_o a_o synod_n of_o his_o own_o bishop_n and_o receive_v the_o pall_n from_o this_o holy_a apostolical_a sea_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n do_v now_o serve_v our_o will_n likewise_o be_v that_o you_o send_v a_o bishop_n to_o york_n to_o who_o we_o intend_v also_o to_o give_v the_o pall_n that_o be_v to_o make_v he_o a_o archbishop_n but_o to_o you_o shall_v be_v subject_a not_o only_o the_o bishop_n you_o make_v and_o he_o of_o york_n but_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o britain_n behold_v here_o the_o original_a charter_n as_o i_o may_v say_v of_o the_o primacy_n of_o canterbury_n in_o this_o letter_n and_o mandate_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v found_v nor_o can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n be_v draw_v from_o other_o origin_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o grant_n have_v all_o the_o succeed_a bishop_n of_o that_o sea_n enjoy_v the_o dignity_n and_o authority_n of_o primate_fw-la in_o this_o nation_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o out_o of_o question_n that_o true_o i_o see_v not_o how_o it_o be_v possible_a either_o to_o excuse_v the_o relatour_n gross_a ignorance_n if_o he_o know_v it_o not_o or_o his_o great_a ingratitude_n if_o know_v it_o he_o will_v be_v so_o unworthy_a as_o to_o belie_v his_o own_o knowledge_n and_o dissemble_v his_o obligation_n to_o that_o pope_n who_o have_v do_v so_o much_o for_o the_o sea_n of_o canterbury_n 6._o in_o the_o follow_a page_n his_o lordship_n spend_v not_o a_o few_o line_n in_o 11._o vain_a labour_v to_o prove_v a_o separation_n of_o the_o african_a church_n from_o that_o of_o rome_n chief_o out_o of_o two_o instrument_n find_v in_o several_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n which_o seem_v to_o testify_v as_o much_o one_o be_v a_o epistle_n or_o supplication_n rather_o which_o eulalius_n bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d be_v suppose_v to_o have_v write_v to_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o african_a church_n desire_v a_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o disclaim_v the_o separation_n make_v between_o they_o for_o many_o year_n before_o the_o other_o be_v a_o epistle_n of_o the_o same_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o to_o eulalius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n wherein_o he_o impart_v the_o good_a news_n of_o the_o african_a church_n submission_n and_o reconciliation_n with_o the_o roman_a and_o rejoice_v with_o he_o upon_o the_o occasion_n but_o i_o answer_v as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o stand_v not_o to_o maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o these_o epistle_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v general_o question_v by_o catholic_n nor_o answer_v the_o exception_n which_o baronius_n and_o bellarmin_n bring_v against_o they_o so_o the_o fin_n use_n he_o make_v of_o they_o be_v to_o very_o little_a purpose_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o dilemma_n viz._n if_o the_o say_a instrument_n be_v false_a than_o pope_n boniface_n the_o second_o and_o his_o accomplice_n at_o rome_n or_o some_o for_o they_o be_v notorious_a forger_n etc._n etc._n we_o deny_v the_o consequence_n there_o be_v no_o necessity_n to_o affirm_v that_o either_o boniface_n the_o second_o or_o his_o accomplice_n be_v forger_n of_o these_o pretend_a instrument_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_n in_o regard_v such_o a_o forgery_n will_v present_o have_v be_v discover_v and_o exclaim_v against_o see_v in_o that_o pope_n time_n no_o such_o man_n as_o eulalius_n be_v bishop_n of_o alexandria_n but_o one_o timotheus_n a_o heretic_n suprà_fw-la and_o great_a opposer_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n neither_o can_v the_o other_o eulalius_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v then_o a_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v not_o one_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o all_o africa_a as_o to_o his_o close_a word_n or_o some_o for_o they_o if_o he_o mean_v they_o do_v it_o by_o the_o pope_n consent_n it_o be_v answer_v under_o the_o word_n accomplice_n but_o if_o he_o intend_v no_o more_o but_o that_o they_o be_v forge_v by_o some_o body_n it_o be_v very_o true_a but_o what_o will_v it_o concern_v the_o roman_a sea_n if_o some_o other_o feign_v a_o epistle_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n be_v there_o not_o some_o that_o feign_a epistle_n and_o other_o write_n in_o the_o apostle_n name_n be_v that_o the_o apostle_n fault_n or_o do_v it_o bring_v any_o just_a prejudice_n either_o to_o the_o authority_n or_o integrity_n of_o their_o write_n to_o the_o second_o part_n viz._n if_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n do_v separate_v from_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o separation_n continue_v for_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n i_o answer_v till_o it_o be_v evince_v that_o these_o instrument_n be_v true_a we_o can_v suffer_v by_o they_o but_o his_o lordship_n be_v so_o far_o from_o offer_v at_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o positive_o affirm_v it_o he_o show_v we_o indeed_o several_a edition_n of_o the_o council_n wherein_o these_o instrument_n be_v insert_v but_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o the_o edition_n of_o council_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n have_v many_o other_o apocryphal_a and_o unauthentique_fw-la write_n insert_v in_o they_o beside_o these_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o may_v be_v because_o the_o compiler_n of_o those_o time_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o be_v censurer_n of_o what_o they_o find_v upon_o ancient_a record_n but_o only_o to_o be_v faithful_a publisher_n of_o the_o record_n whence_o it_o be_v that_o as_o they_o do_v not_o except_v against_o these_o instrument_n no_o more_o then_o against_o other_o of_o like_a nature_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o express_o approve_v they_o but_o mere_o publish_v what_o they_o find_v upon_o record_n leave_v the_o further_a scrutiny_n to_o the_o learned_a but_o as_o for_o the_o schismatical_a separation_n of_o the_o african_a church_n from_o the_o roman_a argue_v out_o of_o the_o say_a instrument_n it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o truth_n of_o story_n and_o confute_v by_o many_o pregnant_a and_o undeniable_a instance_n which_o prove_v that_o the_o african_n notwithstanding_o the_o contest_v in_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n touch_v matter_n of_o appeal_n be_v always_o in_o true_a catholic_a communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n even_o during_o the_o term_n of_o this_o pretend_a separation_n witness_v in_o the_o first_o place_n st._n austin_n himself_o who_o though_o he_o be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v as_o it_o be_v most_o probable_a to_o that_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o give_v all_o the_o offence_n yet_o after_o his_o death_n pope_n celestin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n use_v many_o expression_n of_o high_a commendation_n profess_v gal._n that_o he_o both_o live_v and_o dyid_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n witness_v likewise_o mauritan_n pope_n leo_n the_o first_o who_o for_o some_o time_n of_o the_o say_v pretend_a separation_n have_v his_o legate_n in_o africa_n order_v ecclesiastical_a matter_n there_o and_o receive_v lupicinus_n a_o african_a bishop_n appeal_n unto_o he_o witness_v also_o eugenius_n a_o catholic_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n who_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d require_v a_o disputation_n with_o he_o touch_v matter_n of_o faith_n vandal_n 〈◊〉_d the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o enter_v into_o dispute_n with_o any_o concern_v such_o matter_n without_o first_o consult_v that_o church_n witness_v fulgentius_n another_o of_o the_o most_o eminent_a bishop_n of_o the_o african_a church_n live_v also_o within_o the_o say_a term_n who_o testimony_n be_v already_o cite_v chap._n 10._o §_o 5._o pag._n 131_o 132._o witness_v the_o two_o african_a bishop_n restitutus_n and_o octavius_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o rome_n under_o colon._n pope_n hilarius_n about_o the_o year_n 467._o and_o subscribe_v the_o canon_n one_o whereof_o be_v that_o none_o ought_v to_o violate_v the_o constitution_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n nor_o the_o deoree_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n witness_v further_a pope_n gregory_n himself_o etc._n who_o in_o several_a of_o his_o epistle_n acknowledge_v the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o other_o african_a bishop_n to_o have_v be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o communion_n with_o he_o yea_o particular_o praise_v they_o for_o their_o respect_n to_o the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o assert_n his_o own_o right_n of_o receive_v appeal_n from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n as_o necessity_n require_v witness_v final_o no_o less_o
than_o two_o hundred_o african_a bishop_n at_o once_o who_o be_v banish_v into_o sicily_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n by_o the_o arrian_n king_n gelimer_n roman_n symmachus_n papa_n say_v paulus_n diaconus_fw-la ut_fw-la sua_fw-la membra_fw-la suis_fw-la sumptibus_fw-la aluit_fw-la ac_fw-la fovit_fw-la liberalissimè_fw-la pope_n symmachus_n maintain_v they_o most_o liberal_o at_o his_o own_o charge_n as_o member_n of_o his_o own_o body_n which_o be_v a_o convince_a argument_n that_o he_o hold_v they_o not_o for_o schismatic_n 7._o in_o the_o next_o paragraph_n the_o bishop_n by_o a_o long_a discourse_n found_v more_o upon_o his_o own_o conjectural_a presumption_n than_o any_o thing_n else_o undertake_v to_o show_v how_o the_o pope_n rose_n by_o degree_n to_o that_o height_n of_o authority_n 12._o which_o protestant_n can_v endure_v to_o see_v in_o which_o discourse_n have_v first_o asper'_v st._n hierome_n as_o be_v no_o great_a friend_n to_o bishop_n which_o be_v both_o false_a and_o injurious_a to_o the_o reputation_n of_o so_o holy_a a_o doctor_n at_o last_o he_o deliver_v his_o own_o assertion_n which_o be_v that_o the_o very_a fountain_n of_o papal_a greatness_n be_v the_o pope_n residence_n in_o the_o great_a imperial_a city_n but_o we_o have_v often_o show_v a_o far_o different_a fountain_n thereof_o viz._n the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n make_v st._n peter_n head_n of_o his_o universal_a church_n in_o that_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la etc._n etc._n according_a to_o the_o common_a exposition_n of_o father_n be_v it_o reason_n then_o we_o shall_v take_v the_o relatour_n bare_a word_n for_o it_o without_o proof_n well_o but_o precedency_n say_v he_o be_v one_o thing_n and_o authority_n another_o thereby_o insinuate_v that_o under_o the_o reign_n of_o constantin_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v only_a precedency_n or_o priority_n of_o place_n in_o public_a assembly_n before_o other_o prelate_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o residence_n in_o the_o imperial_a city_n without_o any_o proper_a authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o but_o we_o have_v often_o evidence_v the_o contrary_a 8._o after_o a_o slight_a glance_n at_o the_o levity_n of_o the_o eastern_a and_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n wherein_o the_o pope_n be_v no_o more_o concern_v than_o all_o other_o prelate_n of_o the_o west_n he_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o obedience_n pope_n do_v ancient_o show_v towards_o the_o emperor_n endure_v say_v he_o their_o censure_n and_o judgement_n and_o accept_v the_o ratification_n of_o their_o election_n to_o the_o popedom_n at_o the_o emperor_n hand_n we_o confess_v all_o this_o they_o endure_v the_o emperor_n censure_n just_a in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o all_o other_o oppress_a person_n be_v force_v to_o endure_v the_o judgement_n of_o their_o oppressor_n but_o let_v all_o his_o lordship_n party_n show_v we_o one_o just_a judgement_n that_o a_o emperor_n ever_o pronounce_v against_o the_o pope_n they_o accept_v the_o ratification_n of_o their_o election_n at_o the_o emperor_n hand_n but_o sure_o that_o except_o in_o some_o few_o case_n where_o wicked_a emperor_n apparent_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o and_o by_o force_n compel_v they_o to_o do_v what_o they_o please_v contrary_a to_o law_n and_o custom_n be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o the_o emperor_n be_v due_o inform_v that_o such_o or_o such_o a_o person_n be_v canonical_o choose_v pope_n there_o issue_v forth_o of_o course_n some_o declaration_n or_o other_o authentic_a act_n from_o the_o emperor_n whereby_o he_o give_v notice_n thereof_o to_o the_o principal_a judicature_n and_o perfect_a ship_n of_o the_o empire_n require_v they_o upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o say_v elect_v person_n for_o pope_n a_o thing_n very_o proper_a for_o the_o emperor_n to_o do_v as_o the_o state_n of_o the_o empire_n then_o stand_v as_o be_v also_o observe_v in_o the_o election_n of_o most_o of_o the_o chief_a prelate_n and_o officer_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o his_o lordship_n be_v much_o mistake_v if_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o ratify_v the_o pope_n election_n he_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v ever_o any_o just_a power_n to_o make_v who_o they_o please_v pope_n never_o any_o good_a emperor_n pretend_v to_o more_o then_o to_o see_v that_o the_o election_n be_v canonical_a which_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o high_o concern_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o empire_n can_v not_o with_o equity_n be_v deny_v they_o but_o have_v any_o emperor_n refuse_v to_o ratify_v the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n canonical_o choose_v no_o man_n but_o a_o stranger_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n can_v doubt_v but_o all_o good_a christian_n will_v in_o such_o case_n have_v adhere_v to_o the_o say_a pope_n and_o not_o to_o he_o the_o emperor_n shall_v have_v obtrude_v upon_o they_o we_o also_o grant_v that_o so_o long_o as_o the_o pope_n remain_v a_o subject_a of_o the_o empire_n this_o custom_n continue_v but_o be_v afterward_o declare_v free_a from_o that_o subjection_n the_o reason_n cease_v and_o the_o custom_n with_o it_o see_v gratian._n decret_a can._n ego_fw-la ludovicus_n dist._n 63._o &_o can._n constitutio_fw-la dist._n eâdem_fw-la where_fw-mi the_o emperor_n themselves_o renounce_v it_o after_o this_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n be_v grow_v so_o ambitious_a that_o they_o can_v hardly_o contain_v themselves_o within_o the_o ordinary_a bound_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n the_o relatour_n cite_v we_o three_o greek_a word_n out_o of_o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v beyond_o their_o priestly_a power_n or_o office_n to_o which_o i_o may_v well_o supersede_n the_o answer_n since_o he_o quote_v not_o the_o place_n of_o his_o author_n which_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a he_o industrious_o omit_v yet_o the_o place_n after_o some_o search_n we_o have_v find_v lib._n 7._o hist._n cap._n 11._o and_o must_v needs_o say_v it_o be_v such_o a_o place_n as_o clear_o show_v not_o only_o that_o socrates_n be_v a_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o a_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n as_o divers_a good_a author_n charge_v he_o but_o that_o even_o the_o bishop_n himself_o be_v not_o so_o great_a a_o friend_n to_o truth_n and_o ingenuity_n as_o he_o ought_v for_o certain_o the_o historian_n utter_v the_o allege_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mere_o out_o of_o spleen_n against_o the_o say_a patriarch_n of_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n 11._o for_o not_o suffer_v the_o novatian_a heretic_n to_o exercise_v public_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o heresy_n in_o catholic_a church_n for_o which_o how_o little_a it_o become_v his_o lordship_n first_o to_o tax_v they_o of_o pride_n and_o then_o to_o palliate_v his_o injurious_a censure_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o such_o a_o author_n let_v any_o man_n judge_n but_o all_o be_v lawful_a with_o some_o man_n that_o be_v do_v or_o speak_v against_o the_o roman_a church_n billius_n his_o observation_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n object_v levity_n to_o the_o eastern_a and_o of_o these_o retort_v arrogancy_n to_o those_o of_o the_o west_n prove_v just_a as_o much_o as_o the_o testimony_n of_o one_o adversary_n against_o another_o and_o whether_o the_o world_n by_o this_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o pope_n ambition_n or_o not_o sure_o i_o be_o there_o be_v no_o unbiased_a judgement_n but_o will_v take_v notice_n our_o adversary_n be_v very_o destitute_a of_o solid_a proof_n who_o fill_v his_o page_n only_o with_o such_o impertinency_n as_o these_o 9_o his_o main_a design_n be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n by_o show_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n but_o catholic_a author_n frame_v a_o unanswerable_a argument_n for_o his_o supremacy_n even_o from_o the_o contrary_a thus_o it_o be_v ever_o hold_v lawful_a to_o appeal_v to_o rome_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n from_o all_o the_o part_n of_o christendom_n therefore_o say_v they_o the_o pope_n must_v needs_o be_v supreme_a judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n this_o be_v evidence_v out_o of_o the_o four_o and_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n account_v ancient_o a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o often_o cite_v as_o the_o same_o with_o it_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o some_o ancient_a author_n may_v speak_v against_o too_o frequent_a appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o decline_v ordinary_a jurisdiction_n especial_o where_o the_o crime_n be_v manifest_a and_o all_o just_a proceed_n towards_o delinquent_a party_n observe_v as_o who_o doubt_n but_o in_o civil_a cause_n there_o may_v be_v just_a ground_n of_o complaint_n against_o the_o like_a appeal_n especial_o if_o the_o court_n to_o which_o the_o cause_n be_v remove_v by_o appeal_n be_v very_o remote_a but_o withal_o who_o see_v not_o that_o such_o accidental_a complaint_n do_v rather_o confirm_v then_o weaken_v the_o confess_a authority_n and_o right_n
have_v open_v the_o father_n meaning_n viz._n that_o not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v a_o particular_a church_n keep_v entire_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o that_o in_o it_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o do_v keep_v the_o same_o apostolical_a tradition_n by_o be_v in_o unity_n and_o communion_n with_o she_o thus_o you_o may_v see_v to_o what_o shift_n and_o upon_o what_o shelf_n even_o learned_a man_n be_v often_o drive_v by_o maintain_v error_n from_o the_o premise_n i_o argue_v thus_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o must_v of_o necessity_n have_v recourse_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propter_fw-la potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n this_o be_v st._n irenaeus_n his_o proposition_n but_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n they_o all_o shall_v have_v recourse_n to_o that_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o powerful_a principality_n if_o her_o say_a power_n exend_v not_o to_o they_o all_o this_o be_v evident_a to_o reason_n ergo_fw-la this_o more_o powerful_a principality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v needs_o extend_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a every_o where_o and_o not_o only_o to_o those_o of_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n or_o patriarchal_a diocese_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o bishop_n plead_v 7._o little_o therefore_o be_v it_o to_o his_o advantage_n what_o he_o pretend_v to_o show_v out_o of_o ruffinus_n viz_o that_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a patriarchate_n be_v contain_v within_o the_o island_n and_o precinct_n of_o italy_n since_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o vote_n of_o all_o antiquity_n and_o give_v st._n irenaeus_n the_o lie_n nay_o it_o make_v her_o jurisdiction_n incomparable_o less_o than_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarchal_a church_n yea_o of_o much_o less_o extent_n than_o many_o metropolitan_a church_n to_o which_o i_o add_v it_o be_v contrary_a even_o to_o the_o common_a compute_v of_o protestant_n themselves_z who_o often_o grant_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v patriarch_n of_o the_o west_n which_o undeniable_o contain_v many_o vast_a province_n and_o nation_n beside_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n about_o it_o wherefore_o as_o the_o bishop_n can_v not_o altogether_o deny_v but_o the_o word_n suburbicary_n be_v undue_o add_v by_o ruffinus_n in_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o nicene_n canon_n so_o i_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o understand_v it_o unless_o we_o will_v contradict_v all_o the_o world_n not_o in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n as_o signify_v only_o the_o church_n of_o italy_n and_o the_o island_n thereto_o belong_v but_o as_o general_o signify_v all_o church_n and_o city_n any_o way_n suburdinate_a to_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n know_v as_o also_o to_o this_o day_n by_o the_o name_n of_o urbs_fw-la or_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o excellency_n not_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o perfect_a or_o governor_n of_o rome_n in_o regard_n of_o who_o ordinary_a jurisdiction_n we_o confess_v it_o command_v only_o those_o few_o place_n about_o it_o in_o italy_n but_o as_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o emperor_n himself_o in_o which_o sense_n the_o word_n suburbicary_n right_o signify_v all_o city_n or_o church_n whatsoever_o within_o the_o roman_a empire_n as_o the_o word_n romania_n also_o ancient_o signify_v the_o whole_a imperial_a territory_n as_o card._n perron_n clear_o prove_v upon_o this_o subject_a this_o exposition_n of_o ruffinus_n his_o term_n suburbicary_n want_v not_o ground_n even_o in_o his_o own_o text_n who_o make_v as_o it_o be_v a_o contradistinction_n between_o egypt_n and_o the_o suburbicary_n church_n now_o under_o egypt_n he_o comprehend_v lybia_n pentapolis_n and_o ethiopia_n which_o be_v without_o the_o precinct_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v commit_v to_o the_o power_n and_o care_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n but_o all_o suburbicary_n city_n that_o be_v such_o as_o be_v under_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n as_o it_o be_v imperial_a be_v leave_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o he_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o seat_n at_o rome_n be_v still_o to_o be_v their_o chief_a prelate_n and_o to_o have_v a_o more_o immediate_a and_o ordinary_a care_n over_o they_o than_o he_o have_v over_o those_o other_o city_n which_o be_v out_o of_o the_o empire_n though_o as_o st._n peter_n successor_n he_o have_v the_o universal_a care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o that_o full_a potentiorem_fw-la principalitatem_fw-la which_o st._n irenaeus_n ascribe_v unto_o he_o 8._o touch_v calvin_n conjecture_n that_o recourse_n be_v therefore_o have_v to_o rome_n because_o at_o that_o time_n the_o roman_a church_n be_v more_o constant_a to_o the_o truth_n and_o less_o distract_v with_o dangerous_a opinion_n it_o be_v whole_o inept_v for_o it_o be_v false_a that_o before_o st._n irenaeus_n time_n rome_n be_v more_o constant_a in_o the_o faith_n than_o the_o other_o church_n of_o greece_n and_o africa_n have_v be_v see_v the_o african_a church_n be_v then_o as_o free_v from_o heresy_n as_o rome_n 9_o the_o bishop_n here_o give_v himself_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o trouble_n to_o wrest_v 14._o from_o we_o a_o text_n or_o two_o of_o epiphanius_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n wherein_o though_o he_o grant_v somewhat_o beyond_o his_o wont_a reservedness_n that_o st._n peter_n person_n be_v understand_v in_o that_o text_n of_o the_o gospel_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la etc._n etc._n matth._n 16._o 18._o yet_o will_v he_o by_o no_o mean_n be_v persuade_v to_o extend_v it_o any_o further_a than_o his_o person_n but_o we_o affirm_v it_o be_v clear_a even_o by_o the_o text_n of_o st._n epiphanius_n that_o this_o promise_v make_v by_o christ_n to_o st._n peter_n be_v derive_v to_o his_o successor_n for_o first_o after_o the_o word_n 1622._o et_fw-fr porte_fw-fr inferorum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o this_o father_n immediate_o add_v quarum_fw-la portarum_fw-la nomine_fw-la hereses_n &_o haeresewn_n conditores_fw-la intelliguntur_fw-la by_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n heresy_n and_o the_o author_n of_o heresy_n be_v understand_v that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o heresy_n and_o all_o author_n of_o heresy_n whatever_o shall_v arise_v such_o indefinite_a proposition_n be_v equivalent_a to_o universal_a true_a it_o be_v the_o bishop_n omit_v these_o last_o word_n by_o his_o wont_a et_fw-la cetera_fw-la however_o since_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o by_o the_o firm_a rock_n whereon_o our_o saviour_n according_a to_o epiphanius_n promise_v to_o build_v his_o church_n st._n peter_n be_v personal_o understand_v we_o shall_v easy_o make_v good_a our_o argument_n from_o it_o and_o solve_v his_o objection_n for_o he_o must_v consequent_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n so_o found_v on_o st._n peter_n as_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o foundation_n it_o be_v to_o prevail_v against_o all_o heresy_n and_o inventor_n of_o heresy_n that_o shall_v at_o any_o time_n impugn_v the_o church_n faith_n which_o can_v not_o possible_o be_v verify_v in_o case_n christ_n promise_n be_v to_o be_v limit_v to_o st._n peter_n person_n alone_o for_o else_o why_o may_v not_o heresy_n and_o heretic_n after_o st._n peter_n death_n prevail_v against_o the_o church_n yea_o so_o far_o prevail_v as_o utter_o to_o extinguish_v the_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o the_o bishop_n long_a discourse_n by_o way_n of_o gloss_n on_o this_o and_o some_o other_o text_n of_o the_o same_o father_n concern_v we_o not_o at_o all_o for_o it_o be_v once_o grant_v that_o st._n peter_n be_v personal_o to_o uphold_v the_o church_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o its_o principal_a foundation_n under_o christ_n we_o have_v our_o desire_n nevertheless_o we_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v any_o ground_n to_o limit_v to_o st._n peter_n only_o those_o eulogium_n give_v he_o by_o st._n epiphanius_n and_o not_o allow_v they_o extendible_a to_o his_o successor_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o their_o uphold_v the_o church_n also_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o true_a faith_n wherefore_o as_o st._n peter_n authority_n be_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n right_o urge_v by_o epiphanius_n to_o prove_v the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o the_o heretic_n that_o deny_v it_o so_o doubtless_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o promise_n and_o institution_n of_o christ_n may_v and_o aught_o the_o authority_n of_o his_o successor_n be_v urge_v in_o time_n to_o come_v in_o proof_n of_o any_o other_o contest_v article_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o therefore_o we_o affirm_v not_o as_o the_o relatour_n be_v frequent_o impose_v upon_o we_o that_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v by_o virtue_n of_o this_o text_n to_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o prince_n and_o monarch_n yet_o we_o say_v that_o by_o virtue_n
but_o this_o viz._n that_o its_o decree_n be_v universal_o receive_v as_o obligatory_a by_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n diffusive_a neither_o be_v this_o confirmation_n so_o simple_o and_o absolute_o necessary_a but_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o assemble_v and_o due_o confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n be_v obligatory_a without_o it_o and_o antecedent_o to_o it_o but_o what_o if_o st._n austin_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o the_o bishop_n cite_v he_o for_o viz._n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n diffusive_a that_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n authority_n his_o word_n be_v these_o 18._o illis_fw-la temporibus_fw-la antequàm_fw-la plenarij_fw-la concilij_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la quid_fw-la in_o hâc_fw-la re_fw-la sequendum_fw-la esset_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensio_fw-la confirmasset_fw-la visum_fw-la est_fw-la ei_fw-la etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o father_n speak_v of_o st._n cyprian_n error_n the_o whole_a drift_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v to_o tell_v we_o it_o be_v the_o more_o excusable_a in_o he_o because_o he_o defend_v it_o only_o before_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v by_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n establish_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o that_o point_n be_v this_o to_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n yield_v to_o it_o and_o not_o otherwise_o as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o persuade_v we_o sure_o no._n to_o conclude_v therefore_o we_o think_v the_o bishop_n can_v not_o well_o have_v more_o effectual_o justify_v our_o assertion_n concern_v the_o authority_n both_o of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o general_n council_n then_o by_o cite_v this_o text_n of_o st._n austin_n since_o it_o clear_o signify_v that_o the_o church_n do_v settle_v and_o determine_v matter_n of_o controversy_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o which_o the_o whole_a church_n consent_n be_v both_o virtual_o include_v and_o effectual_o declare_v 8._o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o yet_o well_o please_v with_o a._n c._n but_o go_v on_o in_o his_o 2._o angry_a exception_n against_o he_o for_o interpose_v as_o he_o tell_v we_o new_a matter_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o conference_n but_o how_o can_v it_o be_v call_v new_a matter_n as_o not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o question_n debate_v in_o the_o conference_n if_o a._n c._n urge_v and_o prove_v by_o what_o reason_n he_o can_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n for_o end_v controversy_n in_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o point_n his_o adversary_n most_o especial_o deny_v a._n c._n desire_n to_o know_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v for_o reunite_a the_o church_n in_o case_n of_o heresy_n and_o division_n when_o a_o general_a council_n can_v be_v hold_v by_o reason_n of_o manifold_a impediment_n or_o be_v call_v will_v not_o be_v of_o one_o mind_n have_v christ_n our_o lord_n say_v he_o in_o this_o case_n provide_v no_o rule_n no_o judge_n infallible_a to_o determine_v controversy_n and_o procure_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o belief_n yes_o say_v the_o bishop_n he_o have_v leave_v a_o infallible_a rule_n the_o scripture_n but_o this_o answer_n a._n c._n foreseeing_a prevent_v by_o his_o follow_a word_n 60_o have_v the_o relatour_n please_v to_o set_v they_o down_o which_o show_v the_o inconvenience_n of_o admit_v that_o rule_n as_o protestant_n admit_v it_o since_o it_o render_v all_o matter_n of_o faith_n uncertain_a what_o say_v the_o bishop_n to_o that_o first_o he_o cunning_o dissemble_v the_o objection_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o a._n c._n s_o discourse_n to_o that_o purpose_n and_o yet_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o apply_v some_o salve_n to_o the_o sore_a he_o add_v in_o the_o second_o place_n as_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o tacit_fw-la prevention_n in_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n the_o scripture_n by_o the_o manifest_a place_n of_o it_o which_o admit_v no_o dispute_n nor_o need_v any_o external_a judge_n to_o interpret_v they_o be_v able_a to_o settle_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o belief_n 3._o among_o christian_n and_o about_o thing_n not_o necessary_a there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v contention_n to_o a_o separation_n and_o therefore_o no_o matter_n how_o uncertain_a and_o undetermined_a they_o be_v but_o sure_o here_o the_o bishop_n go_v too_o far_o and_o lose_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o labyrinth_n for_o if_o by_o matter_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n he_o understand_v only_o such_o as_o be_v of_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o be_v express_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la as_o divine_v speak_v though_o we_o shall_v grant_v they_o be_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n as_o not_o to_o fall_v under_o dispute_n among_o christian_n yet_o to_o affirm_v as_o he_o do_v that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o contention_n to_o a_o separation_n about_o any_o other_o point_n be_v to_o condemn_v the_o perpetual_a practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o have_v ever_o oblige_v her_o child_n under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o thousand_o of_o sectary_n and_o heretic_n as_o namely_o from_o the_o montanist_n the_o quartodecimani_a the_o rebaptizer_n monothelite_n pelagian_n semipelagian_n vigilantian_n iconoclast_n and_o the_o like_a who_o hold_v all_o those_o foresay_a necessary_a matter_n and_o err_v only_o in_o such_o as_o be_v not_o absolute_o and_o universal_o necessary_a to_o be_v express_o know_v and_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n whatsoever_o but_o if_o by_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n he_o mean_v any_o of_o those_o which_o divine_v term_v necessary_a necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la he_o shall_v have_v assign_v they_o in_o particular_a for_o till_o that_o be_v do_v such_o general_n answer_v as_o the_o bishop_n here_o give_v signify_v nothing_o either_o to_o the_o just_a satisfaction_n of_o we_o or_o security_n of_o their_o own_o proceed_n since_o they_o can_v possible_o know_v in_o what_o point_v they_o ought_v to_o hold_v contention_n to_o a_o separation_n and_o in_o what_o not_o moreover_o we_o have_v already_o prove_v at_o large_a chap._n 2._o and_o in_o other_o place_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v whatever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n whether_o clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o not_o it_o follow_v there_o must_v be_v some_o other_o infallible_a rule_n beside_o scripture_n whereon_o to_o ground_v our_o faith_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o clear_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n the_o holy_a scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o qualify_v for_o such_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v make_v we_o believe_v it_o be_v for_o though_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v 4._o to_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a in_o itself_o yet_o be_v it_o not_o so_o in_o order_n to_o we_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o know_v to_o we_o for_o god_n word_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n assure_v we_o of_o that_o truth_n and_o he_o be_v very_o much_o mistake_v when_o he_o suppose_v the_o ancient_a church_n have_v no_o other_o additional_a infallible_a rule_n viz._n tradition_n by_o which_o to_o direct_v their_o counsel_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n alledgeable_a out_o of_o bellarmin_n contrary_a to_o this_o sense_n if_o his_o word_n be_v candid_o interpret_v tertullian_n indeed_o call_v scripture_n the_o principal_a rule_n and_o we_o if_o we_o have_v not_o sufficient_o acknowledge_v it_o already_o upon_o sundry_a occasion_n will_v now_o say_v so_o too_o it_o be_v the_o principal_a not_o the_o only_a rule_n he_o adore_v the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n so_o do_v we_o as_o to_o that_o particular_a point_n about_o which_o he_o then_o dispute_v we_o confess_v the_o scripture_n do_v most_o full_o prove_v against_o hermogenes_n the_o heretic_n that_o the_o world_n or_o matter_n whereof_o this_o world_n consist_v be_v not_o eternal_a but_o create_v by_o god_n in_o time_n again_o it_o be_v no_o way_n probable_a that_o tertullian_n here_o extend_v the_o fullness_n of_o scripture_n so_o far_o as_o to_o exclude_v all_o unwritten_a tradition_n which_o in_o other_o part_n of_o his_o virgin_n work_n he_o maintain_v more_o express_o than_o many_o other_o of_o the_o father_n what_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o his_o whole_a book_n de_fw-fr praescriptionibus_fw-la but_o to_o show_v that_o heretic_n can_v be_v confute_v by_o scripture_n alone_o without_o tradition_n now_o we_o say_v both_o with_o he_o st._n hierome_n and_o st._n basil_n that_o to_o superinduce_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v write_v be_v a_o manifest_a error_n in_o faith_n and_o that_o it_o have_v a_o woe_n annex_v to_o it_o but_o to_o superinduce_v what_o be_v no_o way_n dissonant_n but_o rather_o consonant_a and_o agreeable_a to_o scripture_n have_v no_o such_o curse_n
civil_a affair_n which_o be_v another_o aspersion_n the_o bishop_n lay_v upon_o they_o gregory_n the_o seven_o and_o innocent_a ibidem_fw-la the_o three_o be_v indeed_o very_o prudent_a man_n and_o worthy_a champion_n of_o the_o church_n to_o assert_v her_o just_a liberty_n but_o they_o never_o endeavour_v to_o subject_v the_o emperor_n to_o themselves_o in_o temporal_a matter_n and_o it_o have_v be_v more_o for_o our_o adversary_n credit_v instead_o of_o false_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v plain_a in_o history_n that_o they_o do_v so_o to_o have_v give_v we_o at_o least_o some_o one_o good_a proof_n of_o it_o can_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v solid_o conclude_v from_o the_o allegory_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n upon_o which_o the_o relatour_n so_o long_o insist_o and_o make_v so_o many_o unsignificant_a reflection_n that_o they_o will_v better_o become_v a_o person_n the_o moon_n have_v particular_o wrought_v upon_o than_o a_o primate_n of_o england_n 8._o the_o relatour_n can_v not_o leave_v his_o digressive_a discourse_n without_o give_v a_o lash_n to_o the_o jesuit_n by_o will_v they_o to_o leave_v their_o practise_v to_o advance_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n but_o i_o wonder_v he_o can_v so_o easy_o believe_v that_o man_n of_o understanding_n as_o he_o stick_v not_o to_o acknowledge_v jesuit_n to_o be_v shall_v by_o vow_n deprive_v themselves_o of_o the_o riches_n and_o pleasure_n of_o this_o world_n with_o design_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n and_o emperor_n great_a especial_o see_v that_o without_o breach_n of_o a_o oath_n peculiar_a to_o their_o order_n they_o can_v neither_o seek_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o accept_v of_o any_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n as_o other_o churchman_n and_o religious_a may_n unless_o by_o way_n of_o obedience_n when_o express_o thereto_o command_v by_o the_o pope_n under_o pain_n of_o sin_n he_o skip_v from_o the_o jesuit_n to_o the_o friar_n a_o certain_a friar_n at_o madrid_n 12._o john_n de_fw-fr puente_n by_o name_n in_o the_o year_n 1612._o print_v a_o book_n in_o the_o frontispiece_n whereof_o he_o paint_v the_o sun_n and_o the_o moon_n so_o as_o they_o clear_o signify_v the_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n here_z the_o scene_z change_n it_o be_v just_a now_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o emperor_n there_o be_v also_o divers_a other_o emblematical_a fancy_n add_v by_o which_o be_v intimate_v that_o his_o catholic_a majesty_n shall_v be_v content_a to_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n so_o he_o may_v rule_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o last_o for_o fear_v the_o scutcheon_n and_o devise_n shall_v not_o sufficient_o discover_v the_o design_n the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n lay_v all_o open_a it_o be_v call_v la_fw-fr convenientia_fw-la de_fw-fr las_o do_v monar_n quias_n catolicas_n in_o english_a the_o agreement_n of_o the_o two_o catholic_a monarchy_n viz._n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o spain_n to_o all_o which_o the_o bishop_n add_v his_o own_o particular_a reflection_n that_o the_o book_n have_v all_o manner_n of_o licence_n that_o a_o book_n can_v have_v for_o answer_v to_o it_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o such_o a_o book_n be_v both_o license_v and_o print_v but_o doubtless_o who_o ever_o peruse_v the_o content_n of_o it_o impartial_o will_v judge_v it_o be_v both_o license_v and_o print_v rather_o for_o its_o witty_a conceit_n and_o divertisement_n for_o the_o king_n and_o his_o courtier_n then_o for_o a_o solid_a foundation_n whereon_o to_o build_v any_o serious_a and_o dogmatical_a assertion_n and_o as_o this_o spanish_a friar_n stand_v for_o his_o own_o king_n so_o campanella_n another_o friar_n be_v object_v to_o have_v stand_v as_o much_o for_o the_o late_a dolphin_n now_o king_n of_o france_n publish_v about_o the_o time_n of_o his_o birth_n a_o certain_a eclogue_n concern_v he_o wherein_o the_o say_a dolphin_n be_v promise_v the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o other_o prince_n represent_v as_o now_o more_o afraid_a of_o france_n then_o ever_o before_o what_o such_o man_n speak_v partly_o out_o of_o flattery_n to_o prince_n a_o epidemical_a infirmity_n incident_a to_o man_n of_o all_o condition_n and_o partly_o as_o delight_v with_o their_o own_o conceit_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o religion_n nor_o can_v we_o be_v think_v responsible_a for_o any_o such_o personal_a action_n or_o assertion_n of_o private_a man_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v universal_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n what_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n or_o france_n be_v or_o will_v be_v in_o reference_n to_o other_o christian_a king_n and_o prince_n concern_v not_o we_o either_o to_o know_v or_o examine_v 9_o but_o leave_v these_o digression_n the_o relatour_n do_v here_o acknowledge_v it_o high_a time_n to_o return_v to_o his_o adversary_n and_o think_v of_o answer_v a._n c._n s_o argument_n which_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o 13._o law_n book_n of_o the_o bible_n there_o must_v be_v a_o live_a magistrate_n and_o judge_n so_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o he_o may_v be_v able_a right_o to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o preserve_v unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v in_o brief_a that_o for_o determine_a controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o preserve_a unity_n and_o certainty_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o have_v one_o bishop_n over_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n more_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o determine_v civil_a difference_n and_o preserve_v civil_a peace_n and_o unity_n among_o christian_n to_o have_v one_o emperor_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o confirm_v this_o the_o authority_n of_o occam_n be_v cite_v say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v one_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n under_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v sufficient_a there_o be_v many_o bishop_n govern_v divers_a province_n as_o there_o be_v many_o king_n govern_v divers_a kingdom_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o beside_o that_o these_o dialogue_n which_o the_o bishop_n here_o allege_v be_v in_o the_o index_n of_o forbid_a book_n occam_n himself_o be_v no_o such_o unquestionable_a author_n among_o catholic_n that_o we_o shall_v think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o defend_v what_o ever_o he_o say_v especial_o in_o a_o question_n that_o concern_v the_o pope_n authority_n it_o be_v too_o well_o know_v how_o factious_o he_o side_v with_o a_o enemy_n of_o the_o church_n second_o have_v christ_n institute_v such_o a_o government_n of_o his_o church_n as_o occam_n fancy_n viz._n a_o government_n consist_v of_o many_o not_o subordinate_a to_o any_o one_o as_o head_n and_o supreme_a over_o they_o it_o will_v have_v be_v requisite_a that_o all_o those_o independent_a and_o coordinate_a governor_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v be_v infallible_a otherwise_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n will_v have_v be_v little_o less_o than_o a_o mere_a anarchy_n without_o unity_n or_o certainty_n in_o any_o thing_n which_o must_v have_v destroy_v the_o very_a end_n of_o government_n and_o expose_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o yet_o be_v and_o must_v be_v one_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o as_o many_o schism_n and_o variety_n of_o faith_n as_o there_o be_v several_a province_n in_o 〈◊〉_d experience_n show_v we_o this_o truth_n in_o all_o country_n where_o no_o infallibility_n be_v acknowledge_v again_o occam_n speak_v only_a de_fw-fr possibili_fw-la of_o what_o our_o saviour_n may_v have_v do_v have_v he_o please_v his_o doctrine_n can_v evince_v any_o thing_n in_o disproof_n of_o what_o we_o maintain_v to_o have_v be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la establish_v in_o god_n church_n that_o be_v one_o universal_a pastor_n appoint_v by_o christ_n over_o the_o whole_a flock_n 10._o remain_v it_o therefore_o a_o settle_a catholic_a principle_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n according_a to_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o florence_n in_o which_o both_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n concur_v and_o that_o to_o teach_v the_o contrary_n be_v undoubted_a heresy_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o definimus_fw-la sanctam_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la sedem_fw-la &_o romanum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la in_o universum_fw-la orbem_fw-la tenere_fw-la primatum_fw-la etc._n etc._n we_o define_v say_v the_o council_n that_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a sea_n and_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v primacy_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o the_o say_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v successor_n of_o the_o bless_a peter_n prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o he_o be_v also_o the_o true_a vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o to_o he_o in_o the_o person_n of_o bless_a peter_n full_a
council_n till_o her_o forbearance_n therein_o may_v be_v interpret_v a_o neglect_n or_o refusal_n to_o do_v it_o five_o he_o score_v we_o out_o no_o way_n how_o we_o shall_v go_v to_o work_v to_o obtain_v the_o necessary_a concurrence_n of_o all_o christian_a prince_n to_o the_o actual_a assemble_v of_o this_o new_a model_v council_n it_o will_v be_v too_o long_o to_o point_v out_o all_o the_o inextricable_a difficulty_n that_o attend_v this_o uncanonical_a way_n of_o proceed_v in_o religion_n recommend_v by_o the_o bishop_n a_o doctrine_n so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o remedy_n against_o the_o pretend_a intolerable_a fail_n of_o a_o former_a general_n council_n upon_o supposition_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n neglect_n or_o refusal_n to_o call_v a_o council_n and_o examine_v they_o that_o it_o be_v high_o instrumental_a to_o division_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n give_v as_o good_a title_n if_o not_o better_o to_o any_o new_a body_n of_o sectary_n to_o reform_v protestantism_n when_o they_o get_v power_n into_o their_o hand_n as_o it_o do_v to_o protestant_n to_o reform_v for_o themselves_o against_o the_o whole_a church_n 4._o however_o the_o bishop_n still_o go_v on_o harp_v upon_o the_o same_o string_n and_o in_o lieu_n of_o give_v we_o solid_a argument_n to_o evince_v the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o will_v persuade_v viz._n that_o his_o opinion_n touch_v a_o general_a council_n possibility_n of_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v most_o preservative_n of_o peace_n establish_v or_o able_a to_o reduce_v perfect_a unity_n into_o the_o church_n he_o fall_v 33._o into_o a_o tedious_a discourse_n which_o he_o say_v he_o will_v adventure_v into_o the_o world_n but_o only_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o consideration_n which_o yet_o he_o divide_v into_o many_o enter_v upon_o the_o first_o with_o two_o very_a erroneous_a supposition_n which_o he_o lay_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o a_o totter_a superstructure_n the_o one_o that_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v no_o further_o monarchical_a then_o as_o christ_n be_v the_o head_n the_o other_o that_o all_o the_o power_n a_o ecumenical_a 1._o council_n have_v to_o determine_v and_o all_o the_o assistance_n it_o have_v not_o to_o err_v in_o its_o determination_n it_o have_v it_o all_o from_o the_o universal_a body_n of_o the_o church_n because_o the_o representative_a of_o a_o commonwealth_n have_v no_o more_o power_n than_o what_o it_o receive_v from_o the_o body_n it_o represent_v the_o first_o of_o these_o viz._n that_o the_o church_n be_v not_o govern_v by_o one_o in_o chief_a under_o christ_n be_v a_o supposition_n 18._o more_o than_o once_o confute_v to_o the_o second_o which_o we_o have_v already_o impugn_a above_o we_o further_a answer_n that_o the_o power_n and_o assistance_n which_o general_a council_n have_v to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n so_o as_o not_o to_o err_v in_o the_o determination_n can_v possible_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o by_o the_o church_n but_o must_v chief_o proceed_v from_o the_o same_o fountain_n now_o it_o do_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n viz._n from_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o spiritual_a power_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o of_o humane_a but_o divine_a institution_n nor_o proceed_v so_o much_o from_o the_o natural_a wisdom_n knowledge_n virtue_n and_o ability_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n assemble_v in_o council_n as_o from_o the_o cooperation_n deliver_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n with_o they_o whereas_o in_o a_o civil_a commonwealth_n which_o be_v of_o humane_a institution_n its_o representative_a can_v pretend_v to_o any_o other_o power_n than_o what_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o say_a commonwealth_n second_o the_o bishop_n consider_v that_o though_o the_o act_n that_o be_v hammer_v 2._o out_o by_o many_o together_o must_v needs_o be_v perfect_a then_o that_o which_o be_v but_o the_o child_n of_o one_o man_n sufficiency_n yet_o this_o can_v be_v infallible_a unless_o it_o be_v from_o some_o special_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o we_o no_o way_n contradict_v but_o add_v that_o this_o special_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v so_o far_o ever_o afford_v to_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n as_o to_o render_v all_o it_o be_v complete_v definition_n of_o faith_n infallible_a 5._o three_o he_o consider_v that_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v 1._o without_o error_n that_o say_v he_o be_v no_o question_n and_o as_o little_a that_o a_o council_n have_v it_o but_o the_o doubt_n that_o trouble_v be_v whether_o all_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v afford_v in_o such_o a_o high_a manner_n as_o to_o cause_v all_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o council_n in_o matter_n fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n and_o in_o remote_a deduction_n from_o it_o to_o be_v alike_o infallible_a by_o this_o expression_n alike_o infallible_a the_o bishop_n seem_v to_o grant_v that_o all_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n even_o in_o deduction_n as_o well_o as_o fundamental_o be_v infallible_a and_o only_o to_o doubt_v whether_o they_o be_v alike_o infallible_a i_o see_v no_o necessity_n of_o graduate_a infallibility_n in_o the_o present_a question_n since_o any_o real_a infallibility_n be_v as_o much_o as_o catholic_a author_n assert_v in_o all_o decision_n of_o faith_n be_v they_o fundamental_a or_o remote_a deduction_n in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n see_v that_o as_o to_o our_o obligation_n of_o believe_v they_o they_o be_v alike_o fundamental_a as_o we_o have_v prove_v in_o the_o second_o chapter_n here_o the_o bishop_n intend_v to_o examine_v the_o text_n which_o he_o say_v stapleton_n rest_v upon_o for_o proof_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n afford_v to_o general_a ibidem_fw-la council_n viz._n john_n 16._o 13._o i_o will_v send_v you_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o will_v lead_v you_o into_o all_o truth_n and_o john_n 14._o 16._o this_o spirit_n shall_v abide_v with_o you_o for_o ever_o and_o matth._n 28._o 20._o behold_v i_o be_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n likewise_o these_o which_o he_o say_v be_v add_v by_o other_o viz._n the_o sound_n the_o church_n upon_o the_o rock_n against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v matth._n 16._o 18._o and_o luke_n 22._o 32._o christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n that_o his_o faith_n fail_v not_o and_o christ_n promise_n mat._n 18_o 20._o that_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n he_o will_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o and_o that_o in_o the_o act_n chap._n 15._o 28._o it_o seem_v good_a to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o we_o a_o man_n will_v imagine_v these_o text_n sufficient_o clear_a in_o themselves_o to_o evince_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o catholic_n assertion_n touch_v general_a council_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v partly_o of_o another_o mind_n affirm_v that_o no_o one_o of_o they_o do_v infer_v much_o less_o enforce_v infallibility_n he_o be_v loath_a to_o say_v all_o of_o they_o together_o do_v not_o but_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o he_o quarrel_v they_o in_o particular_a to_o the_o first_o which_o speak_v of_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n and_o that_o for_o 2._o ever_o he_o answer_v all_o be_v not_o always_o universal_o take_v in_o scripture_n nor_o be_v it_o here_o simple_o for_o all_o truth_n but_o for_o all_o truth_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n i_o reply_v neither_o do_v we_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v here_o universal_o take_v or_o do_v signify_v simple_o all_o truth_n for_o then_o it_o will_v comprehend_v all_o natural_a truth_n and_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o we_o deny_v no_o less_o than_o the_o bishop_n but_o that_o it_o signify_v all_o truth_n necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n to_o know_v for_o the_o instruction_n and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o express_v or_o but_o enfold_v in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n as_o to_o his_o limit_v the_o word_n to_o truth_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o say_v this_o be_v but_o gratis_o dictum_fw-la and_o a_o mere_a groundless_a restriction_n depend_v whole_o on_o the_o bishop_n voluntary_a assertion_n as_o we_o have_v already_o 14._o show_v it_o be_v also_o clear_o refute_v by_o the_o context_n vers_n 12._o where_o our_o saviour_n have_v tell_v his_o disciple_n he_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o they_o which_o they_o can_v not_o then_o bear_v add_v immediate_o as_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o supplement_n to_o their_o present_a weakness_n the_o forecited_a word_n that_o when_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v guide_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n that_o be_v into_o all_o those_o truth_n which_o christ_n have_v to_o say_v to_o they_o and_o which_o they_o be_v not_o as_o yet_o in_o a_o capacity_n to_o bear_v but_o can_v any_o man_n imagine_v christ_n have_v not_o already_o
instruct_v his_o apostle_n touch_v all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n especial_o consider_v what_o himself_o profess_v in_o his_o prayer_n for_o they_o to_o the_o father_n john_n 17._o 8_o 14._o i_o have_v give_v unto_o they_o the_o word_n which_o thou_o give_v i_o and_o they_o have_v receive_v they_o &c_n &c_n can_v those_o word_n in_o any_o protestant_n opinion_n signify_v less_o than_o all_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n his_o lordship_n here_o stumble_v in_o the_o plain_a way_n endeavour_v to_o impose_v this_o absurd_a disjunctive_a upon_o his_o reader_n viz._n that_o all_o truth_n must_v either_o signify_v simple_o all_o whatsoever_o matter_n of_o fact_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n or_o be_v restrain_v to_o truth_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o be_v without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v in_o any_o circumstance_n be_v save_v the_o apparent_a falsity_n whereof_o a_o man_n half_n blind_a may_v perceive_v it_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o say_v that_o either_o all_o man_n be_v wise_a and_o learned_a or_o none_o but_o socrates_n and_o plato_n to_o as_o little_a purpose_n be_v his_o other_o limitation_n viz._n that_o a_o council_n be_v then_o only_o infallible_a when_o it_o suffer_v itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o bless_a spirit_n by_o ibidem_fw-la the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o this_o again_o it_o seem_v that_o in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o absolute_o infallible_a but_o may_v possible_o refuse_v to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o word_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o fall_v into_o fundamental_a error_n in_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o constant_a to_o himself_o profess_v the_o contrary_a when_o it_o make_v for_o his_o turn_n but_o if_o it_o may_v so_o err_v what_o a_o sad_a condition_n may_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v in_o since_o what_o a_o general_a council_n teach_v be_v as_o obligatory_a to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o what_o the_o parliament_n enact_v be_v obligatory_a to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n his_o last_o shift_n to_o evade_v the_o force_n of_o those_o word_n lead_v into_o all_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o promise_n of_o assistance_n be_v neither_o so_o absolute_a nor_o ibidem_fw-la in_o such_o manner_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o the_o apostle_n nor_o direct_o to_o a_o council_n at_o all_o who_o contend_v it_o be_v who_o make_v it_o a_o question_n whether_o the_o promise_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v not_o more_o absolute_o and_o direct_o intend_v to_o the_o apostle_n then_o to_o the_o church_n or_o not_o more_o absolute_o and_o direct_o to_o the_o chureh_n then_o to_o general_n council_n it_o suffice_v we_o if_o it_o be_v in_o any_o sort_n true_o and_o real_o intend_v to_o they_o all_o and_o that_o so_o it_o be_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o the_o promise_n evince_v since_o otherwise_o neither_o the_o say_v succeed_a pastor_n northe_a church_n of_o their_o time_n can_v infallible_o decide_v any_o arise_v controversy_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o scriptural_a text_n which_o be_v not_o only_o ambiguous_a but_o liable_a to_o damnable_a interpretation_n as_o the_o scripture_n itself_o averr_v 2_o pet._n 3._o 16._o much_o less_o determine_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n not_o express_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o many_o be_v not_o but_o note_n that_o to_o the_o close_a word_n of_o this_o first_o text_n and_o that_o for_o ever_o the_o bishop_n say_v not_o any_o thing_n the_o truth_n be_v their_o clearness_n be_v not_o easy_o elude_v to_o the_o second_o proof_n which_o be_v from_o matth._n 28._o 20._o behold_v i_o be_o 3._o with_o you_o 〈◊〉_d unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o bishop_n answer_v the_o father_n be_v various_a in_o their_o exposition_n and_o application_n of_o this_o text._n we_o grant_v they_o be_v various_a in_o word_n but_o agree_v in_o sense_n and_o that_o the_o same_o in_o effect_n we_o here_o plead_v for_o the_o father_n by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n understand_v a_o presence_n of_o aid_n and_o assistance_n to_o support_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n against_o the_o difficulty_n they_o shall_v find_v for_o preach_v christ._n but_o be_v heresy_n and_o the_o perverse_a maintainer_n of_o they_o no_o part_n of_o the_o difficulty_n christ_n minister_n meet_v with_o in_o preach_v his_o gospel_n sure_o they_o be_v and_o if_o this_o be_v the_o native_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o say_v minister_n or_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v such_o a_o presence_n of_o christ_n promise_v they_o in_o this_o place_n as_o effectual_o enable_v they_o to_o withstand_v and_o overcome_v those_o difficulty_n which_o in_o reason_n can_v be_v more_o convenient_o effect_v then_o by_o a_o general_n council_n so_o assist_v declare_v against_o they_o but_o say_v our_o adversary_n few_o of_o the_o father_n mention_n christ_n presence_n ibidem_fw-la in_o teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n what_o matter_n that_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o this_o be_v but_o one_o special_a kind_n of_o presence_n and_o the_o father_n usual_o in_o their_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n unless_o some_o particular_a occasion_n carry_v they_o to_o the_o contrary_a content_v themselves_o to_o express_v the_o general_a importance_n of_o the_o sacred_a text_n without_o descend_v to_o particular_n and_o yet_o some_o of_o they_o as_o even_o the_o bishop_n himself_o observe_v do_v express_o interpret_v this_o place_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o teach_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o they_o do_v not_o extend_v it_o say_v he_o to_o infallible_a assistance_n further_o than_o the_o succeed_v church_n keep_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o apostle_n keep_v to_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n no_o more_o do_v we_o we_o confess_v the_o succeed_v church_n can_v not_o be_v infallible_a shall_v it_o depart_v from_o or_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n no_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o can_v have_v be_v infallible_a have_v they_o depart_v from_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n but_o as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n consist_v in_o their_o constant_a adhere_n to_o and_o follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o that_o holy_a spirit_n in_o all_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n so_o be_v there_o and_o the_o father_n teach_v such_o a_o presence_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o succeed_v church_n as_o cause_v she_o in_o all_o definition_n of_o faith_n constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o as_o need_n require_v infallible_o to_o expound_v it_o all_o which_o we_o have_v sufficient_o 14._o prove_v and_o can_v it_o otherwise_o happen_v christ_n will_v not_o be_v always_o find_v so_o present_a with_o his_o church_n as_o to_o keep_v she_o from_o incur_v ruin_n by_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o this_o his_o promise_n must_v at_o least_o imply_v last_o whereas_o maldonat_n prove_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o presence_n by_o infallible_a teach_v be_v right_o gather_v from_o this_o text_n though_o not_o express_o signify_v by_o it_o the_o bishop_n by_o his_o mistranslation_n make_v he_o ibidem_fw-la deny_v it_o to_o be_v the_o intention_n of_o christ_n which_o learned_a author_n do_v not_o only_o assert_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o exposition_n matth._n but_o bring_v in_o proof_n of_o it_o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n cyril_n st._n leo_n and_o salvianus_n to_o the_o three_o matth._n 16._o 18._o touch_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v the_o bishop_n say_v first_o he_o dare_v not_o lay_v any_o other_o 4._o foundation_n than_o christ._n we_o answer_v all_o the_o apostle_n be_v style_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n witness_n st._n paul_n who_o be_v one_o of_o they_o eph._n 2._o 20._o christ_n indeed_o be_v and_o be_v the_o principal_a foundation_n the_o chief_a corner_n stone_n in_o the_o church_n building_n as_o the_o apostle_n there_o speak_v yet_o ministerial_o and_o by_o authority_n derive_v from_o christ_n not_o only_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o chief_a of_o they_o st._n peter_n may_v be_v and_o be_v in_o a_o true_a sense_n foundation_n of_o the_o church_n second_o the_o bishop_n say_v and_o he_o do_v but_o say_v it_o that_o st._n peter_n ibidem_fw-la be_v only_o the_o first_o in_o order_n whereas_o the_o father_n teach_v and_o we_o have_v sufficient_o 17._o prove_v that_o he_o be_v not_o only_o the_o first_o in_o order_n but_o in_o authority_n three_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o by_o the_o rock_n be_v not_o mean_v st._n peter_n person_n ibidem_fw-la only_o but_o the_o faith_n which_o he_o profess_v and_o for_o this_o say_v he_o the_o father_n come_v in_o with_o a_o very_a full_a consent_n i_o answer_v we_o pretend_v not_o to_o understand_v by_o the_o rock_n
st._n peter_n person_n only_o but_o his_o faith_n conjoin_v with_o his_o person_n or_o his_o person_n confess_v and_o assert_v the_o faith_n and_o that_o the_o father_n speak_v in_o this_o sense_n and_o no_o other_o when_o they_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n faith_n 10._o bellarmin_n prove_v by_o a_o whole_a jury_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a among_o they_o and_o most_o of_o they_o the_o same_o the_o bishop_n here_o pretend_v to_o bring_v for_o himself_o beside_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n consist_v of_o above_o six_o hundred_o 3._o catholic_a bishop_n as_o to_o what_o he_o assert_n that_o by_o hell-gates-prevailing_a against_o the_o church_n be_v not_o understand_v principal_o the_o church_n not_o err_v but_o her_o not_o ibidem_fw-la fall_v away_o from_o the_o foundation_n we_o have_v already_o 14._o full_o prove_v the_o contrary_a both_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n and_o solid_a reason_n show_v that_o if_o any_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v be_v admit_v by_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n may_v in_o such_o case_n be_v absolute_o say_v to_o have_v prevail_v against_o she_o contrary_a to_o this_o promise_n of_o christ._n and_o how_o bellarmin_n here_o cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v when_o he_o say_v there_o be_v many_o thing_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v already_o 2._o show_v where_o we_o also_o prove_v that_o every_o error_n in_o faith_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a but_o the_o relatour_n as_o if_o his_o own_o word_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n tell_v we_o final_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o this_o stable_a edification_n ibidem_fw-la be_v make_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n not_o to_o a_o council_n why_o not_o to_o both_o i_o pray_v to_o a_o general_n council_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o truth_n be_v it_o be_v make_v neither_o to_o church_n nor_o council_n direct_o and_o immediate_o but_o to_o st._n peter_n and_o his_o successor_n as_o the_o father_n above_o mention_a show_n though_o for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n viz._n her_o preservation_n from_o error_n in_o faith_n which_o moral_o can_v not_o be_v effect_v if_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v and_o confirm_v by_o st._n peter_n successor_n be_v not_o infallible_a or_o exempt_v from_o error_n in_o its_o decision_n of_o faith_n to_o what_o the_o bishop_n conclude_v with_o upon_o this_o text_n that_o a_o council_n have_v no_o interest_n in_o this_o promise_a edification_n further_o than_o it_o build_v upon_o christ_n that_o be_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n christ_n deliver_v the_o rule_n he_o give_v and_o the_o promise_v he_o make_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o but_o that_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n do_v ever_o reject_v or_o go_v contrary_a to_o these_o we_o absolute_o deny_v to_o the_o four_o place_n viz._n of_o christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n that_o his_o 5._o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v luke_n 22._o 32._o the_o relatour_n will_v have_v the_o native_a sense_n of_o it_o to_o be_v that_o christ_n pray_v and_o obtain_v for_o st._n peter_n perseverance_n in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n against_o the_o strong_a temptation_n which_o be_v to_o winnow_v he_o above_o the_o rest_n and_o you_o must_v take_v it_o if_o you_o please_v upon_o his_o bare_a word_n that_o by_o faith_n be_v here_o mean_v grace_n have_v the_o bishop_n weigh_v the_o pregnancy_n of_o 3._o beauties_n reason_n in_o confutation_n of_o this_o exposition_n he_o can_v not_o sure_o have_v be_v so_o positive_a in_o it_o it_o shall_v be_v a_o unnecessary_a prolixity_n to_o insert_v they_o here_o where_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o observe_v the_o contradiction_n involve_v in_o this_o pretend_a native_a sense_n of_o christ_n prayer_n christ_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n obtain_v for_o st._n peter_n that_o he_o shall_v persevere_v in_o grace_n but_o st._n peter_n do_v not_o still_o persevere_v in_o grace_n for_o he_o lose_v it_o when_o he_o commit_v that_o enormous_a sin_n of_o deny_v his_o master_n therefore_o christ_n obtain_v and_o do_v not_o obtain_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n of_o his_o eternal_a father_n which_o be_v a_o formal_a contradiction_n our_o saviour_n therefore_o pray_v according_a to_o his_o own_o expression_n in_o scripture_n that_o st._n peter_n may_v not_o lose_v faith_n by_o a_o internal_a act_n of_o disbelief_n though_o the_o devil_n shall_v so_o far_o prevail_v by_o his_o temptation_n as_o to_o make_v he_o say_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o knowledge_n i_o know_v not_o the_o man_n you_o have_v take_v prisoner_n but_o the_o bishop_n object_n thus_o against_o this_o text_n to_o conclude_v a_o infallibility_n ibidem_fw-la hence_o in_o the_o pope_n or_o in_o his_o chair_n or_o in_o the_o roman_a sea_n or_o in_o a_o general_n council_n though_o the_o pope_n be_v precedent_n i_o find_v no_o ancient_a father_n that_o dare_v adventure_v it_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v no_o wonder_n that_o they_o do_v not_o sinde_v who_o be_v unwilling_a to_o see_v bellarmin_n cite_v and_o that_o out_o of_o decretal_a authentic_a record_n whatever_o the_o bishop_n mutter_v against_o they_o as_o etc._n counterfeit_n without_o the_o least_o proof_n lucius_n felix_n st._n leo_n and_o petrus_n chrysologus_fw-la the_o last_o of_o which_o live_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n ago_o these_o i_o say_v bellarmin_n affirm_v to_o have_v adventure_v to_o prove_v from_o this_o text_n what_o the_o bishop_n deny_v and_o though_o the_o three_o first_o of_o these_o be_v bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o such_o be_v their_o sanctity_n and_o learning_n as_o may_v well_o vindicate_v they_o from_o the_o least_o jealousy_n of_o challenge_v either_o through_o ignorance_n or_o ambition_n more_o than_o of_o right_n belong_v to_o their_o office_n nay_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o confess_o orthodox_n in_o their_o day_n that_o even_o dr._n heylin_n a_o man_n bitter_a against_o catholic_n think_v it_o not_o fit_a in_o his_o geography_n to_o term_v the_o roman_a bishop_n pope_n till_o almost_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n leo_n the_o last_o of_o the_o three_o and_o as_o for_o chrysologus_fw-la his_o contemporary_a and_o no_o pope_n he_o adventure_v as_o it_o be_v to_o ground_v the_o infallibility_n we_o plead_v for_o upon_o this_o text_n 〈◊〉_d when_o he_o say_v st._n peter_n as_o yet_o life_n and_o preside_v in_o his_o sea_n and_o afford_v the_o true_a faith_n to_o those_o that_o seek_v it_o which_o speech_n the_o bishop_n will_v have_v to_o be_v but_o a_o flash_n of_o rhetoric_n a_o easy_a way_n of_o answer_v the_o most_o unanswerable_a authority_n have_v chrysologus_fw-la write_v or_o address_v his_o word_n to_o the_o pope_n there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o colour_n for_o the_o evasion_n but_o speak_v they_o to_o a_o heretic_n who_o he_o seek_v to_o reduce_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o can_v imagine_v he_o intend_v to_o compliment_v the_o pope_n nothing_o but_o a_o weak_a cause_n can_v drive_v so_o learned_a a_o person_n as_o the_o bishop_n to_o so_o poor_a a_o shift_n so_o the_o testimony_n of_o theophylact_fw-mi and_o st._n bernard_n be_v slight_v by_o ibidem_fw-la he_o as_o man_n of_o yesterday_o though_o they_o live_v the_o one_o above_o five_o hundred_o the_o other_o near_o six_o hundred_o year_n ago_o but_o whoever_o charge_v st._n bernard_n with_o corrupt_a doctrine_n either_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n may_v as_o just_o charge_n st._n austin_n and_o the_o father_n of_o his_o time_n in_o which_o time_n even_o by_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o 3._o calvin_n when_o he_o be_v sober_a the_o the_o church_n have_v make_v no_o departure_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o for_o 21._o theophylact_fw-mi he_o be_v a_o greek_a bishop_n and_o of_o the_o forward_a in_o side_v against_o the_o latin_a church_n and_o in_o tax_v she_o of_o error_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n it_o can_v be_v rational_o imagine_v but_o what_o he_o speak_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v extort_a from_o he_o by_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o know_a consent_n of_o all_o catholic_a christian_n in_o that_o particular_a as_o to_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n i_o answer_v it_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o personal_a capacity_n as_o a_o private_a doctor_n in_o which_o quality_n it_o be_v not_o deny_v but_o he_o may_v possible_o err_v even_o in_o faith_n hence_o may_v easy_o be_v perceive_v how_o unsatisfactory_o the_o bishop_n endeavour_v to_o elude_v the_o force_n of_o this_o text_n concern_v christ_n prayer_n for_o st._n peter_n which_o i_o have_v 17._o already_o prove_v to_o be_v extend_v to_o his_o successor_n
infallible_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o he_o do_v not_o find_v he_o say_v that_o any_o general_a council_n since_o do_v ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o say_v punctual_o and_o in_o express_a term_n of_o their_o definition_n visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la et_fw-la nobis_fw-la acknowledge_v even_o thereby_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o difference_n as_o he_o conceive_v in_o the_o certainty_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o after-generall_a council_n determine_v in_o the_o church_n and_o those_o which_o be_v settle_v by_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o sit_v in_o council_n i_o answer_v there_o be_v no_o essential_a difference_n between_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o thing_n determine_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o decide_v by_o a_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o roman_a bishop_n great_a difference_n there_o be_v indeed_o between_o the_o apostle_n and_o succeed_v bishop_n in_o respect_n of_o personal_a prerogative_n and_o grace_n but_o none_o at_o all_o between_o the_o certainty_n of_o what_o either_o the_o apostle_n by_o themselves_o or_o succeed_a bishop_n in_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n assemble_v define_v for_o truth_n see_v what_o be_v complete_o determine_v therein_o be_v no_o less_o determine_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n than_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o that_o first_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o if_o after-council_n use_v not_o the_o same_o expression_n punctual_o and_o in_o term_n it_o be_v not_o material_a since_o they_o do_v it_o in_o effect_n by_o universal_o enjoin_v the_o belief_n of_o their_o decision_n under_o pain_n of_o anathema_n and_o this_o the_o holy_a father_n well_o understand_v when_o they_o aver_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v trin._n a_o most_o holy_a and_o divine_a oracle_n 54._o a_o sentence_n inspire_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 62._o not_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 77._o not_o to_o be_v question_v without_o error_n 162._o that_o it_o be_v the_o last_o sentence_n that_o can_v be_v expect_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n what_o the_o relatour_n mean_v by_o allege_v valentia_n i_o understand_v not_o that_o author_n clear_o speak_v of_o council_n not_o yet_o ratify_v by_o the_o pope_n the_o bishop_n therefore_o have_v say_v nothing_o in_o disproof_n of_o ibidem_fw-la what_o stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n affirm_v viz._n that_o this_o passage_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o proper_a proof_n of_o the_o jnfallibility_n of_o general_n council_n which_o consider_v dr._n stapleton_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v just_o censurable_a for_o style_v the_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o his_o lp._n be_v rather_o unblamable_a for_o pretend_v such_o word_n to_o be_v little_a short_a of_o blasphemy_n be_v there_o any_o thing_n more_o common_a with_o the_o father_n then_o to_o give_v they_o such_o like_a attribute_n do_v not_o african_n st._n athanasius_n term_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n against_o arius_n the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o endure_v for_o ever_o do_v not_o st._n cyrill_v trinit_fw-la above_o cite_v call_v it_o likewise_o a_o divine_a and_o most_o holy_a oracle_n do_v not_o constantin_n the_o emperor_n style_v the_o same_o definition_n 3._o a_o celestial_a mandate_n do_v not_o st._n gregory_n with_o the_o applause_n of_o all_o true_a christian_n profess_v to_o reverence_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o he_o reverence_n 24._o the_o four_o ghospell_n do_v not_o 54._o st._n leo_n st._n gregory_n naziazen_n athanas._n pope_n nicolas_n imperat_fw-la the_o first_o with_o other_o speak_v to_o the_o same_o sense_n beauties_n argument_n deduce_v from_o this_o apostolical_a council_n as_o it_o be_v a_o precedent_n to_o all_o future_a council_n ecumenical_a hold_v good_a for_o their_o jnfallibility_n since_o otherwise_o they_o must_v have_v be_v ineffectual_a as_o to_o the_o principal_a purpose_n of_o call_v they_o viz._n so_o to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o debate_n ibidem_fw-la of_o that_o nature_n in_o the_o church_n which_o can_v never_o be_v effectual_o do_v where_o infallibility_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v as_o have_v be_v 14._o prove_v to_o what_o he_o object_n that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a jnfallibility_n in_o other_o council_n where_o no_o man_n sit_v that_o be_v inspire_v as_o be_v in_o this_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o all_o that_o sit_v as_o judge_n be_v inspire_v i_o answer_v it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o prelate_n concur_v with_o their_o head_n in_o any_o other_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v joint_o infallible_a in_o any_o kind_n of_o real_a infallibility_n whether_o like_v to_o the_o former_a or_o not_o so_o in_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n a_o general_n council_n or_o at_o least_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_n or_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n though_o he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o one_o in_o the_o church_n to_o have_v that_o prerogative_n of_o infallibility_n as_o touch_v ferus_fw-la he_o avouch_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o our_o doctrine_n of_o infallibility_n though_o his_o authority_n will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a force_n then_o if_o he_o be_v none_o of_o we_o his_o comment_n upon_o the_o act_n which_o the_o bishop_n here_o cite_v be_v list_v with_o most_o of_o his_o other_o work_n in_o 875._o the_o roll_n of_o prohibit_v book_n thus_o have_v i_o go_v through_o all_o the_o forecited_a passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o solve_v the_o bishop_n objection_n for_o render_v they_o incompetent_a proof_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n which_o yet_o i_o need_v not_o have_v do_v since_o what_o be_v clear_o prove_v by_o any_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v as_o undoubted_o true_a as_o what_o be_v prove_v by_o more_o but_o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o he_o easy_o grant_v a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o 〈◊〉_d suffer_v 8._o itself_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n in_o scripture_n wherein_o he_o seem_v but_o to_o trifle_v say_v no_o more_o in_o effect_n then_o that_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v not_o err_v this_o be_v a_o very_a small_a prerogative_n and_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o any_o kind_n of_o council_n nay_o of_o any_o particular_a person_n of_o how_o mean_a capacity_n soever_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n can_v ever_o be_v presumable_a to_o fall_v into_o the_o bishop_n hinted_a disorder_n of_o leave_v scripture_n or_o define_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o its_o true_a sense_n but_o to_o speak_v truth_n there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n of_o it_o as_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o veracity_n of_o divine_a promise_n to_o permit_v the_o whole_a church_n to_o err_v in_o any_o doctrinal_a point_n she_o find_v necessary_a to_o define_v by_o a_o general_n council_n for_o prevent_v of_o schism_n and_o settle_v of_o man_n mind_n in_o the_o truth_n to_o what_o he_o add_v as_o the_o result_n of_o his_o discourse_n upon_o these_o several_a text_n that_o suppose_v they_o promise_v assistance_n even_o to_o infallibility_n yet_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o whole_a church_n principal_o and_o of_o its_o representative_a but_o by_o consequent_a nor_o any_o further_a than_o the_o say_v representative_a consent_n and_o eleave_v to_o that_o upon_o which_o it_o be_v consequent_a viz._n the_o catholic_a body_n of_o the_o church_n this_o i_o say_v be_v but_o a_o weak_a cuasion_n for_o see_v the_o catholic_a or_o diffusive_a body_n of_o the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v and_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o her_o representative_a if_o the_o church_n diffusive_a have_v a_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o her_o believe_v the_o council_n or_o church_n representative_a must_v also_o necessary_o have_v infallible_a assistance_n in_o teach_v to_o which_o of_o these_o this_o assistance_n be_v promise_v principal_o be_v but_o a_o vain_a speculation_n since_o they_o both_o have_v it_o as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o they_o both_o here_o the_o bishop_n fall_v again_o to_o his_o consideration_n and_o will_v have_v 1._o we_o to_o observe_v four_a that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o like_a consent_n that_o general_n council_n can_v err_v as_o there_o be_v thatthe_v church_n in_o general_n can_v err_v from_o the_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n since_o in_o this_o all_o agree_v but_o not_o in_o the_o former_a i_o answer_v all_o that_o have_v not_o desert_v nor_o adhere_v to_o the_o desertor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v una_fw-la nimous_o agree_v that_o a_o lawfully-called_a and_o confirm_a general_n council_n can_v no_o more_o err_v in_o point_n of_o faith_n than_o the_o church_n in_o general_a and_o his_o lp._n be_v much_o out_o in_o quote_v waldensis_n for_o the_o
it_o be_v apparent_a he_o do_v it_o only_o in_o a_o less_o proper_a or_o analogical_a sense_n to_o signify_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o divine_a assistance_n and_o direction_n such_o a_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n in_o regard_n of_o precise_a verity_n be_v as_o infallible_o true_a and_o certain_a as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o prophecy_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o contrariety_n in_o this_o betweeen_n stapleton_n and_o bellarmin_n for_o both_o agree_v that_o neither_o church_n nor_o council_n do_v publish_v jmmediate_a revelation_n nor_o create_v any_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o declare_v and_o unfold_v by_o their_o definition_n that_o doctrine_n which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o some_o manner_n first_o deliver_v both_o of_o they_o likewise_o confess_v that_o whether_o the_o principle_n from_o which_o the_o church_n or_o general_a council_n deduce_v their_o definition_n have_v intrinsical_v and_o necessary_a connexion_n with_o the_o doctrine_n define_v or_o no_o yet_o the_o conclusion_n or_o definition_n itself_o be_v of_o infallible_a verity_n the_o holy_a ghost_n so_o direct_v the_o council_n that_o it_o never_o define_v any_o conclusion_n to_o be_v of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la matter_n reveasd_v by_o god_n either_o in_o those_o principle_n from_o which_o the_o council_n deduce_v it_o or_o at_o least_o in_o some_o other_o the_o relatour_n whole_a discourse_n therefore_o upon_o this_o subject_n of_o prophecy_n fall_v of_o itself_o to_o the_o ground_n as_o be_v build_v upon_o a_o pure_a i_o have_v almost_o say_v a_o wilful_a mistake_v viz_o that_o stapleton_n maintain_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v prophetical_a in_o a_o proper_a sense_n which_o he_o do_v not_o and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v whole_o needless_a for_o our_o adversary_n to_o talk_v so_o much_o of_o enthusiasm_n and_o tell_v we_o so_o punctual_o what_o prophecy_n be_v what_o vision_n and_o that_o neither_o of_o both_o be_v to_o be_v get_v with_o study_n and_o industry_n for_o we_o know_v all_o this_o and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o style_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n revelation_n or_o prophecy_n or_o vision_n or_o the_o like_a but_o willing_o acknowledge_v they_o be_v the_o result_v of_o much_o study_n and_o industry_n only_o we_o aerre_v the_o study_n and_o industry_n which_o the_o prelate_n in_o general_n council_n do_v use_v for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o truth_n be_v always_o crown_v by_o god_n with_o such_o success_n as_o infallible_o preserve_v they_o from_o error_n stapleton_n go_v on_o and_o give_v we_o the_o reason_n why_o a_o general_n 3._o council_n must_v necessary_o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o conclusion_n because_o that_o which_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n not_o of_o knowledge_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o church_n propose_v it_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d though_o it_o use_v mean_n yet_o it_o stand_v not_o upon_o art_n mean_n or_o argument_n but_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n else_o when_o we_o embrace_v the_o conclusion_n propose_v it_o will_v not_o be_v a_o assent_n of_o faith_n but_o a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n to_o this_o the_o bishop_n reply_v seem_v to_o broach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n namely_o that_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n to_o this_o the_o reply_v bishop_n seem_v to_o broach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n namely_o that_o the_o assent_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o habit_n of_o knowledge_n but_o sure_o divine_a faith_n be_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n hebr._n 11._o a_o argument_n of_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o wit_n by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o give_v this_o assent_n of_o faith_n otherwise_o our_o faith_n will_v not_o be_v free_a and_o meritorious_a it_o be_v true_a the_o same_o conclusion_n may_v be_v faith_n to_o one_o and_o knowledge_n to_o another_o according_a to_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n thomas_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n but_o this_o must_v be_v upon_o different_a motive_n and_o therefore_o fayth_n as_o faith_n can_v never_o be_v knowledge_n which_o be_v all_o that_o stapleton_n urge_v the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n then_o which_o we_o have_v for_o our_o faith_n do_v not_o by_o evident_a demonstration_n show_v the_o truth_n thereof_o though_o they_o make_v it_o evident_o credible_a in_o so_o much_o as_o he_o will_v be_v imprudent_a who_o shall_v refuse_v to_o give_v his_o assent_n so_o though_o the_o bishop_n do_v true_o assert_v that_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v able_a 5._o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o philosopher_n and_o other_o great_a man_n of_o reason_n when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o high_a yet_o this_o be_v also_o true_a that_o our_o saviour_n do_v never_o intend_v to_o set_v up_o a_o school_n of_o knowledge_n but_o of_o faith_n and_o that_o council_n in_o their_o definition_n rely_v not_o on_o any_o demonstrative_a reason_n but_o on_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n promise_v to_o they_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o faithful_a ground_n not_o themselves_o on_o any_o demonstration_n propose_v to_o they_o by_o the_o church_n but_o on_o god_n revelation_n obscure_o but_o certain_o and_o infallible_o apply_v to_o they_o by_o the_o church_n 2_o in_o the_o seven_o consideration_n the_o relatour_n take_v notice_n again_o of_o a_o query_n that_o a._n c._n make_v to_o he_o viz._n if_o a_o general_n council_n may_v err_v wherein_o be_v we_o near_o to_o unity_n by_o such_o a_o council_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o give_v a_o punctual_a and_o direct_a answer_n as_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v he_o fall_v a_o fresh_a upon_o certain_a new_a consideration_n which_o he_o advance_v upon_o this_o subject_n whether_o the_o protestant_a opinion_n that_o general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n or_o the_o catholic_a opinion_n that_o they_o can_v be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o church_n and_o more_o able_a to_o preserve_v and_o reduce_v christian_a peace_n which_o in_o effect_n be_v little_a else_o but_o to_o answer_v one_o query_n by_o many_o and_o have_v bring_v his_o reader_n almost_o to_o the_o port_n of_o his_o labyrinth_n by_o a_o gentle_a turn_n to_o lead_v he_o back_o again_o through_o all_o the_o meander_n thereof_o however_o we_o must_v observe_v his_o motion_n 3._o his_o first_o query_n or_o consideration_n be_v whether_o a_o absolute_a infallibility_n be_v promise_v to_o the_o present_a church_n or_o whether_o such_o a_o infallibility_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n as_o stapleton_n acknowledge_v i_o answer_v no_o doubt_n but_o it_o will_v let_n protestant_n acknowledge_v but_o such_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n as_o that_o worthy_a doctor_n maintain_v and_o we_o shall_v be_v agree_v for_o that_o matter_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v our_o 3._o adversary_n do_v here_o only_o confound_v his_o reader_n and_o wrong_v the_o author_n he_o allege_v by_o not_o declare_v sufficient_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o speak_v for_o stapleton_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v express_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v infallible_a not_o only_o in_o their_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n but_o also_o in_o the_o mean_n or_o argument_n and_o this_o he_o call_v absolute_a or_o exact_a infallibility_n whereas_o the_o present_a church_n be_v only_o infallible_a in_o the_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n and_o this_o also_o it_o have_v by_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n yet_o not_o by_o a_o new_a immediate_a revelation_n whence_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o author_n be_v clear_a for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n though_o he_o do_v not_o in_o all_o respect_n equal_v it_o to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v not_o he_o but_o the_o bishop_n himself_o that_o wriggle_v in_o the_o bussiness_n unworthy_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v his_o author_n to_o a_o sense_n no_o way_n intend_v by_o he_o 12._o bellarmin_n be_v use_v no_o better_o who_o doctrine_n be_v clear_a that_o in_o the_o decree_n or_o conclusion_n a_o general_n council_n be_v as_o certain_a as_o the_o scripture_n because_o both_o be_v infallible_a and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o certain_a than_o what_o be_v infallible_a though_o in_o other_o respect_v scripture_n have_v many_o preroagtive_n above_o general_n council_n as_o that_o it_o be_v god_n immediate_a revelation_n that_o there_o not_o only_o the_o conclusion_n but_o every_o thing_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n which_o agree_v not_o to_o a_o general_n council_n 4._o however_o to_o pass_v to_o this_o second_o consideration_n or_o query_n 3._o we_o shall_v not_o much_o quarrel_n his_o term_n of_o congruous_a infallibility_n but_o rest_v content_v if_o protestant_n will_v acknowledge_v such_o a_o infallibility_n in_o the_o present_a church_n as_o be_v congruous_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o to_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o as_o by_o virtue_n
be_v their_o consent_n ask_v whether_o a_o council_n shall_v be_v convene_v or_o not_o but_o the_o apostle_n conclude_v this_o among_o themselves_o as_o be_v a_o particular_a and_o special_a branch_n of_o that_o power_n they_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n neither_o at_o this_o day_n be_v their_o consent_n or_o concurrence_n any_o more_o require_v de_fw-la jure_fw-la to_o the_o convening_n of_o such_o assembly_n than_o it_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v act_n and_o determine_v all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o this_o affair_n sole_o among_o themselves_o without_o require_v the_o people_n consent_n general_n council_n than_o be_v a_o principal_a and_o necessary_a part_n of_o that_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n which_o christ_n institute_v for_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o not_o a_o human_a expedient_a only_a bring_v in_o or_o take_v up_o by_o the_o church_n herself_o mere_o upon_o prudentiall_a consideration_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o conceive_v and_o their_o power_n be_v whole_o from_o above_o as_o the_o church_n diffusive_a proper_o speak_v give_v it_o not_o so_o neither_o can_v she_o take_v it_o away_o or_o annul_v any_o thing_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o the_o pastor_n in_o such_o council_n assemble_v shall_v by_o full_a authority_n decree_n i_o say_v in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n because_o that_o be_v ex_fw-la natura_fw-la rei_fw-la unchangeable_a the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o general_n council_n be_v by_o christ_n institution_n appoint_v to_o teach_v admit_v not_o of_o yea_o and_o nay_o now_o the_o affirmative_a than_o the_o negative_a as_o the_o bishop_n 8._o by_o his_o correct_v and_o abrogate_a power_n leave_v to_o after-council_n will_v have_v we_o belccue_v but_o only_o yea_o it_o be_v always_o the_o same_o if_o once_o declare_v and_o settle_v by_o those_o who_o have_v the_o authority_n and_o assistance_n from_o god_n that_o be_v requisite_a thereto_o as_o council_n have_v even_o by_o the_o relatour_n own_o confession_n here_o it_o must_v stand_v and_o be_v profess_v without_o alteration_n or_o abrogation_n for_o ever_o his_o pretence_n therefore_o of_o the_o church_n represent_v herself_o again_o and_o by_o a_o new_a council_n take_v order_n for_o what_o be_v decree_v amiss_o signify_v nothing_o in_o this_o case_n save_v only_o that_o our_o adversary_n hold_v still_o to_o his_o first_o and_o false_a supposition_n that_o general_n council_n may_v err_v which_o be_v never_o yet_o grant_v he_o nor_o can_v we_o grant_v it_o without_o offer_v violence_n to_o the_o nature_n and_o property_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v invariable_a and_o to_o admit_v no_o change_n not_o without_o derogate_a both_o from_o the_o institution_n and_o honour_n of_o christ._n for_o a_o general_n council_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o even_o in_o the_o bishop_n own_o style_n and_o profession_n the_o supreme_a external_a live_v ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o faith_n if_o any_o error_n contrary_a to_o true_a faith_n can_v be_v incident_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o such_o a_o council_n what_o certainty_n or_o vnchangeableness_n can_v there_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n it_o sefle_v or_o how_o can_v it_o be_v think_v not_o to_o reflect_v upon_o christ_n honour_n to_o have_v institute_v in_o his_o church_n no_o other_o power_n to_o correct_v and_o repeal_v the_o error_n of_o such_o a_o council_n but_o what_o be_v liable_a to_o the_o same_o or_o the_o like_a error_n 〈◊〉_d the_o bishop_n himself_o in_o this_o paragraph_n attribute_n such_o power_n authority_n and_o high_a prerogative_n to_o general_n council_n that_o i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o can_v stand_v with_o the_o possibility_n of_o error_n 〈◊〉_d call_v in_o question_n any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n define_v by_o they_o first_o he_o tell_v we_o a_o council_n have_v power_n to_o order_n settle_v and_o define_v difference_n arisen_a concern_v faith_n then_o that_o a_o council_n lawful_o call_v and_o proceed_v orderly_o and_o conclude_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n the_o 〈◊〉_d the_o whole_a church_n can_v but_o approve_v the_o council_n that_o the_o decree_n of_o it_o shall_v bind_v all_o particular_n and_o itself_o last_o that_o because_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v meet_v no_o other_o way_n the_o council_n shall_v remain_v the_o supreme_a external_a live_v temporary_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n do_v he_o not_o now_o plain_o destroy_v these_o prerogative_n and_o contradict_v himself_o when_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o council_n he_o say_v present_o after_o only_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o she_o alone_a have_v power_n when_o scripture_n or_o demonstration_n be_v find_v and_o peaceable_o tender_v to_o she_o to_o represent_v herself_o again_o in_o a_o new_a council_n and_o in_o it_o to_o order_v what_o be_v amiss_o 5._o a_o while_n since_o he_o grant_v that_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v and_o observe_v till_o such_o evident_a scripture_n and_o demonstration_n be_v bring_v against_o they_o 1._o as_o be_v propose_v and_o understand_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n can_v choose_v but_o assent_n to_o it_o but_o here_o he_o suppose_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v make_v acquaint_v with_o evident_a scripture_n and_o demonstration_n against_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o former_a council_n and_o yet_o by_o his_o own_o doctrine_n but_o a_o few_o line_n above_o all_o particular_n be_v bind_v to_o stand_v to_o those_o definition_n till_o such_o time_n as_o a_o other_o council_n of_o equal_a authority_n call_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v order_v and_o amend_v what_o be_v decree_v amiss_o in_o the_o former_a again_o how_o can_v the_o whole_a church_n when_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n be_v find_v contrary_a to_o a_o former_a council_n represent_v herself_o in_o a_o new_a one_o to_o order_v by_o it_o what_o be_v former_o define_v amiss_o but_o she_o must_v clear_o understand_v that_o what_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o former_a council_n be_v false_a and_o erroneous_a upon_o this_o supposition_n 〈◊〉_d either_o the_o say_v former_a council_n false_a and_o erroneous_a definition_n be_v still_o bind_v or_o they_o be_v not_o if_o they_o be_v bind_v it_o will_v be_v sin_n to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a or_o at_o least_o outward_o to_o oppose_v the_o say_a definition_n now_o let_v any_o body_n 〈◊〉_d how_o its_o possible_a for_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o call_v a_o other_o council_n to_o reform_v those_o error_n of_o the_o first_o but_o it_o must_v outward_o show_v some_o dislike_n of_o they_o and_o thereby_o declare_v in_o effect_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o precedent_a council_n to_o be_v false_a and_o consequent_o oppose_v its_o decree_n even_o while_o they_o be_v suppose_v to_o bind_v if_o you_o answer_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o particular_n not_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n i_o reply_v it_o be_v impossible_a the_o whole_a church_n shall_v ever_o 〈◊〉_d agree_v to_o represent_v herself_o in_o a_o other_o council_n to_o reform_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o precedent_n but_o that_o very_o many_o nay_o almost_o all_o particular_n must_v 〈◊〉_d and_o also_o 〈◊〉_d those_o error_n before_o the_o whole_a church_n 〈◊〉_d and_o declare_v they_o if_o therefore_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o precedent_a council_n though_o 〈◊〉_d bind_v all_o particular_n till_o a_o 〈◊〉_d council_n lawful_o call_v reverse_v they_o and_o define_v the_o control_n truth_n as_o the_o bishop_n confess_v how_o can_v the_o 〈◊〉_d church_n which_o consist_v of_o particular_n and_o act_n nothing_o but_o by_o 〈◊〉_d call_v in_o question_n the_o doctrine_n of_o any_o precedent_a council_n but_o very_o many_o if_o not_o all_o particular_n must_v commit_v sin_n by_o some_o kind_n of_o 〈◊〉_d opposition_n or_o not_o conform_v themselves_o where_o they_o be_v as_o yet_o bind_v to_o yield_v obedience_n and_o how_o i_o 〈◊〉_d have_v the_o former_a council_n power_n to_o settle_v and_o define_v difference_n of_o say_v and_o to_o bind_v all_o particular_n if_o 〈◊〉_d and_o every_o particular_a person_n as_o the_o case_n now_o suppose_v may_v lawful_o think_v and_o profess_v that_o for_o ought_v kee_fw-mi know_v both_o scripture_n and_o demonstration_n may_v be_v bring_v against_o it_o and_o that_o in_o case_n they_o be_v the_o error_n of_o the_o precedent_a council_n ought_v to_o be_v reform_v by_o call_v a_o other_o again_o i_o ask_v to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v there_o be_v a_o other_o council_n call_v to_o reform_v the_o error_n of_o a_o former_a for_o either_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v evident_a scripture_n or_o demonstration_n against_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o former_a council_n or_o it_o have_v not_o if_o it_o have_v not_o the_o church_n herself_o commit_v sin_n in_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n by_o impute_v error_n to_o the_o precedent_a council_n
may_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v make_v two_o promise_n to_o his_o church_n the_o one_o to_o assist_v her_o sovereign_a head_n and_o pastor_n so_o as_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o define_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o the_o faithful_a but_o what_o be_v divine_a truth_n the_o other_o so_o to_o assist_v general_n council_n or_o the_o representative_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o err_v in_o the_o doctrine_n they_o determine_v now_o those_o that_o affirm_v the_o pope_n alone_o or_o without_o a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v infallible_a as_o well_o as_o general_n council_n hold_v these_o two_o promise_n to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o when_o the_o pope_n define_v in_o general_n council_n his_o infallibility_n proceed_v from_o the_o latter_a promise_n by_o virtue_n of_o which_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n will_v be_v infallible_a although_o the_o other_o promise_n have_v not_o be_v make_v as_o the_o council_n at_o jerusalem_n will_v have_v be_v infallible_a by_o virtue_n of_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o every_o representative_a of_o christ_n church_n though_o each_o apostle_n have_v not_o be_v endow_v with_o that_o prerogative_n the_o bishop_n wonder_n that_o they_o which_o affirm_v the_o pope_n can_v err_v do_v not_o affirm_v likewise_o that_o he_o can_v sin_v but_o why_o do_v he_o not_o wonder_v too_o that_o christ_n shall_v give_v infallibility_n in_o teach_v to_o st._n peter_n as_o the_o relatour_n can_v deny_v but_o he_o do_v and_o yet_o not_o preserve_v he_o from_o those_o defect_n for_o which_o st._n paul_n say_v 〈◊〉_d be_v true_o reprebensible_a can_v not_o his_o lordship_n observe_v that_o infallibility_n in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v a_o effectual_a mean_n to_o settle_v religion_n confirm_v the_o faithful_a suppress_v heresy_n prevent_v difference_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n see_v none_o will_v oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n if_o they_o hold_v he_o infallible_a whereas_o no_o such_o good_a will_v accrue_v to_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o sanctity_n though_o the_o pope_n be_v impeccable_a and_o hold_v so_o to_o be_v by_o all_o christian_n for_o see_v that_o prerogative_n in_o christ_n who_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v their_o judge_n and_o to_o have_v power_n to_o condemn_v they_o to_o everlasting_a flame_n can_v keep_v they_o in_o their_o duty_n much_o less_o will_v the_o pope_n impeccability_n do_v it_o though_o they_o do_v all_o general_o believe_v it_o last_o as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o so_o many_o respect_v profitable_a for_o the_o church_n more_o than_o his_o immunity_n from_o sin_n will_v be_v so_o the_o assertor_n of_o it_o do_v allege_v many_o probable_a and_o pregnant_a argument_n from_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n to_o prove_v it_o but_o for_o his_o impeccability_n none_o can_v be_v allege_v 8._o what_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o pope_n liberius_n his_o demand_v the_o judgement_n of_o st._n athanasius_n i_o can_v see_v unless_o the_o relatour_n have_v first_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n do_v this_o after_o he_o have_v pass_v a_o definition_n ex_fw-la 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o matter_n but_o in_o his_o allegation_n of_o s._n ambrose_n he_o mistake_v worst_a of_o all_o the_o bishop_n intent_n be_v to_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v fallible_a and_o ibidem_fw-la subject_a to_o error_n why_o because_o st._n ambrose_n lib._n 1._o epist_n 83._o 〈◊〉_d that_o many_o do_v ask_v his_o opinion_n touch_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n post_n 〈◊〉_d ecclesiae_fw-la definitionem_fw-la episcopi_fw-la quoque_fw-la romanae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la after_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n and_o also_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n whereas_o the_o context_n of_o st._n ambrose_n make_v it_o clear_a that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o any_o doctrinal_a or_o 〈◊〉_d definition_n touch_v that_o point_n which_o have_v be_v long_o before_o determine_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o only_o of_o such_o definition_n and_o rule_n for_o observe_v the_o precise_a time_n on_o which_o easter_n day_n fall_v as_o by_o the_o appointment_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n be_v yearly_a to_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n yearly_a to_o publish_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n that_o such_o astronomical_a not_o thcologicall_a definition_n be_v publish_v annual_o be_v manifest_a from_o baronius_n and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o that_o though_o by_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a all_o christian_a church_n of_o catholic_a communion_n do_v celebrate_v easter_n not_o upon_o the_o decima_fw-la quarta_fw-la mensis_fw-la primi_fw-la or_o day_n of_o the_o jewish_a pasche_n but_o upon_o the_o day_n follow_v yet_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o different_a account_n or_o computation_n of_o time_n through_o the_o various_a end_n and_o begin_n of_o month_n it_o fall_v out_o that_o all_o do_v not_o celebrate_v it_o upon_o the_o same_o sunday_n wherefore_o to_o remedy_v this_o inconvenience_n and_o reduce_v the_o observation_n of_o easter_n as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v to_o a_o general_a uniformity_n it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o by_o reason_n the_o egyptian_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v the_o most_o exact_a and_o experience_v of_o all_o other_o nation_n in_o the_o calculation_n of_o time_n the_o bishop_n of_o 〈◊〉_d in_o egypt_n shall_v take_v care_n that_o the_o fall_n of_o easter_n day_n may_v be_v exact_o calculate_v every_o year_n by_o such_o as_o be_v most_o skilful_a in_o that_o art_n and_o the_o calculation_n send_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n so_o seasonable_o as_o that_o he_o may_v have_v time_n enough_o to_o 〈◊〉_d notice_n of_o it_o to_o all_o other_o christian_a church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o easter_n may_v be_v observe_v on_o the_o same_o day_n throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n hence_o come_v the_o frequent_a mention_n of_o the_o cyc_o and_o 〈◊〉_d paschales_fw-la in_o antiquity_n and_o of_o these_o only_a st._n ambrose_n speak_v as_o be_v clear_a by_o the_o whole_a epistle_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o of_o any_o thing_n doctrinal_a or_o dogmatic_a touch_v the_o question_n of_o easter_n or_o anything_o else_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v if_o he_o please_v baronius_n tom._n 3._o ad_fw-la ann._n 325._o num_fw-la 110._o 111._o and_o petavius_fw-la de_fw-fr doctrine_n temp._n against_o scaliger_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 57_o pag._n 205._o also_o his_o note_n upon_o epiphanius_n in_o heres_fw-la quarto-decimam_a nor_o will_v those_o prophecy_n as_o the_o bishop_n call_v they_o out_o of_o 〈◊〉_d amount_v to_o any_o just_a proof_n of_o the_o pope_n fallibility_n in_o the_o sense_n where_o in_o catholic_n deny_v it_o unless_o he_o prove_v the_o pope_n teach_v they_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o whole_a church_n again_o he_o mistake_v by_o affirm_v that_o pope_n alexander_n the_o three_o with_o a_o council_n of_o three_o hundred_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n ibidem_fw-la hold_v at_o rome_n condemn_v peter_n lombard_n of_o heresy_n and_o that_o after_o he_o have_v lie_v under_o that_o sentence_n for_o the_o space_n of_o thirty_o six_o year_n innocent_a the_o three_o restore_v he_o and_o condemn_v his_o accuser_n the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o history_n be_v only_o this_o after_o peter_n lombard_n death_n there_o be_v observe_v in_o some_o of_o his_o write_n this_o proposition_n christus_fw-la secundum_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la homo_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o perfection_n of_o humane_a nature_n in_o christ_n be_v indeed_o condemn_v by_o pope_n alexander_n as_o the_o bishop_n tell_v you_o but_o be_v never_o approve_v by_o pope_n innocent_n that_o which_o innocent_a approve_v be_v only_o the_o say_v peter_n lombard_n doctrine_n concern_v the_o trinity_n against_o which_o the_o abbot_n 〈◊〉_d have_v write_v all_o which_o you_o may_v read_v in_o baronius_n and_o spondanus_n his_o continuation_n of_o he_o in_o the_o year_n 1164._o 1179_o and_o 1215._o whence_o it_o appear_v that_o neither_o part_n of_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d conclude_v any_o thing_n against_o us._n for_o neither_o do_v pope_n alexander_n err_v in_o comdemn_v the_o say_a proposition_n of_o lombard_n notwithstanding_o the_o relatour_n 〈◊〉_d and_o without_o any_o reason_n give_v reproach_n he_o with_o error_n nor_o yet_o pope_n innocent_a in_o justify_v his_o doctrine_n against_o the_o abbot_n joachim_n for_o the_o one_o condemnation_n and_o the_o other_o approbation_n be_v of_o several_a proposition_n alexander_n condemn_v a_o proposition_n touch_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o incarnation_n which_o be_v never_o repeal_v by_o pope_n innocent_a and_o jnnocent_a approve_v his_o doctrine_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n which_o be_v never_o condemn_v by_o
the_o sea_n apostolic_a touch_v the_o matter_n and_o by_o consequence_n do_v not_o in_o this_o case_n so_o full_o represent_v the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o this_o further_a confirmation_n be_v necessary_a in_o this_o therefore_o and_o in_o all_o other_o like_o case_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o pope_n do_v actual_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n to_o make_v they_o infallible_a or_o that_o it_o may_v be_v infallible_o certain_a to_o we_o that_o such_o or_o such_o a_o general_n council_n err_v not_o in_o any_o of_o its_o definition_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n so_o that_o exclusive_o to_o the_o pope_n consent_n or_o confirmation_n we_o can_v never_o be_v infallible_o certain_a which_o have_v happen_v till_o the_o pope_n join_v and_o add_v his_o confirmation_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n we_o may_v express_v the_o matter_n in_o some_o sort_n by_o the_o king_n consent_n to_o act_n of_o parliament_n le_fw-fr roy_fw-fr veut_fw-fr add_v to_o a_o bill_n present_v from_o both_o house_n make_v it_o a_o bind_a law_n to_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n which_o before_o it_o be_v not_o so_o the_o pope_n consent_n or_o confirmation_n add_v to_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n make_v they_o article_n of_o christian_a belief_n no_o long_o now_o to_o be_v question_v much_o less_o contradict_v by_o any_o but_o absolute_o to_o be_v believe_v with_o infallible_a faith_n now_o this_o presuppose_a we_o answer_v the_o relatours_n argument_n direct_o thus_o to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o if_o the_o council_n err_v etc._n etc._n we_o agree_v with_o he_o the_o pope_n ought_v not_o to_o confirm_v the_o decree_n add_v more_o over_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a he_o shall_v confirm_v it_o and_o to_o the_o second_o viz._n that_o if_o it_o err_v not_o than_o the_o definition_n be_v true_a before_o the_o pope_n confirm_v it_o we_o confess_v this_o also_o for_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n make_v not_o the_o definition_n to_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o but_o it_o make_v we_o infallible_o certain_a that_o it_o be_v true_a god_n revelation_n itself_o towitt_v of_o the_o thing_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n make_v they_o not_o to_o be_v true_a in_o themselves_o for_o so_o they_o be_v and_o be_v whether_o he_o have_v reveal_v they_o or_o no_o but_o it_o make_v they_o infallible_a truth_n to_o we_o or_o such_o truth_n as_o both_o may_v and_o must_v be_v infallible_o believe_v by_o christian_n so_o we_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n be_v true_a in_o itself_o before_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o sufficient_o and_o infallible_o declare_v that_o it_o can_v be_v believe_v with_o a_o act_n of_o true_a christian_a faith_n that_o prerogative_n belong_v to_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n only_o as_o they_o include_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o otherwise_o but_o whereas_o then_o the_o bishop_n infer_v that_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n add_v nothing_o but_o only_o his_o own_o consent_n to_o the_o council_n decree_n we_o utter_o deny_v the_o consequence_n especial_o understand_v it_o in_o the_o relatours_n sense_n viz._n for_o no_o more_o than_o the_o assent_n of_o some_o other_o single_a bishop_n or_o patriarch_n for_o we_o aver_v that_o it_o be_v the_o assent_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o complete_n and_o give_v full_a force_n to_o the_o act_n of_o such_o council_n and_o also_o that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d infallibility_n or_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o truth_n to_o all_o their_o decree_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o sure_o be_v more_o than_o nothing_o 3._o well_o but_o now_o the_o relatour_n advance_v again_o with_o his_o instance_n to_o wit_n of_o pretend_a error_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o general_n council_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n thence_o conclude_v against_o we_o that_o even_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n do_v not_o make_v the_o doctrine_n of_o such_o council_n infallible_a the_o error_n 〈◊〉_d object_n be_v against_o the_o ibidem_fw-la council_n of_o lateran_n confirm_v by_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o where_o it_o teach_v that_o christ_n be_v present_a by_o way_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o as_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v be_v never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n before_o this_o council_n nor_o can_v it_o say_v he_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o take_v proper_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o first_o what_o a_o strange_a manner_n of_o proceed_v be_v this_o to_o assert_v a_o point_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n without_o solue_v or_o so_o much_o as_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o pregnant_a proof_n our_o author_n bring_v both_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o what_o he_o so_o main_o affirm_v the_o relatour_n shall_v not_o have_v say_v but_o prove_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o error_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o not_o consistent_a with_o the_o ground_n of_o christian_a religion_n at_o least_o he_o shall_v have_v clear_v his_o own_o assertion_n and_o in_o some_o manner_n or_o other_o have_v explain_v how_o transubstantiation_n may_v be_v take_v improper_o as_o his_o word_n insinuate_v but_o sure_o this_o be_v a_o conception_n of_o the_o bishop_n so_o new_a and_o singular_a that_o it_o will_v hardly_o find_v any_o defendant_n of_o all_o the_o word_n which_o the_o church_n use_v to_o express_v her_o sense_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o true_a religion_n there_o be_v none_o methinks_v less_o apt_a to_o be_v pervert_v to_o a_o metaphorical_a or_o figurative_a sense_n than_o this_o of_o transubstantiation_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o this_o term_n or_o word_n transubstantiation_n be_v first_o public_o authorize_v in_o the_o say_a council_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whereby_o our_o saviour_n eternal_a and_o consubstantial_a deity_n be_v signify_v be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o in_o like_a manner_n express_v the_o mystery_n of_o his_o divine_a incarnation_n be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n but_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o signify_v by_o this_o term_n which_o be_v a_o real_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o wine_n into_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v clear_a enough_o that_o it_o be_v ever_o hold_v for_o a_o divine_a truth_n witness_v s._n dom._n cyprian_n or_o at_o least_o a_o author_n of_o those_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n say_v this_o common_a bread_n change_v into_o flesh_n and_o blood_n give_v life_n and_o again_o the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n be_v change_v not_o in_o its_o outward_a form_n or_o semblance_n but_o in_o its_o inward_a nature_n or_o substance_n for_o so_o the_o word_n nature_n must_v and_o do_v always_o signify_v when_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o accident_n or_o quality_n of_o any_o thing_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n witness_v st._n gregory_n nyssen_n 37._o with_o good_a reason_n do_v we_o believe_v say_v he_o that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v sanctify_v by_o god_n word_n viz._n the_o word_n of_o consecration_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o word-god_n and_o a_o little_a after_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n we_o see_v be_v transelemented_a into_o he_o what_o can_v here_o be_v fignify_v by_o transelementation_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n but_o what_o the_o church_n now_o style_v transubstantiation_n witness_v s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o these_o word_n 4._o he_o that_o change_a water_n into_o wine_n by_o his_o sole_a will_n at_o cana_n in_o galilee_n do_v he_o not_o deserve_v our_o belief_n that_o he_o have_v also_o change_v wine_n into_o bloued_a wherefore_o let_v we_o receive_v with_o all_o assurance_n of_o faith_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n see_v under_o the_o species_n or_o form_n of_o bread_n the_o body_n be_v give_v and_o under_o the_o species_n or_o form_n of_o wine_n his_o blood_n be_v give_v etc._n etc._n know_v and_o hold_v for_o certain_a that_o the_o bread_n which_o we_o see_v be_v not_o bread_n though_o it_o seem_v to_o the_o taste_n to_o be_v bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n likewise_o that_o the_o wine_n which_o we_o see_v though_o to_o the_o sense_n it_o seem_v to_o be_v wine_n be_v not_o wine_n for_o all_o that_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ._n be_v it_o possible_a for_o a_o catholic_n to_o express_v his_o own_o or_o the_o church_n belief_n of_o this_o mystery_n in_o more_o full_a plain_a and_o effectual_a term_n witness_v also_o s._n ambrose_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n right_o consecrate_v 〈◊〉_d say_v it_o be_v
and_o that_o we_o can_v be_v hear_v in_o our_o prayer_n and_o expect_v relief_n not_o from_o the_o jmage_n but_o from_o the_o prototype_n which_o as_o it_o be_v the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n declare_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o trent_n so_o it_o be_v all_o that_o in_o this_o question_n i_o have_v undertake_v to_o defend_v chap._n 23._o of_o the_o bishop_n confession_n that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o the_o consequence_n thereupon_o argument_n 1._o the_o bishop_n though_o not_o willing_o grant_v in_o express_a term_n that_o some_o catholic_n may_v be_v save_v and_o in_o effect_n that_o all_o 2._o a_o 〈◊〉_d argument_n that_o we_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n because_o protestant_n as_o well_o as_o we_o confess_v it_o safe_o explicate_v and_o defend_v 3._o catholic_n not_o just_o tax_v with_o want_n of_o charity_n for_o tell_v protestant_n they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o ro_n man_n church_n 4._o nothing_o to_o be_v conclude_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o bishop_n against_o a_o 〈◊〉_d maxim_n from_o the_o agreement_n of_o old_a betwixt_o catholic_n and_o donatist_n in_o point_n of_o baptism_n 5._o catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v not_o agree_v in_o any_o real_a participation_n of_o christ_n proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n 6._o what_o catholic_n author_n mean_v when_o they_o speak_v of_o spiritually-receiving_a christ_n and_o of_o a_o spiritual_a presence_n in_o the_o eucbarist_n 7._o no_o peril_n of_o schism_n heresy_n etc._n etc._n in_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n 8._o the_o relatour_n various_a wind_n upon_o this_o subject_n observe_v 9_o no_o parallel_n betwixt_o a_o c._n argument_n and_o that_o of_o petilian_n the_o donatist_n 10._o a_o c._n unjust_o tax_v with_o untruth_n by_o the_o bishop_n 11._o our_o adversary_n remainder_n of_o instance_n consider_v and_o satisfy_v 1._o in_o this_o paragraph_n the_o bishop_n bring_v in_o the_o lady_n ask_v he_o whether_o she_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o though_o by_o his_o answer_n he_o grant_v clear_o enough_o that_o there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n yet_o who_o those_o be_v among_o we_o who_o he_o think_v may_v be_v save_v be_v not_o so_o clear_a sometime_o he_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o those_o only_o may_v be_v save_v who_o though_o they_o err_v yet_o want_v sufficient_a ground_n either_o to_o doubt_v or_o ibidem_fw-la know_v their_o error_n as_o for_o instance_n when_o he_o write_v the_o ignorant_a that_o can_v discern_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n so_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n and_o conform_v themselves_o to_o a_o religious_a life_n may_v be_v save_v and_o afterward_o we_o have_v not_o so_o learned_a christ_n as_o to_o deny_v salvation_n to_o some_o ignorant_a silly_a soul_n who_o humble_a peaceable_a obedience_n make_v num_fw-la they_o safe_a among_o any_o part_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v the_o foundation_n christ._n likewise_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o many_o be_v save_v in_o corrupt_a time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o their_o leader_n unless_o they_o repent_v besore_n death_n num_fw-la be_v lose_v in_o other_o place_n he_o seem_v to_o intimate_v that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o the_o truth_n by_o which_o he_o mean_v the_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o but_o not_o acknowledge_v by_o they_o as_o where_o he_o say_v protestant_n indeed_o confess_v there_o be_v salvation_n possible_a to_o be_v attain_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o yet_o they_o say_v withal_o that_o the_o error_n of_o that_o church_n be_v so_o many_o ibidem_fw-la and_o some_o so_o great_a as_o weaken_v the_o foundation_n that_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o go_v that_o way_n to_o heaven_n especial_o to_o they_o that_o have_v have_v the_o truth_n manifest_v now_o sure_o if_o it_o be_v but_o very_o hard_o go_v that_o way_n to_o heaven_n it_o be_v 5._o not_o altogether_o impossible_a again_o i_o be_o willing_a say_v he_o to_o hope_v there_o be_v many_o among_o they_o which_o keep_v within_o that_o church_n mean_v the_o roman_a and_o yet_o wish_v the_o superstition_n abolish_v which_o they_o know_v and_o which_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v their_o error_n in_o what_o they_o know_v not_o and_o which_o hold_v the_o foundation_n sirme_v and_o live_v according_o and_o which_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o be_v it_o in_o their_o power_n and_o to_o such_o i_o dare_v not_o deny_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n for_o that_o which_o be_v christ_n in_o they_o though_o they_o hazard_v themselves_o extreme_o by_o keep_v so_o close_o to_o that_o which_o be_v superstition_n and_o in_o the_o case_n of_o image_n come_v too_o near_a idolatry_n item_n i_o do_v indeed_o for_o ibidem_fw-la my_o part_n acknowledge_v a_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o so_o as_o that_o which_o i_o grant_v to_o romanist_n be_v not_o as_o they_o be_v romanist_n but_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n that_o be_v as_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n christ_n himself_o not_o as_o they_o associate_v themselves_o witting_o and_o willing_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n be_v not_o this_o plain_o to_o confess_v that_o even_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o do_v willing_o and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o that_o church_n may_v possible_o be_v save_v though_o not_o indeed_o as_o they_o do_v this_o but_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n and_o believe_v in_o the_o foundation_n christ_n last_o when_o he_o ask_v as_o it_o be_v in_o anger_n will_v you_o have_v we_o as_o malicious_a or_o at_o least_o as_o rash_a as_o yourselves_o be_v to_o we_o and_o deny_v you_o so_o much_o as_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n even_o mistake_v charity_n if_o such_o it_o be_v be_v far_o better_a than_o none_o at_o all_o and_o if_o the_o mistake_v be_v we_o the_o none_o be_v you_o etc_n do_v he_o not_o clear_o pretend_v by_o this_o to_o be_v more_o charitable_a that_o be_v to_o grant_v more_o to_o we_o catholic_n in_o this_o particular_a of_o be_v save_v than_o we_o do_v to_o they_o see_v then_o that_o even_o we_o catholic_n grant_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o those_o who_o join_v with_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o their_o ignorance_n be_v invincible_a we_o can_v but_o suppose_v his_o pretend_a charity_n grant_v more_o to_o we_o namely_o that_o there_o be_v possibility_n of_o be_v save_v to_o those_o that_o join_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o their_o ignorance_n be_v not_o invincible_a and_o though_o all_o or_o the_o chief_a motive_n which_o protestant_n bring_v against_o we_o be_v never_o so_o sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o now_o if_o on_o the_o one_o side_n both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o such_o as_o hold_v all_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o church_n and_o continue_v in_o they_o till_o death_n notwithstanding_o their_o be_v thorough_o acquaint_v with_o all_o the_o contrary_a reason_n and_o doctrine_n of_o protestant_n may_v attain_v salvation_n and_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o catholic_n as_o well_o those_o that_o now_o be_v as_o the_o infinite_a multitude_n which_o have_v be_v since_o a_o thousand_o year_n last_o pass_v according_a to_o protestant_n own_o account_n and_o confession_n do_v deny_v possibility_n of_o be_v save_v to_o such_o as_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n except_o in_o case_n of_o invincible_a ignorance_n who_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o our_o church_n be_v clear_o the_o safe_a way_n of_o the_o two_o to_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o in_o prudence_n to_o be_v embrace_v rather_o than_o that_o of_o protestant_n 2._o but_o what_o shall_v we_o say_v to_o those_o protestant_n who_o grant_v no_o more_o to_o we_o than_o we_o do_v to_o they_o in_o order_n to_o salvation_n how_o shall_v those_o among_o our_o adversary_n be_v convince_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n who_o will_v allow_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n to_o be_v in_o a_o capacity_n to_o salvation_n but_o such_o as_o be_v in_o no_o capacity_n of_o know_v and_o understand_v their_o error_n i_o may_v bring_v many_o argument_n to_o convince_v they_o in_o this_o point_n but_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o shall_v confine_v myself_o to_o these_o only_a which_o follow_v that_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v the_o more_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n in_o which_o many_o be_v save_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n which_o be_v grant_v on_o both_o side_n than_o a_o other_o in_o which_o many_o be_v save_v only_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n or_o doctrine_n of_o one_o party_n but_o very_o few_o or_o none_o according_a
great_a and_o most_o considerable_a pair_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o reason_n can_v the_o apostle_n have_v to_o shy_a that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o forbid_a marriage_n and_o eat_v certain_a meat_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o shall_v shall_fw-mi from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d why_o may_v not_o the_o teacher_n of_o such_o doctrine_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o 3._o catholic_a church_n as_o well_o as_o the_o donatist_n and_o those_o that_o maintain_v other_o dangerous_a opinion_n which_o in_o the_o bishop_n judgement_n do_v shake_v but_o do_v not_o overthrow_v the_o foundation_n of_o true_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o if_o they_o may_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n notwithstanding_o their_o departure_n from_o the_o faith_n by_o hold_v of_o such_o doctrine_n what_o shall_v hinder_v but_o the_o arian_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n whatsoever_o if_o they_o 〈◊〉_d the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n may_v notwithstanding_o their_o error_n and_o how_o ever_o they_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n pretend_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o common_a voice_n we_o 〈◊〉_d bind_v to_o hear_v and_o with_o all_o submission_n to_o obey_v 〈◊〉_d see_v here_o good_a reader_n what_o a_o church_n the_o bishop_n assign_v the_o to_o hear_v and_o follow_v under_o pain_n of_o be_v in_o as_o bad_a or_o perhaps_o in_o 〈◊〉_d worse_a condition_n than_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n 4._o his_o lordship_n next_o task_n be_v to_o impugn_v the_o argument_n which_o a._n c._n bring_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n be_v 3._o the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n because_o both_o party_n viz._n catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v agree_v that_o salvation_n may_v be_v have_v in_o it_o but_o do_v not_o both_o of_o they_o agree_v that_o it_o may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n and_o religion_n the_o bishop_n bring_v 〈◊〉_d instance_n to_o show_v that_o this_o agreement_n of_o both_o party_n be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o think_v that_o we_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n his_o first_o instance_n be_v this_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v hold_v true_a and_o valid_a both_o by_o 〈◊〉_d donatist_n themselnes_n and_o the_o orthodox_n also_o but_o that_o of_o the_o orthodox_n be_v hold_v true_a and_o valid_a only_o by_o the_o orthodox_n and_o not_o by_o the_o donatist_n yet_o none_o of_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o orthodox_n be_v bind_v to_o embrace_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o donatist_n as_o the_o safe_a way_n of_o the_o two_o how_o then_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o a_o man_n ought_v to_o embrace_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n as_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o heaven_n because_o both_o party_n agree_v that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n but_o do_v not_o agree_v there_o be_v the_o like_a possibility_n among_o prorestant_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o first_o instance_n to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o no_o orthodox_n can_v embrace_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o donatist_n as_o the_o safe_a way_n but_o he_o must_v commit_v two_o sin_n the_o one_o of_o disobedience_n to_o the_o orthodox_n church_n which_o so_o bad_a communication_n with_o donatist_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n in_o divine_a rite_n such_o as_o the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n be_v the_o other_o against_o faith_n which_o oblige_v he_o to_o believe_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o orthodox_n to_o be_v as_o safe_a as_o the_o other_o now_o how_o can_v any_o man_n be_v fuyd_v to_o take_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n by_o embrace_v the_o baptism_n of_o the_o donatist_n for_o the_o agreement_n of_o both_o party_n touch_v its_o validity_n when_o the_o great_a and_o most_o considerable_a 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n that_o of_o the_o orthodox_n hold_v it_o can_v be_v do_v except_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n without_o damnable_a 〈◊〉_d which_o dobarr_v the_o soul_n from_o heaven_n 〈◊〉_d whereas_o the_o case_n put_v by_o we_o be_v quite_o different_a from_o this_o for_o we_o suppose_v protestant_n grant_v a_o man_n may_v line_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o none_o of_o his_o error_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d his_o salvation_n whatsoever_o motive_n he_o may_v know_v to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d but_o no_o 〈◊〉_d do_v ever_o grant_v that_o a_o man_n may_v with_o a_o snse_n conscience_n embrace_v the_o donatists_n baptism_n know_v the_o 〈◊〉_d reason_n and_o command_v of_o the_o orthodox_n church_n to_o the_o contrary_a or_o that_o a_o man_n who_o have_v so_o embrace_v the_o baptism_n of_o donatist_n may_v live_v and_o die_v with_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n except_o he_o acknowledge_v his_o fault_n and_o repent_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d you_o will_v say_v perhaps_o that_o as_o a_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o receive_v the_o donatists_n baptism_n think_v valid_a in_o the_o judgement_n of_o both_o party_n because_o the_o orthodox_n hold_v it_o 〈◊〉_d and_o forbid_v it_o under_o pair_n of_o sin_n so_o 〈◊〉_d may_v a_o protestant_n who_o be_v teach_v by_o scripture_n or_o otherwise_o and_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n contain_v many_o gross_a error_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n embrace_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o religion_n though_o both_o 〈◊〉_d great_a possibility_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o say_a church_n and_o religion_n j._n answer_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o as_o a_o few_o 〈◊〉_d or_o arian_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o embrace_v the_o orthodox_n faith_n of_o christian_n so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o its_o a_o false_a and_o 〈◊〉_d belief_n so_o neither_o be_v a_o protestant_n bind_v to_o embrace_v 〈◊〉_d religion_n so_o long_o as_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d error_n and_o superstition_n contrary_a to_o god_n word_n but_o i_o say_v withal_o that_o as_o a_o few_o mahometan_a and_o 〈◊〉_d be_v bind_v to_o alter_v their_o judgement_n concern_v the_o pretend_a erroncousness_n and_o falsity_n of_o the_o orthodox_n faith_n if_o sufficient_a motive_n be_v propound_v to_o he_o and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o both_o party_n the_o orthodox_n fayth_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n so_o likewise_o a_o protestant_n will_v be_v oblige_v to_o embrace_v our_o religion_n if_o sufficient_a motive_n to_o alter_v his_o present_a judgement_n concern_v our_o pretend_a error_n be_v offer_v to_o he_o and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o joint_a principle_n of_o both_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n that_o catholic_a religion_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n now_o that_o by_o the_o joint_a principle_n or_o doctrine_n both_o of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n our_o religion_n or_o faith_n be_v the_o safe_a way_n we_o have_v already_o prove_v in_o our_o first_o argument_n and_o that_o protestant_n may_v have_v sufficient_a motive_n to_o alter_v and_o depose_v their_o present_a judgement_n touch_v our_o pretend_a error_n whensoever_o they_o will_v attend_v to_o they_o be_v sufficient_o evidence_v from_o hence_o see_v a_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o person_n who_o have_v as_o good_a natural_a wit_n as_o themselves_o as_o tender_a conscience_n as_o themselves_o have_v read_v and_o ponder_v the_o controverted_a passage_n of_o scripture_n as_o much_o as_o themselves_o understand_v all_o contrary_a reason_n and_o objection_n as_o well_o as_o themselves_o yet_o belecue_v with_o absolute_a certainty_n as_o divine_a truth_n those_o very_a point_n which_o protestant_n conceive_v to_o be_v error_n 5._o though_o other_o instance_n which_o he_o bring_v seem_v rather_o to_o argue_v a_o weakeness_n in_o the_o relatour_n judgement_n then_o in_o the_o argument_n he_o impugn_v in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n say_v he_o all_o side_n agree_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o in_o the_o most_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o worthy_a receiver_n be_v by_o his_o faith_n make_v spiritual_o partaker_n of_o the_o true_a and_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n true_o and_o real_o your_o roman_a catholic_n add_v a_o manner_n of_o this_o his_o presence_n 3._o transubstantiation_n which_o many_o deny_v and_o the_o lutheran_n a_o manner_n of_o this_o presence_n consubstantiation_n which_o more_o deny_v if_o this_o argument_n be_v good_a then_o even_o for_o this_o consent_n it_o be_v safe_a communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o with_o the_o roman_a and_o lutheran_n because_o all_o agree_v in_o this_o truth_n not_o in_o any_o other_o opinion_n here_o be_v many_o word_n spend_v to_o small_a purpose_n for_o first_o can_v a_o man_n be_v say_v in_o any_o true_a sense_n to_o communicate_v rather_o with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o with_o the_o roman_a or_o lutheran_n only_o by_o believe_v that_o where_o in_o they_o all_o agree_v and_o yet_o the_o bishop_n argument_n suppose_v this_o but_o put_v case_n by_o
communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o understand_v such_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o english_a protestant_n real_a presence_n as_o carry_v with_o it_o a_o express_a denial_n both_o of_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v move_v to_o this_o belief_n by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o catholic_n lutheran_n and_o english_a protestant_n see_v only_o these_o last_o agree_v in_o this_o point_n that_o which_o the_o relatour_n add_v to_o this_o be_v no_o less_o absurd_a he_o cite_v 〈◊〉_d a_o catholic_a divine_a as_o teach_v that_o to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n be_v not_o simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o triumph_v thereupon_o against_o catholic_n as_o if_o he_o have_v overcome_v they_o with_o their_o own_o arm_n ask_a a._n c._n what_o he_o can_v say_v to_o this_o and_o seem_v to_o admire_v the_o force_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v this_o confession_n from_o a_o adversary_n but_o i_o answer_v what_o matter_n be_v it_o though_o suarez_n have_v real_o teach_v it_o not_o to_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n be_v that_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o say_v that_o he_o agree_v with_o protestant_n against_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v he_o needs_o think_v that_o transubstantiation_n be_v a_o error_n or_o not_o point_n of_o catholic_a faith_n because_o he_o hold_v it_o not_o simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n very_o true_a it_o be_v all_o catholic_n teach_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n which_o may_v neither_o be_v doubt_v of_o nor_o dispute_v yet_o no_o man_n think_v it_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o believe_v every_o point_n so_o define_v by_o a_o express_a act_n a_o protestant_n verse_v in_o scripture_n will_v think_v it_o a_o sin_n if_o he_o shall_v deny_v that_o moses_n his_o rod_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o serpent_n yet_o i_o conceive_v he_o will_v hardly_o say_v that_o it_o be_v simple_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o that_o he_o be_v bind_v absolute_o speak_v to_o believe_v it_o with_o a_o express_a act_n of_o faith_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v suarez_n speak_v to_o no_o such_o purpose_n as_o the_o bishop_n allege_v he_o he_o confess_v indeed_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o explicate_v the_o change_n or_o conversion_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n which_o schoolman_n use_v be_v no_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o that_o particular_a because_o it_o depend_v upon_o physical_a and_o metaphylicall_a principle_n but_o as_o for_o the_o conversion_n itself_o or_o transubstantiation_n it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o he_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o to_o deny_v be_v heresy_n his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o the_o section_n immediate_o precedent_a to_o that_o which_o the_o bishop_n quote_v ult._n secundò_fw-la infero_fw-la etc_n second_o say_v he_o i_o infer_v that_o if_o a_o man_n confess_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o also_o the_o absense_n of_o bread_n yet_o deny_v a_o true_a conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o sulstance_n of_o christ_n body_n he_o fall_v into_o heresy_n because_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v define_v and_o do_v teach_v not_o only_o the_o two_o first_o but_o also_o this_o last_o what_o say_v you_o to_o this_o protestant_n you_o that_o look_v upon_o this_o bishop_n as_o the_o pillar_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o truth_n and_o honesty_n think_v you_o that_o move_v he_o thus_o to_o misreport_v a_o author_n of_o that_o worth_n that_o even_o himself_o think_v not_o fit_a to_o mention_v he_o without_o 287._o some_o character_n of_o honour_n they_o that_o please_v to_o consult_v the_o author_n himself_o in_o the_o 2._o place_n allege_v will_v find_v that_o hoc_fw-la totum_fw-la do_v not_o signify_v to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o the_o bishop_n most_o false_o and_o partial_o render_v it_o but_o a_o far_o different_a thing_n as_o we_o have_v say_v above_o his_o quarrel_n with_o bellarmin_n be_v no_o less_o impertinent_a who_o he_o censure_v forsooth_o of_o tediousness_n and_o for_o make_v as_o he_o conceive_v a_o intricate_a and_o almost_o inexplicable_a discourse_n about_o a_o adductive_a conversion_n a_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n neither_o divinity_n nor_o philosophy_n ever_o hear_v of_o till_o then_o but_o let_v the_o loci_fw-la indifferent_a reader_n be_v judge_n bellarmin_n explicate_v his_o adductive_a conversion_n thus_o as_o meat_n be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n body_n by_o mean_n of_o nutrition_n and_o become_v a_o live_n and_o animate_v part_n of_o man_n not_o because_o the_o soul_n which_o inform_v it_o be_v de_fw-fr novo_fw-la produce_v in_o the_o matter_n due_o prepare_v but_o because_o the_o same_o soul_n which_o be_v in_o the_o body_n before_o begin_v now_o to_o be_v in_o the_o new_a matter_n so_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o adductive_a conversion_n the_o bread_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o as_o if_o christ_n body_n be_v proper_o speak_v produce_v under_o the_o element_n for_o it_o be_v preexistent_a before_o and_o nothing_o that_o be_v preexistent_a can_v in_o proper_a sense_n be_v say_v to_o be_v produce_v but_o because_o it_o be_v not_o there_o before_o and_o begin_v now_o to_o be_v under_o the_o elementary_a form_n by_o virtue_n of_o consecration_n let_v any_o man_n judge_v whether_o this_o explication_n be_v not_o far_o more_o intelligible_a than_o what_o the_o bishop_n himself_o say_v touch_v the_o point_n of_o real_a presence_n first_o of_o all_o he_o affirm_v with_o bishop_n ridley_n and_o other_o protestant_n 3._o cite_v by_o he_o that_o the_o true_a real_a natural_a and_o substantial_a body_n of_o christ_n that_o very_a body_n which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n which_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n which_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o shall_v come_v from_o thence_o to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o dead_a be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n and_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o deny_v both_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n that_o be_v in_o effect_n he_o will_v have_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v real_o and_o substantial_o in_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o neither_o with_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n nor_o without_o it_o he_o will_v have_v christ_n body_n to_o be_v real_o in_o heaven_n and_o real_o also_o in_o very_a substance_n on_o earth_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o yet_o stiff_o deny_v with_o all_o caluinist_n that_o the_o same_o body_n can_v by_o any_o power_n be_v real_o present_a in_o several_a place_n at_o once_o be_v not_o this_o to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o christ_n body_n real_o be_v only_o in_o heaven_n and_o no_o where_o else_o and_o yet_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n on_o earth_n but_o who_o be_v able_a to_o understand_v and_o reconcile_v these_o speech_n his_o say_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v receive_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n by_o grace_n and_o the_o like_a be_v a_o plain_a contradiction_n to_o what_o he_o have_v teach_v before_o see_v by_o these_o word_n be_v only_o signify_v a_o metaphorical_a presence_n which_o in_o no_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v call_v real_a in_o my_o opinion_n zuinglius_fw-la peter_n martyr_n and_o those_o of_o the_o sacramentary_a party_n deal_v faric_a more_o candid_o in_o this_o point_n who_o flat_o deny_v and_o reject_v all_o real_a presence_n both_o name_n and_o thing_n than_o the_o bishop_n and_o some_o other_o protestant_n allege_v by_o he_o who_o confess_v the_o name_n but_o deny_v the_o thing_n 6._o the_o catholic_a author_n which_o the_o relatour_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o bring_v in_o favour_n of_o his_o protestant_a belief_n touch_v this_o matter_n be_v gross_o either_o misunderstand_v or_o misexpound_v 3._o by_o he_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a when_o they_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a communion_n they_o mean_v for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o which_o be_v by_o desire_n and_o devotion_n only_o when_o for_o want_v of_o opportunity_n or_o some_o 〈◊〉_d reason_n we_o do_v not_o actual_o receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n but_o yet_o do_v use_v most_o of_o those_o affection_n and_o devoute_a aspiration_n of_o heart_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o b._n saviour_n which_o we_o be_v wont_n to_o practice_v when_o we_o do_v real_o communicate_v sometime_o indeed_o they_o discourse_v of_o christ_n miraculous_a and_o ineffable_a be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n where_o he_o be_v present_v not_o like_o a_o bodily_a substance_n but_o rather_o like_o a_o spirit_n that_o be_v whole_a in_o the_o whole_a consecrate_a host_n and_o whole_a in_o every_o part_n of_o it_o but_o sure_o
i_o be_o they_o never_o say_v or_o think_v he_o be_v there_o by_o such_o a_o spiritual_a presence_n as_o protestant_n means_n that_o be_v exclusive_a of_o his_o truly-reall_a presence_n and_o by_o faith_n only_o or_o that_o he_o be_v not_o there_o as_o true_o and_o real_o as_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n whether_o we_o exercise_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n or_o no._n now_o when_o the_o bishop_n insist_o so_o much_o upon_o a_o spiritual_a participation_n of_o the_o true_a and_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n true_o and_o real_o by_o faith_n either_o he_o mean_v such_o a_o participation_n as_o be_v proper_a to_o this_o sacrament_n and_o can_v be_v have_v save_o only_o in_o the_o oral_a and_o actual_a receive_n of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n or_o he_o mean_v such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o devoute_a person_n may_v have_v in_o their_o soul_n whether_o they_o receive_v those_o element_n corporal_o or_o no._n if_o he_o mean_v this_o second_o only_a than_o both_o party_n can_v be_v say_v to_o agree_v in_o the_o proper_a point_n of_o sacramental_a participation_n see_v it_o be_v now_o suppose_v to_o be_v such_o but_o only_o a_o spiritual_a kind_n of_o receive_v christ_n common_a to_o other_o devoute_a office_n of_o christian_a piety_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o sacrament_n if_o he_o mean_v the_o first_o viz._n such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n body_n as_o be_v proper_a only_a to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o can_v be_v have_v but_o when_o the_o sacrament_n be_v oral_o and_o actual_o receive_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o we_o agree_v with_o protestant_n in_o it_o they_o must_v first_o show_v what_o it_o be_v and_o particular_o that_o it_o be_v something_o real_o different_a and_o distinct_a from_o a_o devoute_a elevation_n of_o heart_n remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n trust_n and_o application_n of_o his_o merit_n etc_n otherwise_o they_o relapse_n into_o the_o former_a difficulty_n viz_o of_o put_v such_o a_o participation_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v not_o proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n for_o certain_o none_o of_o all_o those_o participation_n of_o christ_n last_o mention_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o may_v be_v exercise_v at_o other_o time_n and_o by_o other_o mean_n as_o namely_o when_o one_o eat_v his_o common_a food_n at_o the_o table_n when_o he_o drink_v wine_n or_o beer_n when_o he_o look_v upon_o a_o crucifix_n when_o he_o pray_v meditate_v or_o the_o like_a but_o this_o neither_o the_o bishop_n not_o any_o of_o his_o party_n can_v show_v stand_v to_o calvin_n and_o their_o own_o principle_n that_o be_v they_o can_v show_v what_o their_o spiritual_a participation_n or_o receive_v of_o christ_n signify_v in_o effect_n more_o than_o a_o devoute_a elevation_n of_o heart_n remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n trust_n and_o application_n of_o his_o merit_n or_o something_o of_o like_a nature_n do_v and_o perform_v oftentimes_o as_o real_o without_o the_o sacrament_n as_o with_o it_o and_o consequent_o it_o can_v never_o be_v say_v that_o both_o party_n viz._n roman-catholiques_a and_o protestant_n be_v of_o the_o same_o sentiment_n or_o do_v agree_v in_o any_o real_a reception_n or_o participation_n of_o christ_n proper_a to_o the_o sacrament_n for_o all_o the_o world_n know_v the_o 〈◊〉_d participation_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o catholic_n believe_v signify_v a_o quite_o different_a thing_n from_o this_o 7._o let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o his_o lordship_n have_v to_o say_v to_o a._n c._n for_o his_o resolute_a affirm_v there_o be_v no_o peril_n of_o any_o damnable_a heresy_n schismo_n or_o other_o sin_n in_o resolve_v to_o line_n and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o the_o relatour_n can_v digest_v therefore_o he_o reply_v 5._o not_o so_o neither_o for_o he_o that_o line_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o such_o a_o resolution_n be_v presume_v to_o beleene_n as_o that_o church_n beleene_n and_o he_o that_o do_v so_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n be_v guilty_a more_o or_o less_o not_o only_o of_o the_o schism_n which_o that_o church_n cause_v at_o first_o by_o her_o corruption_n and_o now_o continue_v by_o her_o power_n but_o of_o her_o damnable_a opinion_n too_o in_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o of_o all_o other_o sin_n also_o which_o the_o doctrine_n and_o misbelief_n of_o that_o church_n lead_v he_o into_o he_o seem_v by_o this_o plain_o to_o retract_v what_o he_o former_o grant_v touch_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o roman_a catholic_n for_o how_o can_v they_o possible_o be_v save_v that_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o guilt_n of_o damnable_a opinion_n and_o sin_n or_o what_o sort_n of_o catholic_n be_v they_o who_o the_o relatour_n think_v may_v possible_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n be_v they_o such_o only_a as_o do_v not_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n viz._n the_o roman_a believe_v but_o only_o live_v in_o outward_a communion_n with_o she_o and_o make_v only_o outward_a show_n and_o feign_a profession_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o in_o heart_n they_o disbeleeve_v he_o give_v indeed_o some_o cause_n to_o think_v that_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o willing_a he_o be_v to_o hope_v there_o be_v many_o among_o we_o which_o wish_v the_o superstition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n abolish_v and_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o if_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n etc._z and_o of_o such_o particular_o profess_v ibidem_fw-la that_o he_o dare_v not_o deny_v they_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n but_o how_o can_v it_o possible_o sink_v into_o a_o sober_a man_n head_n to_o judge_v he_o capable_a of_o salvation_n that_o for_o temporal_a and_o sinister_a end_n only_o contrary_a to_o knowledge_n and_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n comply_v outward_o with_o superstition_n and_o many_o other_o sinful_a and_o jdolatrous_a practice_n all_o his_o life_n long_o and_o deny_v it_o to_o he_o who_o hate_v all_o superstition_n and_o sin_n in_o his_o very_a soul_n and_o will_v not_o comply_v with_o any_o if_o he_o know_v it_o but_o adhere_v to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n mere_o for_o conscience_n sake_n and_o for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o he_o simple_o and_o sincere_o believe_v all_o her_o doctrine_n to_o be_v true_a and_o consonant_a to_o god_n word_n and_o all_o her_o allow_a custom_n and_o observance_n to_o be_v pious_a and_o holy_a what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v he_o be_v a_o honest_a man_n that_o take_v his_o neighbour_n good_n witting_o and_o willing_o from_o he_o know_v they_o to_o be_v his_o and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o knave_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v hang_v that_o take_v they_o unwitting_o and_o very_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v his_o own_o second_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o live_v 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o not_o to_o comunicate_v with_o it_o in_o schism_n or_o in_o any_o false_a ibidem_fw-la worship_n and_o a_o other_o thing_n to_o live_v in_o a_o schismatical_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o it_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o corruption_n which_o that_o church_n teach_v we_o grant_v it_o be_v ourselves_o in_o some_o sort_n a_o instance_n of_o this_o truth_n who_o the_o catholic_a church_n permut_v both_o in_o england_n germany_n and_o other_o country_n to_o live_v among_o those_o she_o esteem_v both_o sehismatiques_n and_o heretic_n too_o though_o we_o think_v this_o be_v not_o properly_z speaking_z to_o live_v in_o a_o schismatical_a church_n yet_o she_o do_v not_o permit_v we_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o their_o shisme_n but_o when_o he_o proceed_v thereupon_o to_o charge_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o be_v worse_o and_o more_o cruel_a than_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n even_o under_o achab_n and_o jezabel_n be_v when_o so_o many_o worship_v the_o calf_n in_o dan_n and_o bethel_n because_o forsooth_o he_o do_v not_o find_v that_o this_o doctrine_n you_o mu_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o high_a place_n or_o this_o you_o mu_o not_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o one_o altar_n in_o jerusalem_n be_v either_o teach_v by_o the_o priest_n or_o maintain_v by_o the_o prophet_n or_o enjoin_v by_o the_o sanedrim_n whereas_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o have_v solemn_o decree_v her_o error_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o man_n under_o the_o great_a penalty_n yea_o and_o err_a have_v decree_v withal_o that_o she_o can_v err_v we_o answer_v this_o be_v not_o to_o argue_v as_o a_o logician_n shall_v ex_fw-la concessis_fw-la or_o probatis_fw-la but_o rather_o upon_o false_a and_o unproved_a supposition_n to_o bring_v in_o lieu_n of_o argument_n rail_v accusation_n against_o our_o superior_n which_o the_o apostle_n judas_n 8._o 9_o utter_o condemn_v be_v it_o sufficient_a for_o the_o relatour_n to_o say_v that_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n
forbearance_n of_o the_o cup_n be_v improbable_a opinion_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o express_a command_n of_o our_o saviour_n 8._o again_o what_o i_o pray_v do_v our_o adversary_n mean_v by_o his_o church_n of_o israel_n under_o achab_n and_o jezabel_n when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v worse_a and_o more_o cruel_a than_o she_o do_v he_o mean_v the_o true_a church_n there_o that_o be_v the_o number_n of_o those_o faithful_a israelite_n 18._o which_o as_o the_o scripture_n testify_v of_o they_o never_o bove_v their_o knee_n to_o baal_n if_o so_o his_o lordship_n sure_o commit_v a_o huge_a solecism_n when_o pretend_v to_o aggravate_v the_o crime_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o say_v she_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o cruel_a than_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n under_o achab_n and_o jezabel_n as_o if_o that_o church_n at_o that_o time_n have_v deserve_v the_o character_n of_o bad_a or_o cruel_a if_o he_o mean_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o israelite_n who_o be_v fall_v from_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o worship_v jeroboam_n calf_n we_o wonder_v upon_o what_o ground_n he_o style_v they_o the_o church_n of_o jsrael_n see_v manifest_a idolater_n be_v no_o way_n to_o be_v account_v part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n but_o in_o what_o respect_n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n worse_a than_o that_o of_o israel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o jezabel_n because_o say_v he_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v solemn_o decree_v her_o error_n and_o impose_v they_o upon_o man_n under_o the_o great_a penalty_n viz._n of_o excommuncation_n etc_n whereas_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n do_v neither_o solemnly_z teach_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o high_a place_n nor_o punish_v man_n for_o go_v to_o sacrifice_n at_o the_o one_o altar_n in_o jerusalem_n admit_v this_o be_v true_a though_o it_o be_v more_o than_o the_o bishop_n can_v prove_v see_v elias_n complain_v in_o those_o time_n that_o god_n altar_n be_v throw_v down_o and_o the_o prophet_n persecute_v and_o slay_v with_o the_o sword_n which_o argue_v there_o be_v no_o such_o liberty_n as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v admit_v i_o say_v it_o be_v true_a yet_o if_o there_o be_v any_o force_n in_o this_o argument_n it_o conclude_v more_o against_o himself_o then_o against_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o bishop_n grant_v that_o a_o general_n council_n lawful_o call_v and_o orderly_a proceed_n may_v define_v error_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o that_o in_o matter_n even_o fundamental_a and_o of_o main_a importance_n to_o salvation_n yet_o he_o 15._o teach_v withal_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o a_o council_n must_v stand_v in_o force_n and_o bind_v all_o particular_a man_n at_o least_o to_o external_a obedience_n till_o the_o whole_a church_n by_o a_o other_o general_n council_n reverse_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o former_a be_v not_o this_o likewise_o to_o be_v worse_o than_o the_o church_n of_o jsrael_n be_v not_o this_o to_o oblige_v people_n to_o make_v profession_n of_o false_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o evident_a reason_n or_o demonstration_n yea_o be_v it_o not_o to_o be_v in_o this_o respect_n far_o worse_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o require_v indeed_o that_o all_o person_n do_v submit_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o general_n council_n but_o do_v not_o require_v this_o as_o grant_v council_n to_o be_v fallible_a or_o subject_a to_o define_v error_n in_o stead_n of_o truth_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o assure_o persuade_v herself_o that_o they_o be_v by_o the_o special_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n infallible_a and_o can_v define_v any_o thing_n in_o such_o case_n but_o what_o be_v truth_n last_o if_o inference_n be_v to_o be_v make_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n it_o will_v serve_v rather_o to_o justify_v then_o to_o condemn_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o roman_a when_o power_n reside_v in_o the_o true_a prophet_n of_o god_n and_o in_o his_o true_a and_o lawful_a priest_n idolatry_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v severe_o punish_v but_o in_o corrupt_a time_n every_o one_o have_v liberty_n to_o do_v what_o ill_o he_o list_v the_o roman_a church_n therefore_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o her_o zeal_n and_o imitate_v the_o synagogue_n in_o the_o time_n of_o its_o great_a 〈◊〉_d to_o wit_n by_o exact_v strict_a obedience_n to_o her_o doctrine_n lawful_o declare_v and_o establish_v by_o general_n council_n which_o she_o also_o believe_v and_o be_v as_o well_o assure_v to_o be_v according_a to_o divine_a revelation_n and_o not_o repugnant_a to_o god_n honour_n as_o the_o synagogue_n be_v of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o roman_a church_n i_o say_v be_v rather_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o this_o even_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n then_o to_o be_v tax_v with_o cruelty_n for_o not_o symbolise_v with_o the_o corrupt_a and_o apostatise_v synagogue_n in_o give_v promiscuous_a liberty_n to_o all_o to_o believe_v and_o practice_v what_o they_o list_v in_o point_n of_o religion_n as_o for_o what_o he_o avouch_v concern_v transubstantiation_n purgatory_n and_o forbearance_n of_o the_o cup_n that_o they_o be_v improbable_a opinion_n and_o contrary_a to_o god_n word_n we_o answer_v it_o be_v according_a to_o his_o custom_n to_o speak_v without_o prose_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o trouble_v at_o it_o it_o be_v that_o which_o every_o heretic_n may_v say_v if_o he_o please_v a_o arian_n as_o well_o as_o a_o english_a protestant_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v improbable_a be_v contrary_a to_o god_n word_n where_o it_o contradict_v their_o particular_a heresy_n nay_o be_v it_o not_o a_o thing_n they_o may_v as_o just_o say_v of_o the_o english_a church_n as_o of_o the_o roman_a viz._n that_o she_o be_v in_o this_o regard_n worse_o and_o more_o cruel_a than_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n that_o she_o have_v solemn_o decree_v improbable_a opinion_n to_o wit_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o keep_v of_o disobedience_n how_o false_a soever_o her_o doctrine_n be_v she_o bind_v it_o up_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n yea_o and_o kindle_v the_o faggot_n too_o sometime_o when_o nothing_o else_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n witness_v the_o book_n of_o canon_n which_o inflict_v eccommunication_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la upon_o any_o that_o deny_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o proceed_n against_o several_a person_n who_o have_v be_v burn_v hang_v draw_v and_o quarter_v in_o this_o nation_n mere_o for_o religion_n since_o protestantisme_n bear_v sway_v here_o to_o false_a premise_n the_o bishop_n join_v a_o conclusion_n as_o enigmatical_a and_o ambiguous_a this_o then_o say_v he_o may_v be_v enough_o for_o we_o to_o leave_v rome_n though_o the_o old_a prophet_n 3._o king_n 13._o 11._o leave_v not_o israel_n by_o leave_v rome_n 〈◊〉_d understand_v sure_o their_o refuse_v any_o long_a to_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o to_o communicate_v with_o she_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o account_v superstition_n and_o error_n but_o do_v not_o both_o that_o old_a prophet_n and_o also_o all_o the_o true_a prophet_n and_o people_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n 〈◊〉_d corrupt_a israel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o aobaband_n and_o jezabel_n do_v they_o join_v think_v you_o with_o the_o idolatrous_a tribe_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n at_o dan_n and_o bethel_n 9_o the_o like_a be_v to_o be_v say_v of_o the_o comparison_n he_o make_v between_o a._n c._n and_o petilian_n the_o donatist_n it_o signify_v not_o much_o for_o who_o ibidem_fw-la see_v not_o a_o manifest_a difference_n in_o the_o case_n and_o argument_n of_o these_o two_o petilian_n will_v have_v catholic_n refuse_v and_o desert_v the_o church_n baptism_n to_o embrace_v that_o of_o the_o donatist_n only_o because_o catholic_n or_o the_o catholic_a church_n acknowledge_v the_o donatists_n baptism_n to_o be_v in_o it_o 〈◊〉_d valid_a or_o true_a baptism_n though_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o 〈◊〉_d the_o same_o church_n likewise_o teach_v it_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d sin_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o salvation_n for_o any_o catholic_n to_o seek_v their_o baptism_n voluntary_o or_o to_o admit_v of_o it_o otherwise_o then_o in_o case_n of_o extreme_a necessity_n whereas_o a._n c._n will_v have_v protestant_n become_v catholic_n upon_o this_o ground_n viz._n because_o that_o even_a protestant_n themselves_o at_o least_o the_o most_o learned_a most_o wise_a and_o most_o considerable_a among_o they_o doc_n grant_v we_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o believe_v or_o do_v how_o then_o can_v the_o bishop_n as_o he_o pretend_v answer_v a._n c._n just_a as_o st._n austin_n answer_v petilian_n the_o donatist_n that_o which_o deceive_v he_o be_v that_o he_o do_v not_o well_o observe_v
the_o force_n of_o a._n cs._n maxim_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n to_o take_v that_o way_n which_o both_o party_n agree_v in_o which_o import_v not_o any_o agreement_n whatsoever_o indefinite_o speak_v but_o determinate_o and_o special_o such_o a_o agreement_n or_o a_o agreement_n so_o far_o betwixt_o adverse_a party_n concern_v such_o a_o point_n or_o thing_n as_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o belief_n or_o do_v of_o it_o do_v not_o destroy_v salvation_n or_o do_v not_o hinder_v the_o party_n be_v save_v that_o do_v it_o have_v due_a notice_n be_v take_v of_o this_o it_o will_v have_v save_v he_o the_o trouble_n of_o bring_v this_o and_o so_o many_o other_o instance_n to_o no_o purpose_n of_o which_o more_o in_o due_a place_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o conceive_v the_o disparity_n betwixt_o the_o case_n and_o argument_n of_o petilian_n and_o a._n c._n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o need_v no_o further_a illustration_n 10._o but_o here_o the_o relatour_n grow_v into_o choler_n take_v a._n c._n of_o a_o most_o 〈◊〉_d untruth_n and_o such_o as_o a_o ingenuous_a man_n will_v not_o have_v speak_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o for_o say_v there_o be_v confess_o noe_o peril_n of_o damnation_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n i_o answer_v whatever_o the_o bishop_n grant_v or_o grant_v not_o in_o express_a term_n to_o a._n c._n touch_v this_o matter_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o from_o what_o he_o do_v confess_v it_o real_o and_o necessary_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v no_o peril_n of_o damnation_n per_fw-la se_fw-la loquendo_fw-la or_o precise_o by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o first_o as_o to_o the_o ignorant_a which_o hold_v the_o pretend_a error_n of_o our_o church_n but_o can_v 34._o discern_v they_o those_o he_o profess_o exempt_v from_o peril_n of_o damnation_n if_o they_o conform_v themselves_o to_o a_o religious_a life_n second_o he_o grant_v that_o such_o other_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o do_v even_o 〈◊〉_d and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a 5_o church_n if_o they_o hold_v the_o foundation_n christ_n and_o live_v according_o be_v not_o to_o be_v deny_v salvation_n whence_o i_o argue_v if_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d voluntary_a nor_o involuntary_a superstition_n exclude_v a_o papist_n from_o possibility_n of_o be_v save_v it_o be_v no_o loud_a untruth_n nor_o indeed_o so_o much_o as_o a_o mistake_n to_o say_v that_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v confess_o noe_o peril_n of_o damnation_n in_o the_o sense_n abovesayd_a that_o be_v mere_o by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o communion_n what_o he_o add_v after_o this_o of_o some_o among_o we_o who_o wish_v the_o superstition_n abolish_v which_o they_o know_v and_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v their_o error_n in_o what_o they_o know_v not_o and_o will_v have_v all_o thing_n amend_v that_o be_v amiss_o be_v it_o in_o their_o power_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o such_o person_n shall_v know_v any_o superstition_n teach_v and_o allow_v by_o the_o church_n as_o duty_n of_o religion_n or_o that_o they_o will_v have_v any_o thing_n amend_v in_o the_o church_n public_a authorize_v doctrine_n he_o mistake_v very_o much_o in_o suppose_v such_o person_n to_o belong_v to_o our_o church_n and_o communion_n it_o be_v contrary_a to_o catholic_a faith_n to_o believe_v that_o any_o such_o error_n or_o uperstition_n can_v be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n and_o he_o may_v as_o well_o suppose_v if_o he_o have_v please_v that_o those_o be_v protestant_n who_o go_v to_o church_n and_o join_v with_o protestant_n in_o exterior_a service_n only_o to_o save_v their_o estate_n or_o for_o some_o other_o temporal_a end_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o protestant_a tenet_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o no_o better_a than_o heresy_n and_o will_v if_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n much_o more_o willing_o hear_v mass_n then_o common_a prayer_n when_o they_o go_v to_o church_n neither_o can_v he_o be_v a_o catholic_a who_o pray_v to_o god_n to_o forgive_v his_o error_n in_o any_o matter_n or_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n for_o that_o imply_v a_o belief_n or_o doubt_v that_o the_o church_n may_v have_v err_v in_o define_v some_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o according_a to_o we_o be_v absolute_o inconsistent_a which_o true_a faith_n no_o more_o than_o we_o presume_v he_o can_v have_v be_v think_v a_o christian_a or_o protestant_n in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n who_o shall_v ask_v god_n forgiveness_n for_o believe_v some_o thing_n deliver_v in_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o answer_n to_o a._n cs._n assertion_n whereby_o he_o prefer_v both_o for_o number_n and_o worth_n those_o who_o deny_v there_o be_v any_o peril_n of_o damnation_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o those_o who_o affirm_v there_o be_v the_o bishop_n that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o confute_v the_o passage_n first_o of_o all_o cunning_o divide_v it_o and_o endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o number_n alone_o be_v no_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o truth_n who_o say_v it_o be_v not_o a._n c._n i_o be_o sure_a who_o as_o clear_o as_o he_o can_v join_v both_o together_o worth_a to_o number_n as_o a_o necessary_a supplement_n and_o conclude_v what_o he_o intend_v joint_o from_o they_o both_o now_o this_o term_n worth_n comprehend_v not_o only_a eminency_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n but_o also_o of_o virtue_n learning_n zeal_n prudence_n sanctity_n etc_o can_v any_o man_n doubt_v but_o those_o who_o have_v the_o great_a number_n and_o worth_n on_o their_o side_n be_v in_o all_o prudence_n to_o be_v think_v rather_o in_o the_o truth_n than_o those_o who_o have_v incomparable_o less_o or_o indeed_o nothing_o at_o all_o in_o comparison_n of_o they_o his_o long_a marginal_a allegation_n therefore_o which_o mention_n number_n only_o serve_v to_o no_o purpose_n but_o to_o amuse_v and_o yet_o neither_o do_v a._n c._n nor_o any_o of_o we_o say_v that_o our_o faith_n rest_v upon_o the_o number_n or_o worth_n of_o man_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o insinuate_v but_o upon_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n and_o authority_n number_n and_o worth_n of_o man_n be_v only_o motive_n of_o credibility_n to_o induce_v and_o direct_v we_o prudent_o to_o determine_v to_o which_o of_o the_o two_o party_n we_o be_v to_o give_v credit_n when_o they_o teach_v we_o contrary_a doctrine_n a._n c._n think_v it_o so_o evident_a a_o thing_n that_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_a ibidem_fw-la belief_n in_o the_o point_v controvert_v betwixt_o we_o and_o protestant_n do_v incomparable_o exceed_v those_o of_o the_o contrary_a party_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v never_o have_v call_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o as_o indeed_o it_o need_v none_o for_o if_o we_o compare_v those_o spread_v over_o the_o whole_a face_n of_o christendom_n for_o the_o last_o thousand_o year_n a_o space_n of_o time_n common_o grant_v we_o by_o our_o adversary_n who_o believe_v as_o we_o believe_v and_o never_o dream_v of_o any_o peril_n either_o of_o schism_n heresy_n or_o sin_n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o those_o few_o that_o since_o yesterday_o as_o it_o be_v begin_v to_o dissent_v from_o we_o and_o pretend_v there_o be_v peril_n of_o schism_n etc._n etc._n by_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o say_a church_n we_o shall_v find_v these_o in_o worth_n and_o number_n just_a nothing_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o other_o so_o that_o in_o truth_n the_o relatour_n ibidem_fw-la himself_o have_v he_o well_o consider_v it_o shall_v have_v blush_v at_o his_o own_o extravagant_a objection_n you_o have_v not_o yet_o prove_v your_o party_n more_o worthy_a for_o life_n or_o learning_n than_o the_o protestant_n and_o not_o bid_v his_o adversary_n blush_v for_o speak_v the_o truth_n for_o in_o this_o case_n who_o see_v not_o that_o all_o true_a christian_n who_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o live_v in_o the_o world_n be_v and_o be_v of_o our_o party_n ii_o but_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o other_o instance_n the_o bishop_n bring_v to_o impugn_v a._n cs._n maxim_n that_o it_o be_v safe_a to_o follow_v that_o way_n in_o religion_n in_o which_o the_o differ_a party_n agree_v there_o be_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n his_o first_o be_v take_v from_o the_o article_n of_o our_o saviour_n descent_n 〈◊〉_d into_o hell_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n say_v he_o and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n dissent_v party_n do_v agree_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n and_o that_o hell_n be_v the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a therefore_o according_a to_o a._n cs._n rule_n it_o shall_v be_v safe_a to_o believe_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o this_o
say_v the_o bishop_n the_o romanist_n will_v not_o endure_v because_o st._n thomas_n and_o the_o school_n general_o agree_v in_o it_o that_o he_o go_v real_o no_o further_o than_o limbus_n patrum_n i_o answer_v by_o deny_v his_o proposition_n there_o be_v no_o such_o agreement_n of_o party_n as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v though_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v both_o agree_v that_o our_o saviour_n descend_v into_o hell_n yet_o they_o do_v not_o both_z agree_v that_o by_o hell_n either_o in_o the_o creed_n or_o in_o all_o place_n of_o scripture_n where_o hell_n be_v mention_v be_v understand_v the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a here_o therefore_o our_o adversary_n clear_o dispute_v ex_fw-la falso_fw-la supposito_fw-la and_o the_o argument_n in_o truth_n may_v be_v much_o better_o retort_v upon_o himself_o thus_o both_o party_n agree_v that_o christ_n descend_v into_o hell_n but_o both_o party_n do_v not_o agree_v that_o by_o hell_n be_v understand_v here_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a for_o the_o great_a and_o better_a part_n of_o divine_n hold_v the_o contrary_a ergo_fw-la it_o be_v safe_a not_o to_o believe_v that_o he_o descend_v into_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a then_o positive_o to_o assert_v it_o as_o some_o english_a protestant_n do_v his_o next_o instance_n be_v about_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o as_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n as_o the_o former_a for_o though_o we_o agree_v that_o our_o saviour_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n 2._o that_o be_v make_v it_o himself_o and_o ordain_v it_o to_o be_v make_v by_o his_o minister_n in_o both_o kind_n yet_o we_o neither_o agree_v that_o he_o institute_v with_o intention_n or_o give_v any_o command_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v always_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n by_o all_o the_o faithful_a nor_o do_v we_o grant_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o any_o that_o out_o of_o private_a heretical_a persuasion_n hold_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v receive_v by_o all_o or_o out_o of_o contempt_n of_o the_o church_n order_n to_o the_o contrary_a do_v receive_v it_o in_o both_o kind_n our_o saviour_n give_v it_o in_o one_o kind_n only_o to_o the_o two_o disciple_n at_o emmaus_n lucae_n 24._o as_o both_o st._n 25._o austin_n st._n math._n chrysostome_n lae_fw-la st._n hierome_n luc._n theophylact_fw-mi and_o luc._n other_o of_o the_o ancient_n witness_n who_o example_n the_o church_n follow_v always_o allow_v the_o use_n and_o manner_n of_o receive_v this_o sacrament_n free_a as_o to_o the_o faithful_a viz._n either_o to_o receive_v it_o in_o both_o kind_n if_o their_o devotion_n incline_v they_o thereto_o or_o only_o in_o one_o in_o case_n they_o desire_v no_o more_o till_o of_o late_a time_n the_o custom_n of_o receive_v it_o in_o form_n of_o bread_n only_o grow_v more_o general_a and_o inconvenience_n of_o receive_v it_o in_o both_o kind_n multiply_v the_o council_n of_o constance_n total_o abrogate_a the_o manner_n of_o receive_v it_o in_o form_n of_o wine_n and_o enjoin_v what_o be_v now_o in_o use_n whence_o likewise_o it_o appear_v it_o be_v not_o injurious_o as_o the_o bishop_n pretend_v but_o just_o require_v of_o the_o bohemian_n not_o to_o condemn_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n for_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n when_o she_o dispense_v with_o they_o to_o receive_v in_o both_o to_o what_o he_o object_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o concomitancy_n invent_v as_o he_o say_v by_o st._n thomas_n of_o aquin_n and_o contrary_a to_o truth_n for_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o saerament_n of_o blood_n shed_v and_o pour_v forth_o and_o not_o of_o blood_n contain_v in_o the_o body_n i_o answer_v that_o however_o the_o term_n itself_o might_n perhaps_o be_v first_o use_v by_o the_o angelical_a doctor_n yet_o the_o thing_n thereby_o signify_v be_v always_o the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o ever_o teach_v that_o by_o consecration_n under_o each_o species_n the_o entire_a sacrament_n or_o whole_a christ_n be_v put_v and_o therefore_o under_o each_o of_o they_o as_o well_o the_o body_n as_o the_o blood_n and_o as_o well_o the_o blood_n as_o the_o body_n be_v contain_v notwithstanding_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o precise_a word_n in_o the_o consecration_n of_o bread_n express_v no_o more_o than_o christ_n body_n nor_o those_o use_v in_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o chalice_n any_o more_o than_o christ_n blood_n wherefore_o to_o show_v what_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o force_n of_o the_o precise_a word_n of_o consecration_n and_o what_o by_o virtue_n of_o natural_a connexion_n or_o union_n divine_n common_o make_v use_v of_o this_o distinction_n ex_fw-la vi_fw-la verborum_fw-la and_o per_fw-la concomitantiam_fw-la exit_fw-la vi_fw-la verborum_fw-la or_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o precise_a word_n of_o consecration_n christ_n body_n only_o be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n only_o under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n but_o per_fw-la concomitantiam_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o natural_a connexion_n or_o union_n whereby_o the_o part_n of_o christ_n humanity_n be_v never_o to_o be_v divide_v one_o from_o a_o other_o the_o blood_n be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n also_o and_o his_o body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n and_o his_o foul_a and_o divinity_n or_o godhead_n under_o both_o and_o this_o the_o bishop_n must_v grant_v if_o he_o hold_v the_o real_a presence_n except_o he_o will_v have_v we_o think_v that_o christ_n be_v dead_a in_o the_o sacrament_n contrary_a to_o st._n paul_n who_o plain_o toll_v we_o rom._n 6._o 9_o he_o die_v no_o more_o as_o for_o the_o priest_n that_o consecrate_v there_o be_v a_o double_a necessity_n for_o he_o to_o receive_v under_o both_o kind_n the_o first_o be_v gather_v from_o christ_n word_n speak_v to_o his_o apostle_n at_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o interpret_v to_o we_o by_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o ground_v upon_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o only_o a_o sacrament_n to_o be_v distribute_v among_o the_o faithful_a but_o a_o true_a proper_a and_o perfect_a sacrifice_n represent_v that_o upon_o the_o cross_n where_o not_o only_a christ_n body_n be_v crucify_a but_o also_o his_o blood_n be_v shed_v for_o us._n and_o therefore_o the_o priest_n who_o offer_v this_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o altar_n must_v not_o only_o consecrate_v in_o both_o kind_n but_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n to_o complete_a the_o sacrifice_n his_o three_o instance_n be_v about_o the_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n in_o 3._o the_o eucharist_n wherein_o he_o pretend_v that_o they_o and_o we_o agree_v but_o this_o be_v false_a speak_v in_o the_o protestant_n sense_n or_o of_o such_o a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n as_o exclude_v that_o which_o be_v real_a and_o proper_a where_o do_v catholic_n ever_o agree_v with_o protestant_n that_o it_o be_v not_o 〈◊〉_d sin_n in_o they_o to_o deny_v the_o true_a real_a and_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v acknowledge_v only_o such_o a_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o they_o do_v let_n one_o only_a author_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v name_v who_o teach_v this_o or_o that_o bread_n break_v and_o wine_n pour_v out_o understand_v natural_a and_o substantial_a bread_n and_o wine_n as_o the_o bishop_n must_v do_v according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n be_v in_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n a_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n among_o christian_n for_o this_o be_v to_o say_v in_o effect_n that_o christian_n under_o the_o gospel_n do_v real_o sacrifice_n to_o god_n natural_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o thereby_o add_v another_o sacrifice_n to_o that_o of_o christ_n body_n which_o be_v a_o very_a gross_a error_n in_o his_o four_o about_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n in_o baptism_n 4._o he_o lapse_n again_o for_o what_o we_o agree_v with_o protestant_n in_o we_o stand_v to_o as_o most_o safe_a to_o be_v do_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n now_o this_o be_v only_o in_o the_o present_a case_n that_o due_a matter_n and_o form_n must_v necessary_o be_v use_v for_o the_o validity_n of_o baptism_n do_v any_o of_o we_o or_o can_v any_o man_n deny_v but_o it_o be_v safe_a in_o order_n to_o salvation_n to_o use_v due_a matter_n and_o form_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n than_o not_o to_o use_v they_o the_o bishop_n indeed_o will_v gather_v from_o hence_o that_o we_o must_v also_o account_v due_a matter_n and_o form_n sufficient_a without_o intention_n but_o this_o be_v more_o than_o the_o rule_n oblige_v we_o to_o do_v the_o rule_n punct_a certain_o bind_v a._n c._n to_o no_o more_o then_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o thing_n wherein_o differ_v party_n agree_v to_o be_v sase_a than_o the_o contrary_a or_o negative_a of_o it_o which_o we_o do_v
rome_n or_o after_o he_o be_v pastor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n before_o he_o settle_v his_o seat_n at_o rome_n and_o the_o british_a christian_n if_o any_o such_o be_v before_o that_o time_n may_v very_o well_o at_o least_o for_o aught_o the_o bishop_n shew_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v instruct_v by_o their_o preacher_n to_o believe_v and_o acknowledge_v he_o for_o such_o chap._n 24._o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o point_n touch_v the_o salvation_n of_o roman_a catholic_n and_o the_o roman_a faith_n prove_v to_o be_v the_o same_o now_o that_o it_o ever_o be_v argument_n 1._o all_o catholic_n in_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n and_o all_o protestant_a teacher_n exclude_v by_o the_o bishop_n own_o ground_n 2._o no_o church_n different_a in_o doctrine_n from_o the_o roman_a can_v be_v show_v to_o have_v hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o all_o age_n 3._o the_o bishop_n confident_a pretence_n to_o salvation_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n rather_o presumptuous_a then_o well_o ground_v 4._o his_o pretend_v to_o believe_v as_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n believe_v disprove_v by_o instance_n 5._o christ_n descent_n into_o limbus_n patrum_n the_o doctrine_n and_o worship_v of_o image_n the_o public_a allow_v practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 6._o a._n c_o '_o interrogatories_n defend_v 7._o protestant_n have_v not_o the_o same_o bible_n with_o catholic_n in_o any_o true_a sense_n 8._o the_o index_n expurgatorius_fw-la not_o devise_v by_o we_o to_o corrupt_v the_o father_n 9_o no_o disagreement_n among_o catholic_n in_o point_n define_v by_o the_o church_n 10._o catholic_n have_v infallible_a faith_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v either_o explicit_o or_o implicit_o but_o protestant_n none_o at_o all_o that_o be_v infallible_a 1._o the_o controversy_n go_v on_o touch_v roman-catholiques_a salvation_n the_o bishop_n have_v first_o yield_v 1._o absolute_o that_o the_o lady_n may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o roman_a faith_n nettle_v a_o little_a as_o it_o seem_v by_o mr._n fisher_n bid_v her_o mark_n that_o return_v smart_o upon_o he_o in_o these_o word_n she_o may_v be_v better_o save_v in_o it_o than_o you_o and_o bid_v he_o mark_v that_o too_o well_o we_o will_v not_o interpret_v this_o to_o be_v any_o restrain_v of_o his_o former_a grant_n touch_v the_o lady_n salvation_n but_o only_o a_o item_n to_o his_o adversary_n to_o look_v to_o himself_o for_o that_o in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n his_o case_n be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o the_o lady_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n but_o what_o be_v his_o reason_n because_o for_o sooth_n any_o man_n that_o know_v so_o much_o of_o the_o truth_n as_o mr._n fisher_n and_o other_o of_o his_o call_n do_v and_o yet_o oppose_v it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o great_a danger_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v learning_n and_o sufficiency_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n have_v such_o a_o connexion_n with_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d easy_a matter_n to_o have_v the_o one_o and_o not_o to_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o other_o but_o how_o false_a this_o surmise_n be_v appear_v by_o the_o experience_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o be_v so_o far_o from_o discover_v error_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o truth_n in_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n that_o the_o more_o learned_a they_o be_v and_o the_o better_a they_o understand_v and_o weigh_v the_o ground_n of_o controversy_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o her_o adversary_n the_o more_o they_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n again_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o by_o ponder_v the_o pretend_a reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o their_o religion_n i_o shall_v ever_o come_v to_o a_o right_n and_o full_a understanding_n of_o divine_a truth_n see_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o follow_v their_o principle_n i_o can_v be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o that_o belong_v to_o divine_a faith_n for_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v that_o all_o particular_a man_n all_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n may_v err_v what_o assurance_n can_v they_o give_v i_o that_o either_o their_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a or_o that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n by_o which_o they_o prove_v their_o doctrine_n be_v such_o as_o they_o understand_v or_o that_o their_o church_n which_o they_o grant_v to_o be_v fallible_a do_v not_o err_v in_o those_o point_n wherein_o they_o disagree_v from_o us._n ibidem_fw-la what_o he_o assert_v afterward_o by_o way_n of_o reason_n why_o he_o allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o roman_a catholic_n viz._n because_o they_o be_v within_o the_o church_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v say_v simple_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_n the_o foundation_n be_v a_o paradox_n and_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v false_a even_o from_o his_o own_o ground_n for_o see_v he_o have_v often_o deliver_v that_o by_o foundation_n he_o understand_v only_o such_o point_n as_o be_v prime_a radical_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o express_o believe_v by_o all_o christian_n in_o order_n to_o salvation_n and_o see_v that_o many_o heretic_n be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n in_o this_o sense_n what_o do_v he_o but_o bring_v into_o the_o fold_n of_o the_o church_n and_o make_v member_n of_o christ_n mystical_a body_n most_o of_o the_o heretic_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o that_o even_o while_o they_o remain_v most_o notorious_o and_o actual_o divide_v from_o it_o nor_o be_v he_o content_a with_o one_o absurdity_n unless_o he_o adjoine_v a_o second_o ibidem_fw-la there_o be_v no_o question_n say_v he_o but_o many_o viz._n ignorant_a catholic_n be_v save_v in_o the_o corrupt_a time_n of_o the_o church_n when_o their_o leader_n unless_o they_o repent_v before_o their_o death_n as_o it_o be_v moral_o certain_a none_o of_o they_o do_v be_v lose_v see_v here_o a_o heavy_a doom_n pronounce_v against_o all_o the_o roman_a doctor_n in_o general_n but_o what_o be_v they_o all_o lose_v who_o repent_v not_o of_o those_o pretend_a error_n which_o as_o pastor_n of_o the_o roman-catholique_a church_n they_o teach_v so_o many_o year_n together_o how_o can_v that_o be_v be_v they_o not_o all_o even_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o principle_n member_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o those_o error_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o be_v baptise_a and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n if_o they_o neither_o lose_v that_o faith_n by_o which_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n nor_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v teach_v any_o false_a doctrine_n against_o their_o conscience_n by_o mean_n ibidem_fw-la whereof_o they_o may_v fall_v from_o grace_n with_o what_o truth_n or_o charity_n can_v the_o bishop_n pronounce_v such_o a_o sentence_n against_o they_o he_o add_v that_o erroneous_a leader_n do_v then_o only_o perish_v when_o they_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n instruction_n or_o to_o use_v all_o the_o mean_n they_o can_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n but_o i_o demand_v if_o no_o misleader_n but_o such_o do_v perish_v with_o what_o countenance_n conscience_n i_o may_v say_v can_v the_o relatour_n pass_v his_o judgement_n of_o we_o in_o the_o manner_n he_o do_v that_o they_o be_v lose_v can_v it_o with_o any_o colour_n of_o equity_n or_o truth_n be_v charge_v upon_o they_o that_o they_o refuse_v the_o church_n instruction_n what_o visible_a church_n be_v there_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n for_o so_o many_o hundred_o year_n together_o by_o which_o have_v they_o be_v never_o so_o willing_a they_o can_v be_v instruct_v to_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o themselves_o teach_v in_o their_o respective_a age_n and_o what_o other_o mean_n can_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o use_v more_o than_o they_o do_v to_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o truth_n why_o shall_v not_o our_o adversary_n in_o reason_n have_v rather_o excuse_v 〈◊〉_d these_o leader_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o communion_n from_o heresy_n and_o all_o other_o damnable_a error_n than_o he_o do_v even_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o and_o his_o follower_n see_v it_o be_v manifest_a these_o last_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v the_o more_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n whereas_o the_o roman_a catholic_a doctor_n have_v always_o the_o universal_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n on_o their_o side_n in_o the_o point_n now_o controvert_v and_o for_o which_o protestant_n condemn_v they_o of_o error_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o little_a entangle_v here_o something_o he_o must_v say_v by_o way_n of_o threaten_v against_o catholic_n to_o keep_v his_o own_o people_n in_o awe_n and_o to_o fright_v they_o from_o become_v catholic_n but_o positive_o and_o determinate_o what_o
if_o our_o adversary_n like_v not_o his_o answer_n we_o challenge_v they_o again_o to_o show_v we_o such_o a_o church_n moreover_o we_o aver_v that_o from_o doctor_n whites_n grant_v abovementioned_n 5._o a._n c._n inference_n be_v right_o gather_v namely_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v and_o teach_v in_o all_o age_n unchanged_a faith_n in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n and_o do_v not_o in_o any_o age_n err_v in_o any_o point_n fundamental_a and_o that_o the_o bishop_n criticism_n be_v much_o more_o subtle_a then_o solid_a when_o to_o make_v good_a his_o denial_n of_o it_o he_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o hold_v unchanged_a faith_n in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n and_o the_o not-erring_a in_o any_o fundamental_a point_n grant_v the_o first_o of_o these_o viz._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n hold_v unchanged_a faith_n in_o all_o such_o point_n to_o follow_v out_o of_o doctor_n whites_n concession_n but_o not_o the_o second_o viz._n that_o she_o have_v not_o err_v in_o any_o point_n fundamental_a but_o with_o what_o ground_n or_o consonancy_n to_o himself_o and_o truth_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_v his_o precense_n be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v keep_v the_o faith_n unchanged_a only_o in_o the_o expression_n as_o he_o call_v it_o or_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o article_n but_o have_v err_v in_o the_o exposition_n or_o sense_n of_o it_o i_o answer_v if_o she_o have_v err_v in_o the_o exposition_n and_o sense_n of_o a_o article_n how_o can_v she_o be_v true_o say_v to_o have_v hold_v it_o can_v any_o man_n with_o truth_n say_v that_o the_o arian_n hold_v the_o article_n of_o christ_n diviunity_n or_o the_o antitrinitarian_n the_o doctrine_n of_o three_o divine_a person_n because_o they_o allow_v and_o hold_v scripture_n in_o which_o these_o mystery_n be_v contain_v who_o ever_o 〈◊〉_d this_o word_n hold_v in_o a_o question_n of_o faith_n to_o signify_v no_o more_o than_o profession_n or_o keep_v of_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o article_n and_o not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o mystery_n itself_o in_o its_o true_a sense_n be_v it_o not_o all_o one_o to_o say_v roman_a catholic_n hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n purgatory_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc_n and_o to_o say_v they_o believe_v the_o say_a doctrine_n if_o then_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o hold_v all_o fundamental_a point_n it_o be_v likewise_o true_a that_o she_o have_v ever_o believe_v they_o and_o if_o she_o have_v ever_o believe_v they_o all_o it_o be_v manifest_a she_o have_v not_o err_v in_o any_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n proper_o and_o true_o speak_v whereby_o a_o man_n can_v err_v against_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o by_o disbeleeve_v it_o if_o therefore_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v and_o believe_v in_o all_o age_n all_o fundamental_a point_n it_o be_v by_o necessary_a ibidem_fw-la consequence_n likewise_o grant_v that_o she_o never_o err_v in_o any_o such_o point_n how_o unwilling_a soever_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o have_v it_o so_o he_o tell_v we_o indeed_o but_o his_o accusation_n have_v no_o proof_n that_o our_o church_n have_v err_v gross_o dangerous_o nay_o damnable_o in_o the_o exposition_n of_o fundamental_a point_n that_o in_o the_o exposition_n both_o of_o creed_n and_o council_n she_o have_v quite_o change_v and_o lose_v the_o sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o some_o of_o they_o last_o that_o her_o beauty_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v but_o mere_a paint_n as_o preserve_v only_o the_o outside_n and_o bare_a letter_n of_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o inward_a sense_n and_o belief_n be_v neither_o beautiful_a nor_o sound_a thus_o he_o but_o be_v ever_o calumny_n more_o false_o and_o injurious_o advance_v let_v our_o adversary_n show_n in_o what_o one_o article_n of_o all_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v either_o lose_v its_o true_a sense_n or_o err_v in_o her_o exposition_n of_o it_o beside_o they_o must_v likewise_o show_v how_o this_o censure_n can_v stand_v with_o the_o bishop_n former_a grant_n touch_v the_o possibility_n of_o catholic_n salvation_n if_o true_a faith_n in_o all_o fundamental_a point_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a none_o can_v be_v save_v without_o it_o and_o that_o true_a faith_n consist_v in_o the_o sense_n and_o inward_a belief_n and_o not_o in_o the_o bare_a letter_n how_o can_v those_o which_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n communion_n believe_v all_o thing_n as_o she_o teach_v and_o no_o otherwise_o attain_v salvation_n 3._o the_o lady_n here_o ask_v a_o second_o question_n whether_o she_o may_v be_v save_v in_o the_o protestant_a faith_n in_o answer_v whereof_o the_o party_n confer_v be_v again_o put_v into_o new_a heat_n upon_o my_o soul_n say_v the_o bishop_n you_o may_v upon_o my_o soul_n say_v mr._n fisher_n there_o be_v 1._o but_o one_o save_v faith_n and_o that_o be_v the_o roman_a you_o see_v their_o mutual_a confidence_n but_o which_o of_o they_o be_v better_a ground_v the_o reader_n must_v judge_v mr._n fisher_n seem_v to_o lay_v the_o ground_n of_o he_o upon_o that_o which_o can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v a_o fundamental_a mean_n and_o condition_n also_o of_o salvation_n viz._n catholic_a faith_n which_o unless_o it_o be_v entire_o and_o inviolate_o profess_v save_v none_o witness_n st._n athanasius_n in_o lyturgie_n his_o creed_n admit_v by_o protestant_n the_o bishop_n declare_v the_o ground_n of_o his_o assertion_n in_o these_o word_n to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n to_o believe_v these_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n to_o receive_v the_o four_o great_a general_n council_n so_o much_o magnify_v by_o antiquity_n to_o believe_v all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n as_o fundamental_a be_v a_o faith_n in_o which_o to_o live_v and_o dye_n can_v but_o give_v salvation_n to_o which_o he_o add_v in_o all_o the_o point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o be_v contrevert_v between_o we_o i_o will_v fain_o see_v any_o one_o point_n maintain_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o foundation_n this_o in_o fine_a be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o bishop_n confidence_n but_o i_o answer_v his_o lordship_n fail_v in_o two_o thing_n the_o first_o that_o he_o do_v not_o show_v that_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o he_o here_o mention_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n notwithstanding_o whatever_o error_n or_o opinion_n may_v be_v join_v with_o it_o the_o second_o that_o he_o do_v not_o show_v that_o at_o least_o his_o english-protestant_n faith_n be_v real_o and_o indeed_o such_o a_o faith_n as_o he_o here_o profess_v that_o be_v in_o nothing_o different_a from_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a church_n and_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o four_o great_a general_n council_n he_o speak_v 〈◊〉_d for_o as_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o paricular_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n himself_o but_o even_o now_o affirm_v that_o st._n cyprian_n follower_n be_v lose_v without_o repentance_n because_o they_o oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o in_o and_o by_o a_o general_n council_n have_v declare_v their_o opinion_n to_o be_v erroneous_a put_v case_n then_o that_o in_o aftertime_n the_o whole_a church_n or_o a_o general_n council_n of_o like_a authority_n with_o that_o of_o nice_n shall_v declare_v some_o other_o opinion_n to_o be_v erroneous_a which_o be_v not_o sufficient_o declare_v to_o be_v so_o either_o by_o scripture_n creed_n or_o those_o four_o first_o general_n council_n be_v not_o he_o that_o shall_v hold_v it_o after_o such_o definitive_a declaration_n of_o the_o church_n or_o council_n in_o a_o like_o damnable_a condition_n with_o those_o follower_n of_o st._n cyprian_n though_o he_o believe_v the_o scripture_n the_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n if_o not_o let_v our_o adversary_n show_n why_o rebaptizer_n only_o shall_v be_v put_v into_o a_o damnable_a condition_n mere_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o council_n definition_n and_o other_o people_n who_o do_v no_o less_o resist_v and_o contradict_v like_o definition_n and_o authority_n shall_v not_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n himself_o in_o effect_n teach_v it_o to_o be_v damnable_a sin_n to_o oppose_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o general_n council_n when_o he_o averr_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o it_o bind_v all_o particular_n to_o obedience_n and_o submission_n till_o the_o contrary_n be_v determine_v by_o a_o other_o council_n of_o equal_a authority_n and_o censure_v the_o do_v otherwise_o for_o a_o bold_a fault_n of_o dare_a time_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o church_n peace_n how_o can_v this_o possible_o be_v make_v good_a if_o to_o believe_v scripture_n and_o 5._o the_o
question_n for_o none_o of_o we_o ever_o yet_o grant_v he_o that_o there_o be_v such_o light_n but_o also_o contrary_a to_o experience_n there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o mere_o by_o read_v such_o book_n as_o be_v call_v canonical_a and_o other_o that_o be_v account_v apocryphal_a can_v come_v to_o know_v which_o be_v canonical_a which_o not_o as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o example_n not_o only_o of_o such_o as_o be_v never_o teach_v the_o maxim_n of_o christian_a religion_n but_o also_o of_o many_o christian_n who_o though_o they_o be_v able_a to_o read_v yet_o be_v never_o teach_v which_o book_n be_v apocryphal_a which_o not_o know_v they_o not_o by_o read_v whence_o it_o follow_v likewise_o that_o all_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n which_o the_o bishop_n make_v touch_v his_o infallible_a belief_n of_o scripture_n fall_v to_o nothing_o see_v what_o he_o lay_v as_o its_o principal_a foundation_n apparent_o sink_v under_o the_o weight_n for_o a_o meerly-humane_a and_o infallible_a assurance_n will_v never_o support_v a_o infallible_a faith_n of_o scripture_n as_o 6._o even_o our_o adversary_n himself_o grant_v nor_o can_v he_o in_o any_o better_a sort_n make_v good_a what_o he_o affirm_n concern_v the_o creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n namely_o that_o he_o believe_v they_o infallible_o in_o their_o true_a incorrupted_a sense_n and_o know_v that_o he_o believe_v they_o so_o in_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o see_v he_o have_v no_o infallible_a certainty_n that_o the_o word_n or_o text_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n or_o the_o book_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v not_o be_v corrupt_v how_o can_v he_o have_v infallibility_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o they_o and_o their_o conformity_n to_o scripture_n he_o pretend_v indeed_o to_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o believe_v scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o same_o incorrupted_a sense_n in_o which_o the_o primitrue_n church_n believe_v ibidem_fw-la they_o because_o he_o cross_v not_o in_o his_o beleese_n any_o thing_n delever_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o this_o again_o he_o be_v sure_a of_o because_o he_o take_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o it_o be_v express_v and_o deliver_v by_o the_o council_n and_o ancient_a father_n of_o those_o time_n but_o how_o true_a this_o be_v and_o how_o sincere_o he_o take_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o it_o be_v express_a by_o father_n and_o council_n may_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o due_o consider_v by_o the_o testimony_n we_o have_v already_o allege_v against_o he_o upon_o several_a occasion_n out_o of_o the_o council_n and_o father_n particular_o in_o this_o very_a chapter_n and_o shall_v yet_o further_o allege_v in_o those_o which_o follow_v a._n c._n ask_v again_o what_o text_n of_o scripture_n assure_v we_o that_o protestant_n now_o living_n do_v believe_v all_o this_o to_o wit_n the_o scripture_n 〈◊〉_d creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n in_o their_o incorrupted_a sense_n or_o that_o all_o this_o viz._n all_o that_o protestant_n take_v to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n creed_n and_o four_o first_o general_n council_n be_v express_v in_o those_o particular_a bibles_n or_o in_o the_o act_n of_o council_n or_o write_n of_o the_o primitive_a father_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o protestant_n band_n and_o at_o this_o his_o lordship_n will_v needs_o seem_v to_o wonder_v but_o let_v they_o wonder_v that_o will_n the_o query_n will_v ever_o be_v find_v both_o rational_a and_o pertinent_a notwithstanding_o such_o wonder_v for_o can_v any_o man_n deny_v but_o this_o be_v a_o good_a consequence_n protestant_n admit_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n therefore_o they_o can_v believe_v infallible_o all_o this_o above_o mention_v without_o some_o particular_a text_n or_o text_n of_o sripture_n to_o be_v show_v for_o it_o and_o have_v not_o a._n c._n just_a cause_n to_o ask_v whether_o all_o this_o be_v express_v in_o the_o bibles_n which_o be_v now_o in_o protestant_n hand_n for_o see_v it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o bible_n if_o it_o be_v not_o likewise_o in_o they_o it_o will_v be_v ibidem_fw-la i_o hope_v sufficient_o evidence_v to_o a_o reasonable_a adversary_n that_o it_o can_v be_v find_v in_o none_o but_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o this_o shall_v be_v show_v by_o any_o particular_a text_n because_o it_o be_v make_v plain_o before_o how_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v scripture_n and_o by_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n too_o and_o yet_o we_o can_v show_v no_o particular_a text_n for_o it_o but_o how_o we_o pray_v be_v this_o make_v plain_a he_o tell_v we_o indeed_o that_o he_o believe_v the_o entire_a scripture_n first_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n then_o by_o other_o credible_a motive_n last_o by_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n it_o self_n but_o the_o two_o first_o of_o these_o be_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n of_o no_o infallible_a authority_n and_o the_o three_o in_o effect_n no_o more_o than_o the_o private_a spirit_n as_o we_o have_v often_o demonstrate_v to_o he_o but_o admit_v the_o bishop_n be_v sure_a that_o the_o primitive_a church_n expound_v scripture_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n as_o protestant_n believe_v it_o yet_o how_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v good_a what_o he_o add_v stand_v to_o his_o own_o principle_n this_o rule_n mean_v the_o scripture_n as_o expound_v 〈◊〉_d by_o the_o primitive_a church_n can_v never_o deceive_v i_o do_v christ_n promise_v infallibility_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o not_o to_o the_o succeed_a church_n and_o if_o no_o such_o infallibility_n be_v promise_v or_o signify_v in_o scripture_n how_o can_v he_o be_v certain_a they_o can_v not_o err_v or_o deceive_v he_o in_o their_o exposition_n 7._o the_o bishop_n tell_v we_o they_o have_v the_o same_o bible_n with_o we_o but_o i_o see_v not_o how_o this_o can_v be_v affirm_v with_o any_o truth_n for_o protestant_n ibidem_fw-la both_o leave_v out_o many_o book_n which_o we_o esteem_v part_n of_o our_o bible_n and_o those_o which_o they_o have_v with_o we_o be_v corrupt_v both_o in_o original_n and_o translation_n neither_o do_v they_o admit_v and_o receive_v the_o bible_n upon_o the_o same_o motive_n or_o reason_n that_o we_o do_v we_o admit_v it_o for_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n propound_v it_o to_o we_o as_o a_o divine_a book_n which_o infallible_a authority_n protestant_n deny_v and_o by_o consequence_n see_v they_o assign_v no_o other_o in_o lieu_n of_o it_o can_v in_o reason_n be_v so_o infallible_o sure_a of_o their_o bible_n as_o we_o be_v of_o we_o much_o less_o can_v the_o bishop_n just_o say_v that_o all_o be_v express_v in_o their_o bibles_n that_o be_v in_o we_o upon_o this_o ground_n only_o because_o all_o fundamental_a point_n be_v as_o provable_a without_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la as_o with_o it_o for_o who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v affirm_v with_o exclusion_n of_o diverse_a other_o book_n admit_v into_o the_o protestant_n canon_n no_o less_o than_o we_o for_o example_n the_o epistle_n of_o st._n jude_n the_o two_o last_o epistle_n of_o st._n john_n the_o epistle_n to_o philemon_n the_o book_n of_o ester_n ruth_n paralipomena_fw-la yea_o perhaps_o all_o or_o very_o many_o of_o the_o small_a prophet_n it_o be_v scarce_o credible_a the_o relatour_n or_o any_o other_o protestant_n shall_v maintain_v there_o be_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n in_o their_o sense_n to_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o those_o book_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o any_o other_o book_n or_o part_n of_o scripture_n so_o that_o if_o this_o reason_n be_v good_a a_o heretic_n that_o reject_v upon_o the_o matter_n one_o 〈◊〉_d or_o one_o three_o part_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n shall_v yet_o be_v allow_v to_o pretend_v that_o he_o have_v the_o same_o bible_n with_o catholic_n and_o deliver_v to_o he_o by_o the_o same_o hand_n and_o that_o all_o be_v express_v in_o his_o that_o be_v in_o the_o catholic_a bible_n sure_o with_o very_a much_o truth_n and_o modesty_n we_o agree_v with_o bellarmin_n that_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n speak_v proper_o be_v reveal_v only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n write_a or_o unwritten_a 8._o but_o we_o aver_v that_o they_o be_v infallible_o declare_v and_o testify_v to_o we_o to_o be_v so_o reueay_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o general_n council_n nor_o do_v st._n augustine_n text_n against_o maximinus_n the_o arian_n any_o way_n cross_v or_o prejudice_n our_o 〈◊〉_d although_o it_o be_v manifest_a 14._o he_o speak_v there_o 〈◊〉_d by_o way_n of_o condescension_n and_o voluntary_a yield_v to_o his_o adversary_n and_o not_o as_o force_v there_o to_o by_o any_o necessity_n of_o reason_n st._n
faith_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n hold_v at_o rome_n whither_o he_o have_v be_v call_v upon_o occasion_n of_o some_o thing_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n by_o heretic_n and_o with_o the_o act_n of_o the_o say_a council_n be_v it_o register_v and_o preserve_v till_o in_o tract_n of_o time_n it_o come_v to_o be_v public_o and_o general_o use_v in_o the_o church_n now_o the_o latin_a copy_n read_v 〈◊〉_d and_o ancient_o ever_o do_v so_o let_v our_o adversary_n show_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o creed_n itself_o that_o it_o be_v not_o this_o father_n intention_n to_o exhort_v to_o good_a life_n or_o to_o teach_v how_o necessary_a good_a work_n be_v to_o justification_n or_o salvation_n but_o only_o to_o make_v a_o plain_a and_o full_a confession_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n concern_v those_o two_o chief_a and_o grand_a mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n viz._n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 3._o what_o the_o relatour_n reachis_n be_v in_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n not_o to_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o a_o other_o to_o force_v a_o wrong_a sense_n upon_o they_o intimate_v that_o ibidem_fw-la this_o only_o be_v to_o violate_v the_o creed_n and_o not_o the_o other_o i_o must_v confess_v i_o do_v not_o well_o understand_v for_o suppose_v i_o believe_v that_o be_v give_v my_o assent_n to_o the_o creed_n sure_o i_o must_v believe_v or_o give_v my_o assent_n to_o it_o in_o some_o determinate_a sense_n or_o other_o if_o therefore_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n i_o must_v necessary_o believe_v it_o in_o a_o false_a and_o what_o be_v that_o but_o to_o offer_v violence_n or_o put_v a_o foreed_a sense_n upon_o the_o creed_n unless_o perhaps_o he_o will_v have_v we_o think_v the_o creed_n be_v so_o compose_v as_o to_o be_v equal_o or_o as_o fair_o capable_a of_o a_o false_a sense_n as_o a_o true_a but_o this_o be_v not_o the_o first_o time_n our_o adversary_n acuteness_n have_v carry_v he_o to_o inconvenience_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o natural_a and_o well-grounden_a inference_n and_o no_o strain_n of_o a._n c._n to_o assume_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o catholic_a faith_n because_o they_o keep_v it_o not_o entire_a and_o inviolate_a as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o as_o this_o father_n st._n athanasius_n teach_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o all_o man_n to_o keep_v it_o which_o be_v also_o further_o manifest_a for_o if_o they_o do_v believe_v any_o one_o article_n with_o true_a divine_a faith_n they_o find_v the_o same_o formal_a reason_n in_o all_o viz._n divine_a revelation_n sufficient_o attest_v and_o apply_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n to_o all_o by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n they_o will_v as_o easy_o believe_v all_o as_o they_o do_v that_o one_o or_o those_o few_o article_n which_o they_o imagine_v themselves_o to_o believe_v and_o this_o our_o antagonist_n will_v not_o seem_v much_o to_o gain_v say_v roundly_o tell_v a._n c._n that_o himself_o and_o protestant_n do_v not_o believe_v any_o one_o article_n only_o but_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n for_o the_o same_o 14._o formal_a reason_n in_o all_o namely_o because_o they_o be_v reveal_v from_o and_o by_o god_n and_o sufficient_o apply_v in_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o church_n ministration_n but_o this_o be_v only_o to_o hide_v a_o false_a meaning_n under_o false_a word_n we_o question_v not_o what_o protestant_n may_v pretend_v to_o do_v especial_o concern_v those_o few_o point_n which_o they_o be_v please_v to_o account_v article_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o wit_n fundamental_n only_o but_o what_o they_o real_o do_v now_o that_o real_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v either_o all_o the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n or_o even_o those_o fundamental_a point_n in_o any_o sincere_a sense_n for_o god_n revelation_n as_o sufficient_o apply_v by_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o church_n be_v manifest_a from_o their_o profess_v that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o all_o point_v not-fundamentall_a and_o even_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o scripture_n from_o whence_o they_o pretend_v to_o deduce_v their_o say_a fundamental_n consequent_o they_o can_v in_o no_o true_a sense_n believe_v any_o thing_n as_o catholic_n do_v for_o the_o same_o formal_a reason_n sufficient_o apply_v to_o believe_v all_o in_o this_o sort_n as_o a._n c._n require_v and_o as_o all_o catholic_n do_v be_v in_o effect_n to_o renounce_v their_o heresy_n and_o to_o admit_v as_o matter_n of_o christian_a faith_n whatsoever_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o name_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n do_v testify_v to_o be_v such_o and_o require_v they_o to_o receive_v and_o believe_v for_o such_o which_o the_o world_n see_v how_o unwilling_a they_o be_v to_o do_v 4._o the_o like_a art_n he_o use_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o a._n cs._n objection_n pag._n 70._o viz._n that_o protestant_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v make_v choice_n of_o what_o they_o will_v and_o what_o they_o will_v not_o believe_v without_o rely_v upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o answer_v first_o that_o ibidem_fw-la protestant_n make_v no_o choice_n because_o they_o believe_v all_o viz._n all_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o this_o be_v both_o false_a and_o equivocal_a false_a because_o as_o be_v just_a now_o show_v they_o believe_v none_o with_o true_a christian_a faith_n as_o catholic_n ought_v or_o for_o the_o true_a formal_a reason_n of_o divine_a revelation_n right_o apply_v but_o only_o for_o and_o by_o their_o own_o election_n equivocal_a because_o it_o be_v certain_a he_o mean_v by_o article_n of_o faith_n only_o fundamental_a point_n in_o protestant_a sense_n whereas_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o thing_n by_o which_o they_o be_v most_o proper_o distinguish_v from_o heretic_n to_o believe_v all_o article_n or_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n whatsoever_o deliver_v to_o they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o quality_n of_o such_o truth_n as_o she_o deliver_v they_o second_o he_o say_v protestant_n with_o himself_o do_v rely_v upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n true_o so_o far_o as_o they_o please_v they_o do_v but_o not_o so_o far_o as_o they_o ought_v not_o entire_o as_o a._n c._n require_v and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o make_v choice_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v again_o why_o speak_v he_o not_o plain_o if_o the_o bishop_n mean_v real_o and_o effectual_o to_o clear_v himself_o of_o a._n cs._n charge_n of_o do_v in_o this_o case_n as_o all_o other_o heretic_n do_v why_o do_v he_o not_o say_v as_o every_o catholic_a must_v and_o will_v have_v do_v we_o rely_v upon_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o god_n word_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n thereby_o acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o be_v a_o infallible_a mean_n of_o applyinge_a god_n word_n or_o divine_a revelation_n to_o us._n whereas_o to_o ascribe_v infallibility_n only_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o to_o the_o catholic_a church_n what_o be_v it_o in_o effect_n but_o to_o do_v as_o all_o heretic_n do_v and_o tacit_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o real_o and_o in_o truth_n he_o can_v clear_v himself_o of_o the_o imputation_n let_v our_o adversary_n know_v it_o be_v not_o the_o bare_a rely_v upon_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n which_o may_v be_v do_v in_o some_o sort_n though_o she_o be_v believe_v to_o have_v no_o more_o than_o a_o mere_a humane_a moral_a and_o fallible_a authority_n in_o propose_v matter_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v the_o rely_v upon_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n or_o upon_o the_o church_n as_o a_o infallible_a mean_n of_o apply_v divine_a revelation_n which_o can_v only_o make_v they_o infallible_o sure_a both_o of_o scripture_n and_o its_o true_a sense_n a_o c._n therefore_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o bishop_n answer_n but_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o though_o protestant_n in_o some_o thing_n believe_v the_o same_o verity_n which_o catholic_n do_v yet_o they_o can_v be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o same_o infallible_a faith_n which_o catholic_n have_v but_o the_o bishop_n here_o take_v hold_v of_o some_o word_n of_o a._n c._n which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o confession_n that_o protestant_n be_v good_a catholic_n bid_v we_o mark_n a.cs._n phrase_n which_o be_v that_o protestant_n in_o some_o article_n believe_v the_o same_o truth_n which_o other_o good_a catholic_n do_v the_o relatour_n reason_n be_v because_o 14._o the_o word_n other_o can_v be_v
according_a to_o the_o common_a sense_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n whatsoever_o origen_n teach_v in_o other_o place_n certain_a it_o be_v exod._n in_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o bellarmin_n he_o teach_v no_o such_o heresy_n speak_v there_o only_o of_o soul_n be_v expiate_v from_o light_n and_o venial_a sin_n which_o do_v not_o deserve_v hell_n or_o damnation_n eternal_a these_o he_o style_v aliquid_fw-la de_fw-la specie_fw-la plumby_fw-mi they_o be_v in_o faithful_a soul_n as_o a_o mixture_n of_o lead_n or_o some_o base_a metal_n in_o gold_n soul_n be_v defile_v by_o they_o and_o then_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o those_o soul_n which_o have_v much_o gold_n and_o but_o small_a quantity_n of_o lead_n and_o such_o as_o have_v much_o lead_n and_o but_o little_a gold_n he_o say_v of_o they_o both_o that_o they_o shall_v after_o this_o life_n be_v purge_v by_o fire_n more_o or_o less_o for_o a_o long_o or_o short_a time_n of_o pain_n according_a as_o they_o have_v more_o or_o less_o lead_v that_o be_v vice_n and_o sin_n to_o be_v purge_v in_o they_o but_o for_o other_o viz._n such_o as_o be_v all_o lead_n and_o have_v no_o gold_n that_o be_v no_o true_a merit_n of_o virtue_n and_o grace_n in_o they_o they_o say_v origen_n shall_v sink_v down_o into_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n for_o ever_o this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o discourse_n in_o that_o place_n and_o can_v any_o thing_n be_v speak_v more_o clear_o for_o purgatory_n in_o the_o four_o and_o five_o age_n bellarmin_n bring_v more_o plenty_n of_o authority_n and_o the_o relatour_n be_v please_v to_o call_v these_o the_o great_a and_o learned_a age_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o sure_o the_o less_o subject_a to_o be_v seduce_v and_o lead_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o any_o private_a false_a doctrine_n of_o heretic_n 36._o st._n ambrose_n be_v plain_a enough_o for_o purgatory_n for_o speak_v of_o what_o happen_v to_o the_o dead_a after_o this_o life_n he_o say_v some_o shall_v be_v save_v as_o by_o fire_n allude_v manifest_o to_o those_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 3._o if_o any_o man_n work_n burn_v he_o shall_v suffer_v detriment_n but_o he_o himself_o shall_v be_v save_v yet_o so_o as_o by_o fire_n but_o the_o word_n in_o st._n ambrose_n as_o by_o fire_n at_o which_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v to_o stumble_v and_o pretend_v difficulty_n relate_v not_o so_o much_o to_o the_o thing_n or_o fire_v itself_o as_o if_o st._n ambrose_n mean_v not_o ibidem_fw-la true_a fire_n or_o that_o it_o be_v not_o true_o and_o real_o to_o be_v pass_v through_o save_v only_o in_o way_n of_o similitude_n or_o figure_n but_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o person_n to_o wit_n of_o he_o that_o do_v pass_v through_o it_o signify_v that_o those_o who_o be_v cleanse_v after_o this_o life_n be_v not_o burn_v up_o supra_fw-la and_o quite_o destroy_v by_o fire_n as_o those_o in_o hell_n be_v over_o who_o that_o fire_n prevail_v for_o ever_o but_o only_o that_o they_o suffer_v detriment_n for_o a_o while_n like_v he_o that_o pass_v through_o fire_n and_o in_o his_o passage_n have_v his_o hair_n and_o garment_n singe_v thus_o i_o say_v it_o be_v that_o st._n ambrose_n teach_v some_o be_v save_v quasi_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la as_o by_o fire_n i_o add_v that_o suppose_v st._n ambrose_n by_o his_o quasi_fw-la per_fw-la ignem_fw-la do_v not_o intend_v to_o signify_v true_a and_o material_a fire_n but_o only_o metaphorical_a as_o pain_n analogical_a to_o fire_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o thence_o follow_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o signify_v purgatory_n since_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v matter_n of_o necessary_a belief_n that_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n be_v torment_v by_o fire_n in_o that_o sense_n but_o only_o that_o they_o endure_v pain_n and_o dolour_n there_o by_o which_o they_o be_v purge_v and_o which_o for_o their_o extremity_n be_v not_o unfitt_o according_a to_o scripture_n phrase_n express_v and_o signify_v by_o fire_n what_o ever_o the_o mean_n or_o immediate_a instrument_n be_v by_o which_o god_n inflict_v they_o see_v council_n florentin_n in_o lit_fw-fr union_n likewise_o st._n ambrose_n in_o his_o oration_n upon_o the_o death_n of_o that_o good_a emperor_n theodosius_n where_o he_o pray_v for_o his_o soul_n in_o these_o word_n give_v rest_n to_o thy_o servant_n theodosius_n that_o rest_n which_o thou_o have_v theodos._n prepare_v for_o thy_o saint_n and_o prosess_v out_o of_o great_a affection_n to_o he_o that_o he_o will_v never_o leave_v so_o pray_v day_n nor_o night_n till_o by_o his_o prayer_n and_o tear_n he_o have_v bring_v he_o to_o the_o place_n whither_o his_o merit_n call_v he_o to_o the_o holy_a mountain_n where_o be_v life_n everlasting_a if_o you_o object_n that_o st._n ambrose_n in_o this_o very_a oration_n profess_v to_o believe_v that_o theodosius_n be_v already_o in_o heaven_n i_o answer_v out_o of_o his_o charity_n he_o may_v hope_v so_o know_v how_o good_a a_o christian_a that_o emperor_n be_v yet_o not_o be_v certain_a of_o it_o he_o hold_v it_o necessary_a as_o we_o see_v and_o agreeable_a to_o christian_a piety_n to_o pray_v for_o he_o which_o clear_o rather_o confum_n than_o overthrow_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n st._n hierome_n also_o be_v nce_n less_o plain_a for_o a_o purge_a fire_n after_o this_o life_n yea_o so_o express_o that_o he_o make_v it_o to_o differ_v from_o that_o of_o hell_n only_o because_o through_o this_o they_o pass_v as_o the_o israelite_n do_v through_o the_o red_a sea_n but_o through_o that_o of_o hell_n none_o pass_v but_o all_o with_o the_o fine_a egyptidn_n be_v drown_v therein_o and_o perish_v eternal_o as_o for_o the_o word_n arbitramur_fw-la which_o the_o relatour_n catch_v at_o as_o if_o st._n hierome_n thereby_o deliver_v only_o his_o own_o private_a and_o but_o conjectural_a opinion_n and_o not_o any_o matter_n of_o christian_a belief_n we_o answer_v arbiramur_fw-la do_v not_o always_o signify_v opinion_n or_o doubt_v but_o simple_o a_o man_n sense_n or_o judgement_n in_o whatsoever_o matter_n or_o question_v propound_v as_o every_o common_a lexicon_n may_v have_v inform_v he_o do_v the_o word_n signify_v no_o more_o than_o mere_a opinion_n in_o that_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n philip._n 2._o non_fw-la rapinam_fw-la arbitratus_n est_fw-la esse_fw-la se_fw-la aequalem_fw-la deo_fw-la etc_fw-la and_o will_v not_o the_o bishop_n think_v you_o have_v be_v shrewd_o put_v to_o it_o to_o find_v a_o proof_n for_o iustificationby_n payth_v be_v only_o shall_v that_o of_o rom._n 3._o 28._o have_v be_v wrest_v from_o he_o in_o this_o manner_n st._n paul_n be_v here_o only_o at_o his_o arbitramur_fw-la we_o think_v that_o a_o man_n be_v iustisy_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n he_o deliver_v not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o his_o private_a opinion_n leave_v it_o sree_a for_o other_o man_n to_o think_v otherwise_o if_o they_o see_v cause_n however_o the_o reader_n shall_v do_v well_o to_o take_v a_o little_a notice_n of_o the_o bishop_n double_v here_o he_o make_v a_o show_n of_o answer_v the_o text_n which_o bellarmin_n bring_v out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o prove_v purgatory_n but_o in_o stead_n of_o perform_v punctual_o what_o he_o pretend_v be_v content_a to_o pass_v by_o many_o of_o they_o and_o to_o frame_v a_o answer_n only_o to_o some_o few_o which_o he_o think_v fit_a can_v any_o reason_n be_v conceive_v of_o 〈◊〉_d proceed_n but_o only_o that_o he_o find_v the_o omit_v place_n too_o hot_a for_o he_o and_o not_o capable_a of_o any_o colourable_a pervert_v let_v the_o reader_n judge_v in_o part_n by_o this_o one_o of_o st_n hierome_n which_o to_o that_o end_n be_v here_o present_v in_o the_o margin_n verbatim_o as_o it_o stand_v and_o shall_v have_v be_v answer_v in_o bellarmin_n pelagian_a si_fw-la autem_fw-la origenes_n etc_n what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o say_v st._n hierome_n if_o origen_n teach_v that_o all_o reasonable_a creature_n whatsoever_o shall_v be_v save_v at_o last_o and_o that_o even_o the_o devil_n shall_v come_v to_o repentance_n see_v we_o hold_v no_o such_o matter_n but_o confess_v that_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o minister_n be_v damn_v for_o ever_o and_o that_o all_o wicked_a impenitent_a sinner_n shall_v likewise_o eternal_o perish_v and_o that_o such_o christian_n only_o as_o be_v prevent_v in_o sin_n that_o be_v die_v before_o they_o have_v do_v full_a and_o perfect_a penance_n for_o the_o sin_n of_o which_o they_o have_v true_o repent_v shall_v be_v sive_v after_o a_o time_n of_o punishment_n to_o which_o we_o may_v add_v what_o he_o say_v in_o his_o commentary_n prou._n upon_o the_o proverb_n where_o he_o plain_o avouch_v that_o the_o faithful_a after_o death_n may_v be_v absolve_v from_o light_a sin_n in_o which_o they_o die_v
if_o neither_o general_n council_n nor_o any_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v of_o infallible_a credit_n who_o see_v it_o not_o to_o follow_v there_o can_v be_v no_o infallible_a credit_n among_o man_n no_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a church_n even_o in_o point_n fundamental_a for_o see_v no_o testimony_n can_v be_v of_o infallible_a credit_n except_o it_o be_v know_v and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o any_o man_n certain_o to_o know_v either_o who_o those_o be_v that_o make_v up_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o bishop_n sense_n or_o that_o they_o do_v all_o of_o they_o believe_v and_o testify_v such_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n to_o be_v fundamental_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o that_o sense_n to_o be_v of_o infallible_a credit_n or_o to_o give_v infallible_a certainty_n to_o any_o point_n whatsoever_o whether_o fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a whether_o absolute_o or_o not-absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o his_o adversary_n demand_n why_o a_o general_n council_n if_o it_o may_v err_v in_o define_v one_o divine_a truth_n may_v not_o err_v in_o define_v a_o other_o num_fw-la and_o so_o in_o all_o the_o relatour_n answer_v by_o way_n of_o confession_n that_o it_o may_v err_v even_o in_o all_o to_o wit_n of_o like_a nature_n use_v this_o limit_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o all_o of_o like_a nature_n on_o purpose_n to_o avoid_v inconueniency_n and_o that_o he_o may_v upon_o occasion_n take_v the_o advantage_n of_o his_o wont_a distinction_n between_o fundamental_a point_n for_o so_o present_o as_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n he_o tell_v the_o reader_n that_o of_o thing_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o sabuation_n or_o not-fundamentall_a there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o the_o whole_a church_n much_o less_o in_o a_o general_n council_n and_o consequent_o quent_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n with_o he_o though_o a_o general_n council_n be_v suppose_v liable_a to_o error_n in_o all_o such_o point_n as_o well_o as_o in_o any_o one_o but_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o have_v 14._o already_o show_v the_o contrary_a both_o for_o church_n and_o council_n namely_o that_o in_o many_o case_n it_o may_v be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v infallible_a certaintle_n of_o point_n in_o their_o own_o nature_n not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o to_o have_v such_o point_n when_o bring_v into_o controversy_n among_o christian_n infallible_o define_v by_o a_o general_n council_n so_o as_o we_o need_v not_o trouble_v the_o reader_n here_o with_o repetition_n nor_o can_v it_o serve_v his_o turn_n or_o justify_v his_o assertion_n from_o be_v in_o the_o high_a degree_n injurious_a and_o derogatory_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n though_o it_o be_v otherwise_o that_o be_v though_o we_o have_v not_o already_o prove_v a_o necessity_n of_o infalliblydefine_v by_o general_n council_n all_o controverted_a point_n of_o religion_n whatsoever_o whether_o absolute_o or_o not-absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a enough_o the_o relatour_n hold_v that_o general_n council_n may_v possible_o err_v even_o in_o point_n that_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o fundamental_a as_o we_o have_v heretofore_o 24_o observe_v though_o he_o decline_v somewhat_o the_o open_a profession_n of_o such_o a_o doctrine_n but_o this_o suppose_a let_v his_o adherent_n tell_v we_o what_o do_v his_o maxim_n if_o in_o one_o possible_o in_o all_o proclaim_v but_o that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v not_o only_o fall_v into_o error_n in_o define_v some_o one_o or_o other_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n but_o even_o total_o apostatise_v and_o define_v against_o christianity_n itself_o a_o proposition_n sufficient_o confute_v by_o its_o own_o apparent_a impiety_n and_o which_o may_v just_o serve_v for_o a_o second_o instance_n of_o our_o adversary_n sincerity_n when_o they_o profess_v for_n much_o esteem_n and_o reverence_n towards_o general_n council_n 4._o we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n leave_v infallibility_n in_o ibidem_fw-la his_o church_n to_o satisfy_v either_o contentious_a or_o curious_a or_o presumptuous_a spirit_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v to_o impose_v upon_o we_o for_o it_o be_v evident_a enough_o by_o the_o experience_n the_o world_n have_v of_o the_o several_a sect_n and_o heresy_n of_o protestant_n that_o such_o kind_n of_o people_n will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o nothing_o but_o the_o full_a swing_n of_o their_o own_o obstinate_a and_o erroneous_a fancy_n nor_o will_v we_o catholic_n ever_o desert_a the_o confession_n and_o defence_n of_o it_o because_o such_o people_n will_v not_o be_v satisfy_v but_o we_o tell_v they_o christ_n leave_v that_o legacy_n to_o his_o church_n for_o these_o end_n viz._n to_o guide_v the_o humble_a and_o soberminded_n secure_o and_o certain_o in_o the_o right_a way_n of_o salvation_n he_o leave_v it_o also_o to_o curb_v the_o contentious_a to_o restrain_v the_o curious_a and_o to_o give_v sufficient_a check_n to_o such_o presumptuous_a spirit_n as_o shall_v dare_v in_o matter_n of_o such_o high_a and_o difficult_a nature_n as_o the_o truth_n and_o mystery_n of_o religion_n be_v to_o be_v wise_a in_o their_o own_o eye_n and_o to_o prefer_v their_o private_a fancy_n before_o the_o public_a and_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o own_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a superious_a none_o of_o all_o which_o end_n can_v be_v effectual_o attain_v or_o due_o provide_v for_o without_o the_o say_a infallibility_n which_o therefore_o for_o the_o relatour_n or_o any_o other_o out_o of_o private_a opinion_n to_o go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o from_o the_o church_n be_v without_o doubt_n both_o intolerable_a presumption_n and_o error_n especial_o do_v it_o upon_o no_o better_a ground_n and_o pretence_n of_o reason_n than_o he_o lay_v down_o here_o viz._n because_o the_o foundation_n that_o be_v in_o his_o sense_n all_o fundamental_a and_o absolutely-necessary_a doctrine_n be_v so_o strong_o and_o plain_o lay_v down_o ibidem_fw-la in_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n stong_o and_o plain_o lay_v down_o do_v he_o say_v sure_o the_o bishop_n when_o he_o write_v this_o think_v little_a of_o those_o swarm_n of_o arian_n and_o socinian_n heretic_n who_o deny_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o himself_o grant_v to_o be_v fundamental_a to_o say_v those_o point_n be_v so_o strong_o or_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n as_o not_o to_o require_v some_o other_o infallible_a authority_n beside_o scripture_n to_o support_v and_o make_v good_a our_o belief_n of_o they_o must_v needs_o argue_v a_o very_a strong_a prejudice_n to_o any_o man_n that_o due_o consider_v how_o those_o controversy_n be_v handle_v betwixt_o the_o orthodox_n and_o they_o and_o how_o equal_o those_o heretic_n bandy_v text_n with_o their_o adversary_n both_o way_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o well_o upon_o the_o offensive_a as_o defensive_a part_n as_o well_o by_o oppose_v the_o truth_n with_o the_o pretence_n and_o allegation_n of_o many_o scripture-text_n as_o by_o answer_v and_o evade_v what_o ever_o be_v by_o their_o adversary_n argue_v out_o of_o scripture_n for_o it_o or_o against_o they_o so_o as_o indeed_o a_o modest_a man_n to_o borrow_v a_o little_a of_o his_o lordship_n own_o style_n may_v just_o wonder_v whither_o the_o bishop_n will_v have_v we_o to_o run_v for_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o those_o point_n if_o not_o to_o general_n council_n which_o yet_o he_o will_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v we_o to_o do_v 5._o but_o a._n c._n say_v the_o bishop_n have_v more_o question_n to_o ask_v his_o next_o be_v how_o we_o can_v according_a to_o ordinary_a course_n be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o a_o council_n err_v in_o one_o and_o not_o in_o a_o other_o point_n when_o she_o equal_o define_v both_o by_o one_o and_o the_o same_o authority_n to_o be_v divine_a truth_n this_o may_v be_v think_v a_o shrewd_a question_n too_o and_o the_o relatour_n 22._o do_v a_o little_a discover_v himself_o nettle_v by_o it_o in_o tell_v we_o that_o a._n c._n turn_v questionist_n here_o to_o disturb_v the_o business_n viz._n which_o his_o lordship_n have_v with_o mr._n fisher_n and_o indeed_o the_o church_n as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v however_o he_o answer_v the_o question_n by_o distinction_n thus_o if_o a_o general_n council_n err_v say_v he_o either_o it_o err_v in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o in_o thing_n not_o necessary_a if_o in_o the_o first_o sort_n we_o may_v be_v infallible_o assure_v by_o the_o scripture_n the_o creed_n the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n where_o it_o err_v in_o one_o and_o not_o in_o a_o other_o point_n if_o in_o the_o latter_a sort_n it_o be_v not_o
of_o christ_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o the_o falsely-defined_n article_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o true_a and_o that_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o equal_o give_v either_o ground_n or_o power_n to_o define_v truth_n and_o error_n what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o trifle_v tedious_o for_o we_o neither_o say_v nor_o suppose_v any_o such_o thing_n so_o as_o the_o bishop_n by_o his_o discourse_n here_o mere_o labour_v to_o declare_v ignotunt_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la it_o be_v a_o thing_n whole_o unknown_a to_o we_o yea_o impossible_a for_o we_o to_o know_v infallible_o and_o certain_o when_o the_o council_n define_v matter_n equal_o by_o and_o according_a to_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o by_o the_o council_n own_o act_n that_o be_v by_o her_o definition_n so_o express_a and_o frame_v as_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o she_o define_v or_o presum_fw-la d_o herself_o to_o define_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o point_n conformable_o to_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n see_v now_o what_o great_a reason_n the_o relatour_n have_v to_o object_v cunning_a and_o falsity_n to_o a._n c._n in_o this_o business_n our_o adversary_n here_o again_o run_v from_o the_o mark_n a._n c._n 2._o in_o give_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o former_a demand_n speak_v of_o examine_v only_o and_o not_o of_o judge_v as_o his_o word_n show_v if_o we_o leave_v this_o say_v he_o mean_v the_o err_a and_o not-erring_a of_o a_o general_n council_n in_o the_o point_n which_o the_o bishop_n suppose_v she_o define_v fallible_o to_o be_v examineed_a by_o every_o private_a man_n the_o examination_n not_o be_v infallible_a will_v need_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o a_o other_o and_o that_o by_o a_o other_o without_o end_n or_o ever_o come_v to_o infallible_a certainty_n etc_n the._n bishop_n answer_v that_o he_o have_v 〈◊〉_d we_o the_o way_n how_o a_o err_a council_n may_v be_v rectify_v and_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n either_o preserve_v or_o restore_v etc_n viz._n §_o 32._o num_fw-la 5._o §_o 33._o consid_n 7._o num_fw-la 4._o of_o his_o relation_n and_o we_o have_v likewise_o show_v all_o his_o pretend_a way_n to_o be_v devicus_fw-la and_o not_o to_o lead_v to_o the_o end_n he_o aim_v at_o but_o do_v he_o there_o or_o any_o where_o else_o show_v how_o we_o may_v be_v infallible_o assure_v that_o a_o council_n err_v in_o one_o point_n do_v not_o also_o err_v in_o the_o other_o in_o the_o case_n above_o mention_v which_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n his_o adversary_n here_o urge_v he_o withal_o do_v he_o show_v that_o a._n cs._n object_v process_n in_o infinitum_fw-la can_v be_v avoid_v by_o any_o private_a and_o fallible_a examination_n of_o the_o council_n decree_n or_o do_v he_o prescribe_v any_o other_o mean_n of_o examine_v they_o but_o what_o be_v in_o his_o own_o opinion_n fallible_a at_o least_o though_o perhaps_o not_o private_a first_o he_o assign_v scripture_n for_o a_o way_n to_o examine_v a_o council_n definition_n but_o how_o can_v the_o examiner_n be_v sure_o the_o scripture_n bear_v that_o sense_n in_o which_o he_o understand_v it_o and_o not_o that_o in_o which_o the_o council_n understand_v it_o second_o he_o assign_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n but_o how_o can_v he_o be_v sure_a that_o their_o authority_n in_o define_n be_v such_o as_o every_o one_o ought_v to_o obey_v and_o not_o that_o of_o after-council_n three_o he_o assign_v the_o creed_n as_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n but_o do_v he_o mean_v all_o of_o they_o all_o the_o three_o apostolical_a nicen_n athanasian_n by_o his_o word_n it_o seem_v he_o do_v for_o he_o make_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o and_o in_o reason_n it_o be_v necessary_a he_o shall_v see_v it_o be_v evident_a the_o apostle_n creed_n alone_o will_v not_o ferue_v the_o turn_n it_o make_v no_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n nor_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n jncarnation_n etc_n which_o yet_o we_o confident_o presume_v be_v all_o of_o they_o fundamental_a point_n in_o the_o bishop_n creed_n but_o then_o we_o ask_v how_o come_v these_o latter_a creed_n the_o nicen_n and_o athanasian_n to_o be_v infallible_a see_v their_o author_n in_o the_o compose_n of_o they_o be_v fallible_a and_o subject_a to_o error_n in_o the_o relatours_n opinion_n how_o can_v they_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n to_o i_o if_o possible_o in_o themselves_o they_o man_n be_v false_a which_o though_o it_o can_v be_v say_v or_o suspect_v of_o the_o apostle_n nor_o by_o consequence_n of_o their_o creed_n as_o it_o be_v compose_v and_o publish_v by_o they_o yet_o we_o make_v a_o query_n what_o infallible_a authority_n assure_v the_o bishop_n or_o assur_n we_o now_o that_o the_o creed_n which_o we_o have_v at_o present_a and_o common_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v real_o the_o same_o which_o the_o apostle_n first_o compose_v or_o that_o we_o have_v it_o entire_a and_o unchanged_a tradition_n or_o the_o church_n by_o the_o relatour_n ground_n must_v not_o be_v pretend_v here_o see_v they_o be_v both_o of_o they_o fallible_a with_o he_o and_o may_v deceive_v us._n it_o follow_v then_o even_o from_o his_o own_o principle_n that_o he_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v infallible_a certainty_n for_o his_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o as_o for_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n the_o relatour_n must_v needs_o have_v less_o pretence_n of_o reason_n to_o allege_v they_o for_o a_o ground_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n in_o believe_v see_v in_o all_o his_o book_n he_o never_o acknowledge_v nor_o with_o consonancy_n to_o his_o own_o doctrine_n can_v acknowledge_v council_n to_o be_v infallible_a even_o in_o fundamental_n where_o be_v then_o his_o infallible_a certainty_n for_o that_o one_o faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n ibidem_fw-la 6._o how_o far_o the_o relatour_n speak_v truth_n when_o he_o say_v be_v give_v no_o way_n to_o any_o private_a man_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o a_o general_n council_n let_v any_o man_n judge_v that_o consider_v his_o doctrine_n liberty_n to_o examine_v even_o the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n if_o they_o see_v just_a cause_n he_o do_v express_o grant_v to_o private_a person_n yea_o and_o some_o kind_n of_o judgement_n too_o he_o allow_v they_o viz._n that_o of_o discretion_n though_o not_o the_o other_o of_o power_n as_o he_o distinguish_v but_o be_v there_o not_o a_o inake_n lurk_v in_o the_o grass_n here_o may_v we_o not_o fear_v foam_n poison_n under_o the_o gild_a pill_n of_o his_o lordship_n distinction_n this_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n as_o he_o call_v it_o especial_o if_o common_a experience_n and_o practice_n may_v expound_v it_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v less_o than_o a_o power_n assume_v by_o every_o private_a person_n not_o only_o to_o examine_v the_o validity_n of_o such_o reason_n and_o ground_n as_o confirm_v the_o define_v article_n but_o 345._o constant_o to_o deny_v both_o it_o and_o they_o if_o his_o private_a spirit_n or_o discretion_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o have_v better_a reason_n for_o the_o contrary_a or_o that_o the_o council_n definition_n be_v a_o error_n have_v not_o this_o always_o be_v the_o way_n and_o method_n of_o heretic_n to_o what_o end_n do_v they_o at_o any_o time_n put_v themselves_o upon_o this_o scrutiny_n of_o examine_v the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n be_v it_o ever_o for_o any_o other_o reason_n but_o to_o see_v whether_o they_o can_v find_v a_o flaw_n in_o they_o which_o when_o they_o persuade_v themselves_o to_o have_v once_o spy_v do_v they_o not_o present_o in_o their_o own_o vain_a heart_n fall_v to_o despise_v the_o council_n which_o they_o suppose_v to_o err_v as_o ignorant_a and_o oversee_v in_o their_o proper_a business_n do_v they_o not_o usual_o thereupon_o pretend_v scruple_n present_o and_o tenderness_n of_o conscience_n in_o lieu_n of_o necessary_a obedience_n and_o submission_n do_v they_o not_o forthwith_o imagine_v themselves_o enlighten_v person_n and_o soon_o after_o that_o oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o impart_v their_o pretend_a light_n to_o other_o people_n and_o under_o a_o pretence_n of_o inform_v weak_a brethren_n draw_v they_o to_o the_o like_a discreet_a examine_n of_o the_o church_n define_v and_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n with_o themselves_o be_v not_o this_o the_o know_a course_n of_o the_o humour_n be_v not_o this_o satan_n method_n by_o degree_n to_o usher_v in_o public_a and_o general_a defection_n from_o the_o authority_n both_o of_o general_n council_n and_o all_o the_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n see_v in_o effect_n the_o whole_a benefitt_a of_o the_o bishop_n goodly_a devise_n
this_o and_o very_o little_a else_o as_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o age_n and_o time_n show_v be_v the_o fruit_n that_o come_v to_o the_o church_n and_o true_a religion_n by_o allow_v private_a person_n this_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n or_o liberty_n to_o examine_v the_o definition_n of_o general_n council_n not_o to_o urge_v that_o from_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bishop_n it_o necessary_o and_o plain_o follow_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o general_n council_n be_v of_o no_o great_a force_n for_o the_o settle_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o our_o understanding_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n than_o the_o testimony_n and_o resolution_n of_o any_o private_a man_n be_v or_o may_v be_v for_o if_o i_o be_v allow_v to_o examine_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o and_o may_v if_o in_o my_o own_o private_a judgement_n i_o think_v i_o have_v just_a cause_n as_o lawful_o doubt_v and_o deny_v the_o desinition_n of_o the_o one_o as_o the_o resolution_n of_o the_o other_o wherein_o do_v i_o attribute_v more_o to_o a_o general_n council_n than_o i_o do_v to_o a_o private_a person_n seeing_z it_o be_v evident_a that_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o have_v further_a authority_n with_o i_o or_o command_v over_o my_o understanding_n than_o their_o several_a reason_n in_o my_o own_o judgement_n deserve_v and_o that_o if_o the_o reason_n of_o a_o private_a man_n appear_v to_o i_o to_o be_v more_o weighty_a and_o convince_a then_o those_o of_o a_o general_n council_n i_o be_o permit_v free_o and_o without_o sin_n to_o embrace_v the_o say_v private_a person_n opinion_n and_o refuse_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o general_n ibidem_fw-la council_n 7._o his_o assert_v so_o confident_o that_o for_o thing_n necessary_a and_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n we_o need_v no_o assistance_n from_o other_o general_n council_n beside_o the_o four_o first_o seem_v no_o less_o strange_a and_o be_v sufficient_o disprove_v even_o by_o evidence_n of_o fact_n for_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o posteriour_a general_n council_n since_o the_o four_o first_o be_v real_o and_o the_o facto_fw-la find_v necessary_a for_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n what_o do_v our_o adversary_n think_v of_o the_o five_o general_n council_n or_o second_o of_o constantinople_n be_v it_o not_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n what_o this_o council_n define_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o origen_n and_o his_o adherent_n what_o think_v they_o of_o the_o six_o against_o the_o monothelite_n be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o two_o distinct_a will_n in_o christ_n define_v by_o this_o council_n in_o the_o bishop_n opinion_n as_o fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n as_o the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o two_o nature_n define_v by_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n again_o may_v not_o fresh_a error_n arise_v may_v not_o some_o new_a unheardof_n heresy_n spring_v up_o corrupt_v the_o faith_n contradict_v fundamental_a matter_n in_o religion_n if_o they_o do_v shall_v it_o not_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n that_o such_o error_n be_v condemn_v by_o general_n council_n the_o relatour_n pretend_v here_o that_o some_o that_o some_o of_o our_o own_o very_o honest_a and_o learned_a man_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o qualify_v they_o when_o it_o serve_v his_o turn_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o he_o in_o this_o point_n cite_v in_o proof_n hereof_o certain_a word_n as_o he_o pretend_v of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it a_o ancient_a schoole-author_n otherwise_o know_v by_o the_o name_n of_o cardinalis_fw-la cameracensis_fw-la vertsstmum_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v most_o true_a all_o thing_n pertain_v to_o religion_n be_v well_o order_v by_o the_o father_n if_o they_o be_v as_o well_o and_o diligent_o observe_v but_o first_o here_o be_v a_o great_a mistake_n the_o word_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o petrus_n de_fw-it alliaco_fw-it nor_o any_o part_n of_o the_o book_n which_o he_o write_v de_fw-la reformatione_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o present_v to_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n but_o of_o one_o orthuinus_n gravius_fw-la who_o publish_v it_o with_o diverse_a other_o small_a tractate_v of_o that_o nature_n in_o his_o fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetenilarum_fw-la etc_n print_v at_o basil._n 1535._o as_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o peruse_v that_o book_n second_o admit_v they_o be_v or_o that_o petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n do_v in_o his_o treatise_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n yet_o be_v it_o little_a to_o the_o bishop_n purpose_n for_o the_o author_n meaning_n be_v that_o those_o father_n have_v so_o well_o order_v all_o thing_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o mystery_n which_o be_v then_o oppose_v by_o heretic_n that_o if_o they_o be_v well_o observe_v there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o make_v new_a definition_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o same_o doctrine_n but_o he_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o upon_o new_a emergent_a occasion_n other_o general_n council_n may_v be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n nay_o the_o design_n of_o his_o whole_a treatise_n be_v to_o show_v that_o how_o well_o soever_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v order_v and_o determine_v by_o former_a council_n yet_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o long_a schism_n that_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o many_o heresy_n spring_v up_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o other_o general_n council_n to_o wit_n of_o constance_n be_v necessary_a as_o well_o to_o determine_v the_o controverted_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o to_o extirpate_v the_o schism_n and_o all_o other_o abuse_n and_o disorder_n in_o the_o church_n with_o what_o truth_n then_o can_v the_o bishop_n pretend_v that_o petrus_n de_fw-fr aliaco_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n with_o he_o touch_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o make_v any_o new_a determination_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o any_o general_n council_n whatsoever_o after_o the_o four_o first_o and_o as_o for_o 4._o holkot_n what_o ever_o he_o may_v teach_v concern_v heresy_n or_o infidelity_n when_o the_o error_n be_v not_o know_v to_o be_v against_o the_o definition_n or_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o doubtless_o when_o it_o be_v know_v to_o be_v so_o and_o under_o that_o quality_n only_o we_o dispute_v of_o it_o with_o the_o bishop_n neither_o he_o nor_o any_o other_o catholic_a author_n will_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v formal_a heresy_n or_o infidelity_n to_o hold_v it_o st._n 1._o cyprian_n here_o likewise_o allege_v speak_v clear_o of_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v then_o undefined_a and_o be_v not_o till_o a_o long_a while_n after_o define_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a st._n thomas_n speak_v only_o deminis_fw-la 2._o et_fw-la opinionibus_fw-la as_o his_o word_n show_v of_o small_a matter_n and_o private_a opinion_n which_o in_o no_o sort_n concern_v our_o present_a controversy_n and_o wherein_o we_o acknowledge_v with_o the_o relatour_n christian_n man_n may_v differ_v one_o from_o a_o other_o without_o breach_n of_o that_o one_o save_v faith_n or_o christian_a charity_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o for_o matter_n which_o the_o church_n have_v find_v necessary_a for_o prevention_n of_o schism_n preservation_n of_o unity_n and_o for_o vindicate_v or_o clear_n the_o ancient_a receive_a truth_n from_o corruption_n and_o error_n once_o to_o determine_v by_o general_n council_n how_o small_a and_o unfundamentall_a soever_o the_o point_n themselves_o be_v in_o their_o own_o nature_n we_o challenge_v our_o adversary_n to_o produce_v one_o catholic_a author_n of_o good_a name_n ancient_a or_o modern_a who_o teach_v that_o christian_n may_v lawful_o disfer_v in_o such_o point_n after_o their_o say_a definition_n or_o that_o they_o may_v dissent_v and_o believe_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o church_n have_v define_v this_o the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v show_v have_v he_o mean_v to_o deal_v candid_o with_o his_o reader_n and_o not_o mere_o to_o amuse_v he_o by_o fill_v his_o page_n with_o authority_n cite_v to_o no_o purpose_n 8._o have_v not_o the_o apostle_n those_o first-preacher_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o the_o world_n reuclation_n from_o god_n not_o only_o of_o thing_n absolutely-necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o fundamental_n in_o the_o relatours_n sense_n but_o of_o all_o other_o divine_a truth_n belong_v to_o christian_a religion_n and_o do_v not_o they_o deliver_v the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o for_o divine_a truth_n to_o their_o immediate_a successor_n according_a to_o that_o of_o st._n paul_n acts._n 20._o 27._o i_o have_v keep_v back_o nothing_o that_o be_v profitable_a unto_o you_o i_o have_v not_o shun_v to_o declare_v unto_o you_o all_o the_o counsell_n of_o god_n etc_o as_o the_o protestant_n translate_v it_o with_o command_n and_o obligation_n that_o they_o also_o shall_v both_o preach_v and_o testify_v the_o same_o divine_a truth_n to_o the_o world_n entire_o and_o
without_o defaulk_a of_o any_o part_n and_o do_v they_o not_o intend_v that_o the_o like_a shall_v be_v do_v by_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n for_o cuer_v and_o how_o can_v the_o church_n perform_v this_o if_o she_o have_v not_o full_a and_o equal_a authority_n to_o attest_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o to_o condemn_v all_o error_n whatsoever_o contrary_a to_o they_o how_o can_v she_o be_v account_v in_o those_o respect_n the_o pillar_n and_o foundation_n of_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v certain_a even_o by_o the_o exposition_n of_o protestant_n st._n paul_n do_v style_v she_o 1._o tim._n 3._o 15._o or_o how_o be_v she_o say_v to_o be_v a_o faithful_a preserver_n of_o that_o whole_a depositum_fw-la 1._o tim._n 6._o 20._o commit_v to_o her_o charge_n 18._o as_o the_o father_n frequent_o profess_v and_o teach_v she_o to_o be_v i_o say_v how_o be_v it_o possible_a the_o church_n shall_v be_v account_v either_o a_o sure_a foundation_n faithful_a depositary_a guardian_n or_o witness_v of_o all_o divine_a truth_n pertain_v to_o religion_n as_o she_o be_v by_o scripture_n and_o all_o antiquity_n general_o if_o either_o through_o ignorance_n and_o oversight_n she_o herself_o may_v possible_o happen_v to_o corrupt_v it_o as_o the_o bishop_n with_o all_o protestant_n suppose_n she_o may_v or_o that_o she_o want_v any_o necessary_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o prohibit_v they_o that_o will_v whereas_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n affirm_v that_o want_v of_o unity_n and_o peace_n proceed_v too_o often_o even_o where_o religion_n be_v pretend_v from_o man_n and_o their_o humour_n rather_o than_o from_o thing_n and_o error_n to_o be_v find_v in_o they_o i_o grant_v it_o to_o be_v very_o true_a in_o those_o that_o will_v not_o rely_v ibidem_fw-la upon_o the_o church_n judgement_n and_o authority_n but_o upon_o their_o own_o reason_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o protestant_n and_o all_o heretic_n before_o they_o and_o if_o the_o bishop_n adherent_n think_v it_o to_o be_v otherwise_o let_v they_o fair_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o disagreement_n which_o be_v at_o present_a 〈◊〉_d the_o english-protestant_n and_o roman-catholique_a church_n proceed_v not_o original_o from_o the_o bad_a humour_n of_o english_a man_n as_o much_o as_o the_o disagreement_n betwixt_o the_o prelatical_a and_o sectarian_n party_n in_o the_o say_a church_n of_o england_n proceed_v not_o from_o the_o prelate_n and_o their_o adherent_n but_o mere_o from_o the_o sectary_n who_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v allege_v scripture_n abundant_o and_o accuse_v the_o english_a prelatical_a church_n of_o error_n and_o superstition_n both_o in_o doctrine_n discipline_n and_o worship_n no_o less_o than_o they_o accuse_v we_o of_o the_o same_o fault_n 9_o but_o the_o relatour_n will_v now_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n why_o it_o can_v 24._o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n to_o have_v power_n infallible_o to_o determine_v point_n not-fundamentall_a in_o protestant_a sense_n although_o even_o by_o his_o own_o supposition_n they_o be_v divine_a truth_n and_o their_o opposite_a error_n dangerous_a to_o soul_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o st._n paul_n tell_v we_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 19_o oportet_fw-la hoereses_n esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n whence_o he_o conclude_v it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n christ_n never_o leave_v such_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n as_o be_v able_a to_o prevent_v they_o or_o such_o a_o master_a power_n in_o his_o church_n as_o be_v able_a to_o over-awe_n they_o but_o i_o answer_v what_o consequence_n be_v here_o there_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d there_o will_v avoidable_o be_v heresy_n crgo_v the_o church_n have_v not_o full_a power_n to_o condemn_v they_o and_o to_o vindicate_v the_o contrary_a truth_n to_o i_o the_o contrary_n seem_v far_o more_o just_o and_o right_o conclude_v viz._n that_o because_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n ever_o and_o anon_o spring_v up_o among_o christian_n therefore_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v all_o necessary_a power_n to_o obuiate_v their_o proceed_n and_o to_o preserve_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o integrity_n of_o true_a faith_n which_o as_o we_o have_v often_o show_v can_v be_v do_v if_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n lawful_o assemble_v in_o general_n council_n to_o that_o purpose_n shall_v either_o themselves_o happen_v to_o crre_v or_o to_o determine_v the_o truth_n withless_a then_o absolute_a and_o unquestionable_a certainty_n but_o as_o to_o the_o objection_n itself_o the_o bishop_n clear_o mistake_v our_o meaning_n when_o we_o say_v the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o prevent_v schism_n and_o heresy_n it_o be_v not_o mean_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v at_o all_o but_o so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v without_o just_a control_n and_o censure_n so_o as_o they_o shall_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v lawful_o and_o reasonable_o to_o be_v nor_o so_o far_o prevail_v by_o their_o be_v as_o to_o perverte_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n heresy_n may_v be_v but_o the_o faithful_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v due_a care_n of_o themselves_o and_o perform_v their_o duty_n well_o towards_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n shall_v be_v ever_o full_o secure_v against_o their_o snare_n and_o none_o deceive_v by_o they_o at_o least_o not_o unto_o damnation_n or_o guilt_n of_o mortal_a sin_n but_o such_o as_o through_o their_o own_o voluntary_a fault_n and_o negligence_n suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v mist_v by_o they_o can_v his_o lordship_n possible_o be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n susficient_o prevent_v heresy_n and_o schism_n on_o her_o part_n when_o she_o certain_o declare_v the_o truth_n and_o right_o determin_n the_o matter_n about_o which_o christian_n begin_v to_o contend_v and_o to_o be_v divide_v in_o opinion_n one_o from_o another_o when_o the_o due_o censure_n and_o anathematize_v the_o contrary_a error_n last_o when_o she_o use_v all_o lawful_a and_o practicable_a mean_n within_o her_o power_n to_o prevent_v and_o extirpate_v they_o this_o be_v prevention_n both_o necessary_a and_o also_o sufficient_a on_o the_o church_n part_n and_o this_o be_v do_v if_o the_o effect_n follow_v not_o it_o must_v not_o be_v ascribe_v to_o want_v of_o any_o spiritual_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n but_o only_o to_o the_o incorrigible_a pride_n obstinacy_n and_o malice_n of_o her_o rebellious_a child_n which_o nothing_o but_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n can_v over-rule_v and_o master_n a_o thing_n most_o clear_a and_o manifest_a in_o all_o civil_a commonwealth's_a prudent_o institute_v wherein_o when_o sedition_n and_o rebellion_n happen_v to_o arise_v and_o they_o do_v happen_v sometime_o in_o the_o very_o best_a wise_a man_n do_v not_o think_v it_o be_v for_o want_n of_o any_o requisite_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o chief_a magistrate_n or_o state_n to_o command_v and_o compel_v all_o man_n to_o be_v obedient_a to_o law_n but_o that_o it_o proceed_v from_o those_o unavoidable_a distemper_n which_o by_o corruption_n and_o frailty_n of_o humane_a nature_n be_v incident_a to_o man_n mind_n and_o which_o can_v neither_o be_v foresee_v nor_o quell_v in_o a_o instant_n by_o any_o power_n on_o earth_n i_o add_v that_o the_o relatours_n objection_n oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la etc._n etc._n have_v as_o much_o force_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n not_o infallible_a even_o in_o point_n fundamental_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o will_v exclude_v the_o necessity_n of_o any_o infallible_a power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o prevent_v error_n contrary_a to_o such_o point_n which_o be_v repugnant_a even_o to_o the_o bishop_n own_o assertion_n for_o the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n there_o must_v be_v heresy_n be_v as_o true_a of_o error_n contrary_a to_o fundamental_a point_n as_o other_z and_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n more_o or_o less_o in_o all_o age_n in_o matter_n absolute_o necessary_a as_o well_o as_o in_o thing_n not_o necessary_a yea_o sure_o according_a to_o the_o more_o common_a principle_n and_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n such_o error_n only_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v esteem_v heresy_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o fundamental_a and_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n in_o regard_n they_o say_v that_o save_v faith_n may_v consist_v with_o all_o other_o error_n whatsoever_o so_o that_o if_o because_o heresy_n must_v be_v or_o will_v be_v the_o bishop_n will_v conclude_v there_o be_v neither_o infallible_a certainty_n nor_o any_o mean_n of_o infallibbe_n certainty_n in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o know_v and_o determine_v the_o truth_n in_o such_o point_n as_o be_v contest_v by_o heretic_n as_o he_o do_v most_o plain_o and_o evident_o pretend_v to_o conclude_v by_o his_o allegation_n of_o this_o text_n he_o must_v in_o consequence_n also_o confess_v there_o be_v no_o infailible_n
certainty_n nor_o mean_n of_o infallible_a certainty_n less_o in_o the_o church_n for_o the_o teaehing_n and_o belief_n of_o any_o point_n at_o all_o even_o of_o the_o most_o absolute_o and_o universal_o necessary_a in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o paragraph_n he_o tax_v those_o of_o pride_n who_o will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d their_o private_a judgement_n where_o with_o good_a conscience_n they_o may_v and_o aught_o we_o may_v easy_o divine_v who_o he_o mean_v but_o be_v sure_a he_o can_v not_o exempt_v himself_o and_o his_o adherent_n from_o the_o sting_n of_o that_o censure_n though_o he_o endeavour_n it_o by_o say_v it_o be_v no_o pride_n not_o to_o submit_v to_o know_a and_o gross_a errout_n very_o good_a but_o we_o ask_v what_o sect_n or_o company_n of_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n use_v not_o this_o plea_n do_v not_o even_o the_o artans_fw-la socinian_n and_o 〈◊〉_d arian_n themselves_o urge_v it_o as_o earnest_o against_o protestant_n as_o protestant_n do_v against_o we_o so_o that_o 〈◊〉_d the_o relatour_n pretend_v that_o the_o convocation_n of_o english_a prelate_n and_o clergy_n adherent_a to_o they_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d dictatour_n in_o the_o business_n of_o religion_n over_o all_o christendom_n beside_o and_o determine_v uncontroulable_o what_o be_v what_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v gross_a and_o dangerous_a error_n i_o see_v not_o what_o his_o discourse_n here_o signify_v but_o whereas_o himself_o object_n error_n to_o three_o general_n council_n at_o once_o viz._n those_o of_o lateran_n constance_n and_o trent_n yea_o such_o error_n as_o in_o his_o opinion_n give_v a_o great_a and_o more_o urgent_a cause_n of_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n than_o any_o pride_n of_o man_n we_o shall_v not_o for_o the_o present_n tax_v he_o with_o want_n of_o modesly_a we_o only_o tell_v his_o follower_n it_o be_v as_o yet_o only_o say_v without_o prove_v and_o they_o can_v but_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o point_n of_o morality_n it_o be_v oftentimes_o very_o sufficient_a and_o very_a bone_a for_o a_o man_n bare_o to_o deny_v a_o crime_n that_o be_v object_v to_o he_o but_o it_o be_v never_o sufficient_a nor_o ever_o honest_a bare_o to_o object_v it_o beside_o we_o have_v much_o more_o reason_n to_o think_v that_o he_o a_o private_a doctor_n be_v mistake_v in_o his_o censure_n then_o that_o those_o three_o general_n council_n be_v deceive_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o define_v 10._o his_o acknowledgement_n that_o it_o be_v no_o work_n for_o his_o pen_n to_o 25._o determine_v how_o far_o the_o necessary_a point_n of_o soule-saving_a faith_n extend_v will_v have_v be_v ingenuous_a enough_o have_v he_o not_o make_v it_o intricate_a and_o meander-like_a by_o apply_v it_o to_o different_a person_n but_o keep_v it_o in_o its_o absolute_a nature_n viz._n what_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o all_o in_o which_o sense_n he_o have_v treat_v the_o point_n all_o this_o time_n now_o sure_a it_o the_o determine_v this_o main_a and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v cardinal_n difficulty_n be_v not_o work_v for_o his_o pen_n neither_o be_v it_o of_o any_o right_n work_n for_o his_o pen_n to_o draw_v upon_o himself_o and_o his_o party_n a_o necessity_n of_o at_o least_o be_v call_v upon_o and_o require_v to_o do_v it_o who_o counsel_v they_o contrary_a unto_o and_o without_o the_o example_n of_o any_o orthodox_n christian_n to_o restrain_v the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o determine_v controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o they_o know_v not_o what_o or_o to_o such_o point_n as_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a certain_o to_o know_v and_o determine_v for_o as_o it_o be_v that_o only_a which_o bring_v our_o unanswerable_a demand_n upon_o they_o so_o till_o they_o have_v answer_v 〈◊〉_d and_o clear_o determine_v what_o those_o simple_o or_o absolute_o necessary_a point_n be_v in_o which_o the_o church_n can_v err_v we_o must_v proclaim_v they_o leave_v all_o christian_n that_o well_o consider_v what_o and_o upon_o what_o ground_n they_o believe_v vnsatisfy_v uncertaino_o and_o doubtful_a how_o far_o or_o in_o what_o matter_n they_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v what_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v divine_a truth_n and_o yet_o withal_o teach_v they_o that_o they_o neither_o can_v with_o true_a infallible_a faith_n nor_o aught_o nor_o lawful_o may_v belecue_v she_o in_o all_o she_o teach_v because_o in_o much_o of_o it_o she_o cyther_o err_v or_o be_v subject_a to_o err_v and_o teach_v they_o falsehood_n yea_o gross_a and_o dangerous_a error_n in_o stead_n of_o divine_a truth_n which_o if_o it_o be_v just_a or_o reasonable_a in_o our_o adversary_n to_o do_v or_o tend_v to_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o perplex_v the_o mind_n of_o all_o conseientious_a christian_n with_o inextricable_a doubt_n and_o scruple_n 〈◊〉_d the_o indifferent_a reader_n judge_v nor_o can_v he_o to_o any_o purpose_n help_v himself_o here_o by_o what_o st._n thomas_n ibidem_fw-la and_o our_o author_n teach_v concern_v point_n precise_o necessary_a necessitate_v medij_fw-la for_o neither_o will_v the_o bishop_n stand_v to_o that_o scantling_n as_o he_o call_v it_o that_o be_v he_o will_v not_o dare_v to_o teach_v there_o be_v no_o more_o fundamental_a point_n in_o his_o sense_n than_o our_o divine_n teach_v there_o be_v point_n necessary_a necessitate_v medij_fw-la nor_o be_v the_o case_n alike_o for_o that_o doctrine_n have_v place_n only_o where_o invincible_a ignorance_n excuse_n from_o further_a knowledge_n and_o from_o express_a belief_n whereas_o here_o both_o sufficient_a proposition_n and_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o all_o article_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v suppose_v so_o as_o no_o ignorance_n can_v be_v plead_v in_o excuse_n of_o the_o party_n that_o err_v and_o yet_o they_o teach_v that_o of_o these_o article_n all_o equal_o so_o far_o as_o concern_v the_o church_n define_v and_o propound_v some_o may_v be_v refuse_v but_o all_o the_o rest_n must_v of_o necessity_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n be_v believe_v with_o divine_a and_o infallible_a faith_n nevertheless_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o be_v not_o this_o daedalus-like_a to_o lead_v man_n into_o the_o midst_n of_o a_o labyrinth_n and_o there_o leave_v they_o 11._o in_o the_o follow_a paragraph_n the_o relatour_n do_v little_a else_o but_o dally_v with_o his_o reader_n in_o the_o equivocation_n of_o word_n catholic_a roman_a church_n particular_a universal_a one_o holy_a mother-church_n 26._o etc_n upon_o all_o which_o he_o make_v a_o brief_a descant_n at_o pleasure_n but_o we_o answer_v much_o be_v say_v nothing_o prove_v nor_o so_o much_o as_o offer_v to_o be_v prove_v to_o any_o purpose_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v and_o have_v often_o declare_v be_v not_o only_o one_o but_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v she_o be_v holy_a all_o her_o doctrine_n define_v all_o her_o sacrament_n all_o her_o institute_n be_v holy_a and_o tend_v to_o holiness_n in_o the_o sense_n that_o we_o maintain_v she_o be_v catholic_a or_o universal_a both_o for_o extent_n of_o communion_n and_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o continue_a succession_n of_o pastor_n there_o be_v no_o christian_a country_n in_o the_o world_n where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n and_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n nor_o do_v the_o roman_a church_n now_o teach_v any_o thing_n as_o faith_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o what_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ever_o teach_v last_o we_o have_v show_v that_o even_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o first_o sive-hundred_n year_n after_o christ_n the_o faithful_a own_a subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o a_o necessity_n to_o communicate_v with_o she_o in_o point_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n we_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v sometime_o by_o antiquity_n style_v a_o mother-church_n and_o the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n but_o we_o say_v withal_o it_o be_v mere_o a_o title_n of_o honour_n and_o dignity_n give_v she_o probable_o for_o this_o reason_n viz._n because_o the_o first_o foundation_n as_o it_o be_v of_o christian_a religion_n be_v lay_v there_o by_o the_o preach_n and_o passion_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o because_o from_o thencë_n the_o first_o sound_n and_o publication_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v make_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o gentile_n it_o be_v no_o title_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n proper_o so_o call_v as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o our_o adversary_n think_v it_o be_v let_v they_o show_v what_o authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a the_o church_n or_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n exercise_v over_o all_o other_o church_n either_o before_o it_o be_v
teach_v that_o the_o sea_n of_o rome_n be_v ibidem_fw-la the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n why_o his_o reason_n be_v because_o that_o there_o be_v at_o this_o time_n a_o open_a schism_n at_o rome_n two_o bishop_n cornelius_n and_o novatian_n two_o congregation_n which_o respective_o attend_v and_o observe_v they_o so_o that_o a_o perplex_a question_n must_v needs_o have_v divide_v their_o thought_n which_o of_o these_o two_o have_v be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catbolique_a church_n i_o answer_v first_o suppose_v it_o have_v be_v for_o a_o while_n real_o doubtful_a to_o st._n cyprian_a and_o those_o of_o africa_n which_o of_o the_o two_o bishop_n of_o rome_n cornelius_n or_o novatianus_n be_v the_o right_n and_o lawful_a bishop_n yet_o to_o those_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o understand_v the_o true_a and_o certain_a carriage_n of_o affair_n touch_v their_o respective_a election_n it_o be_v not_o doubtful_a at_o rome_n without_o question_n the_o truth_n concern_v this_o mater_fw-la be_v sufficient_o know_v now_o we_o say_v st._n cyprian_n intent_n in_o the_o word_n allege_v be_v not_o precise_o to_o exhort_v people_n to_o adhere_v either_o to_o cornelius_n or_o novatianus_n in_o particular_a and_o by_o name_n but_o to_o adhere_v to_o he_o they_o shall_v for_o certain_a find_v by_o the_o general_a report_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o faithful_a at_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v lawful_o and_o canonical_o choose_v bishop_n of_o that_o church_n and_o not_o to_o join_v themselves_o to_o he_o that_o be_v choose_v schismatical_o second_o i_o answer_v it_o be_v not_o so_o certain_a as_o the_o relatour_n suppose_v whether_o at_o the_o write_n of_o this_o very_a epistle_n it_o be_v real_o doubtful_a to_o st._n cyprian_n himself_o which_o of_o the_o two_o cornelius_z or_o novatianus_n be_v the_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o rome_n yea_o unless_o the_o publisher_n of_o st._n cyprian_n epistle_n have_v by_o mistake_n invert_v the_o order_n of_o they_o the_o contrary_a seem_v to_o be_v clear_a because_o by_o the_o 41._o 42._o 44._o all_o precedent_n to_o this_o allege_a by_o the_o bishop_n it_o manifest_o appear_v that_o both_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n have_v be_v already_o by_o intelligence_n from_o rome_n so_o full_o satisfy_v touch_v the_o lawful_a election_n of_o cornelius_n that_o they_o both_o deny_v 41._o communion_n to_o the_o legate_n of_o novatian_n send_v into_o africa_n ibid._n and_o also_o refuse_v to_o hear_v their_o accusation_n against_o cornelius_n though_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o novatian_a faction_n in_o africa_n they_o think_v good_a to_o send_v their_o legate_n to_o rome_n to_o be_v more_o paticular_o inform_v of_o the_o business_n 42._o and_o do_v not_o require_v the_o people_n of_o their_o respective_a province_n public_o to_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n for_o pope_n till_o they_o have_v receive_v the_o report_n of_o their_o own_o legate_n from_o rome_n now_o this_o suppose_a what_o shall_v hinder_v but_o st._n cyprian_a may_v private_o exhort_v passenger_n to_o rome_n not_o only_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n but_o even_o cornelius_n by_o name_n notwithstanding_o the_o schism_n that_o be_v by_o some_o raise_v against_o he_o wherefore_o the_o bishop_n follow_v devise_n viz._n that_o st._n cyprian_a shall_v require_v all_o stranger_n travel_v to_o rome_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n there_o that_o be_v to_o communicate_v neither_o with_o cornelius_n nor_o novatianus_n till_o they_o see_v how_o the_o catholic_a church_n will_v incline_v to_o approve_v or_o disapprove_v their_o respective_a election_n to_o speak_v truth_n be_v but_o a_o airy_a fiction_n it_o be_v by_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n presume_v to_o be_v even_o then_o sufficient_o know_v and_o certain_a at_o rome_n which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v lawful_o choose_v bishop_n otherwise_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v they_o send_v their_o legate_n out_o of_o africa_n to_o be_v certain_o inform_v of_o the_o truth_n touch_v that_o matter_n i_o add_v when_o or_o how_o can_v the_o catholic_a church_n declare_v her_o judgement_n in_o the_o case_n so_o authentical_o as_o to_o oblige_v all_o person_n to_o acquiescence_n will_v the_o bishop_n have_v have_v all_o christian_a stranger_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n both_o from_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o till_o a_o general_n council_n have_v determine_v the_o controversy_n or_o how_o can_v a_o council_n possible_o determine_v it_o but_o by_o and_o upon_o such_o ibidem_fw-la ground_n as_o do_v already_o make_v it_o unquestionable_a at_o rome_n which_o of_o the_o two_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n we_o acknowledge_v indeed_o with_o baronius_n here_o cite_v by_o the_o 64._o bishop_n that_o st._n cyprian_a and_o his_o colleague_n do_v for_o a_o while_n suspend_v their_o communion_n from_o both_o party_n which_o upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o may_v just_o do_v yet_o not_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o relatour_n too_o hasty_o infer_v for_o it_o be_v for_o a_o while_n as_o it_o be_v sede_fw-la vacant_a to_o they_o in_o africa_n till_o they_o have_v receive_v sufficient_a information_n who_o be_v lawful_a bishop_n of_o that_o church_n which_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o have_v obtain_v they_o show_v by_o their_o practice_n how_o necessary_a they_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o st._n cyprian_n then_o do_v very_o well_o to_o exhort_v all_o christian_n that_o have_v occasion_n to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o stick_v close_o to_o the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v not_o to_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o schism_n or_o to_o side_n with_o the_o schismatic_n but_o constant_o to_o adhere_v to_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o as_o this_o be_v a_o proper_a exhortation_n for_o st._n cyprian_a to_o make_v so_o be_v it_o also_o a_o just_a and_o sufficient_a apology_n for_o he_o to_o cornelius_n as_o show_v that_o he_o do_v neither_o disowne_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a nor_o slight_v the_o true_a bishop_n thereof_o whereas_o if_o we_o suppose_v he_o to_o mean_v only_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n exposition_n of_o his_o word_n that_o people_n shall_v acknowledge_v and_o hold_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o general_a but_o suspend_v their_o communion_n both_o with_o novatian_n and_o cornelius_n too_o till_o the_o church_n herself_o shall_v determine_v the_o controversy_n what_o respect_n do_v he_o show_v to_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o its_o lawful_a bishop_n more_o than_o he_o do_v to_o a_o heretical_a party_n and_o the_o schismatique_n which_o they_o follow_v beside_o this_o imaginary_a suspension_n of_o communion_n till_o the_o catholic_a church_n shall_v declare_v her_o approbation_n or_o disapprovement_n of_o the_o say_a election_n be_v clear_o refute_v by_o the_o very_a epistle_n which_o the_o bishop_n cite_v wherein_o st._n cyprian_n and_o his_o colleague_n profess_v in_o esfect_a that_o they_o do_v not_o expect_v any_o such_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o upon_o the_o first_o report_n or_o answer_v of_o their_o legate_n from_o rome_n touch_v the_o election_n pass_v letter_n be_v present_o to_o be_v send_v to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o suspend_v their_o communion_n no_o long_o cornel._n but_o to_o acknowledge_v cornelius_n the_o lawfully-elect_a bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o communion_n to_o be_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o by_o the_o way_n good_a reader_n i_o pray_v observe_v and_o judge_v whether_o st._n cyprian_n do_v not_o here_o sufficient_o expound_v himself_o and_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n when_o speak_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o plain_o pronounce_v that_o it_o be_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v with_o we_o and_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o relatours_n gloss_n that_o it_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o see_v the_o form_n or_o at_o least_o the_o most_o formal_a and_o essential_a property_n of_o the_o church_n be_v unity_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n if_o the_o pope_n communion_n be_v that_o which_o give_v unity_n to_o the_o church_n and_o tie_v all_o together_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n as_o st._n cyprian_n here_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v sure_a no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o to_o think_v it_o deserve_v not_o to_o be_v style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o urge_v that_o in_o these_o very_a epistle_n st._n cyprian_n blame_v the_o schismatic_n at_o rome_n for_o their_o endeavour_v to_o create_v a_o new_a bishop_n there_o against_o one_o that_o be_v already_o lawful_o elect_v and_o ordain_v upon_o this_o ground_n
church_n be_v make_v one_o and_o do_v in_o effect_n continue_v one_o and_o the_o same_o catholic_a primitive_a and_o apostolical_a church_n or_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n first_o of_o all_o found_v so_o that_o till_o our_o adversary_n either_o disprove_v this_o gloss_n or_o give_v a_o better_a we_o shall_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o assert_v that_o in_o tertullia_n judgement_n as_o well_o as_o st._n cyprian_n rome_n or_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v well_o be_v term_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o all_o other_o church_n because_o none_o remain_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o by_o unity_n with_o rome_n and_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o nor_o matter_n it_o that_o pamelius_n reckon_v up_o diverse_a church_n ibidem_fw-la which_o he_o call_v original_a and_o mother-churche_n before_o the_o roman_a for_o as_o to_o the_o name_n original_a and_o mother-churche_n we_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n when_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o for_o the_o thing_n viz._n that_o he_o reckon_v rome_n in_o the_o last_o place_n as_o if_o therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o be_v account_v inferior_a to_o those_o other_o we_o answer_v his_o lordship_n will_v never_o have_v make_v this_o observation_n margin_n twice_o have_v he_o first_o consult_v the_o master_n of_o ceremony_n about_o it_o for_o he_o certain_o will_v have_v resolve_v he_o that_o in_o marshal_v dignity_n subordinate_a one_o to_o a_o other_o as_o the_o case_n be_v here_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n mention_v by_o pamelius_n viz._n smyrna_n philippi_n corinth_n ephesus_n be_v subordinate_a to_o rome_n the_o principal_a or_o sovereign_n be_v to_o be_v rank_v in_o the_o last_o place_n do_v pamelius_n or_o tertullian_n himself_o acknowledge_v the_o like_a privilege_n and_o authority_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o belong_v to_o those_o other_o original_a and_o mother-churche_n which_o they_o do_v to_o the_o roman_a as_o for_o that_o irreligious_a act_n of_o the_o emperor_n adrian_n which_o the_o bishop_n mention_n it_o be_v but_o too_o much_o imitate_v by_o protestant_n for_o as_o he_o set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o jupiter_n in_o the_o very_a place_n where_o christ_n suffer_v and_o as_o he_o profane_v bethlehem_n with_o erect_v the_o temple_n of_o adonis_n as_o think_v to_o destroy_v christian_a religion_n by_o lay_v waist_n the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v first_o found_v so_o do_v our_o adversary_n plant_v all_o their_o battery_n against_o rome_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o if_o they_o can_v beat_v down_o that_o chief_a fortress_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n they_o shall_v soon_o destroy_v our_o whole_a church_n but_o as_o that_o heathenish_a emperor_n adrian_n do_v so_o do_v these_o enemy_n of_o god_n and_o true_a religion_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a for_o the_o church_n be_v invincible_a the_o gate_n of_o hell_n itself_o can_v prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 60_o as_o st._n austin_n long_o since_o observe_v all_o heresy_n whatsoever_o do_v indeed_o go_v out_o of_o she_o be_v cut_n off_o from_o she_o as_o unprofitable_a branch_n from_o the_o vine_n but_o the_o church_n herself_o always_o remain_v in_o her_o root_n in_o own_o vine_n in_o her_o own_o charity_n viz._n by_o remain_v always_o unite_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o most_o principal_a and_o proper_a sense_n then_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o only_a be_v both_o the_o rock_n and_o root_n of_o the_o church-catholique_a as_o be_v by_o institution_n and_o appointment_n of_o christ_n principal_o and_o sole_o ordain_v to_o supply_v the_o place_n and_o perform_v the_o office_n both_o of_o rock_n and_o root_n to_o all_o other_o church_n whatsoever_o how_o be_v it_o in_o a_o less_o principal_a and_o limit_a sense_n in_o reference_n to_o particular_n only_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o some_o other_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a may_v sometime_o be_v be_v the_o style_n that_o be_v be_v call_v rock_n or_o root_n thus_o for_o example_n we_o confess_v st._n austin_n cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n style_v the_o eastern_a church_n the_o root_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o african_n 170._o pars_fw-la donati_n non_fw-la consider_v at_o se_fw-fr praecisant_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d radice_n orientalium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la but_o the_o reason_n be_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v either_o because_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v a_o large_a and_o more_o noble_a part_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a than_o the_o african_n be_v or_o because_o the_o african_n first_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o they_o as_o st._n austin_n suprâ_fw-la also_o testify_v in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o not_o that_o they_o be_v such_o a_o root_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n as_o kome_n be_v or_o in_o all_o property_n pertain_v to_o a_o root_n equal_a to_o rome_n that_o be_v only_o the_o relatour_n voluntary_a supposition_n and_o mistake_a inference_n 4._o nor_o will_v his_o speculation_n hold_v whereby_o he_o distinguish_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n from_o its_o existence_n and_o make_v that_o unity_n which_o be_v a_o attribute_n of_o ens_fw-la to_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o first_o in_o true_a philosophy_n the_o essence_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o real_o 〈◊〉_d from_o its_o existence_n second_o because_o in_o this_o sense_n of_o he_o the_o church_n shall_v rather_o be_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o unity_n than_o unity_n the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o church_n for_o unity_n as_o a_o attribute_n flow_v from_o ens_fw-la and_o not_o ens_fw-la from_o it_o as_o like_o wise_a in_o natural_a philosophy_n all_o property_n flow_v from_o their_o subject_n and_o not_o their_o subject_n from_o they_o three_o what_o unity_n do_v our_o adversary_n here_o speak_v of_o when_o he_o tell_v we_o ens_fw-la and_o vnum_fw-la be_v and_o be_v one_o be_v convertible_a this_o be_v metaphysical_a unity_n only_o entitative_a unity_n but_o be_v that_o all_o the_o unity_n the_o bishop_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v necessary_a in_o the_o church_n if_o not_o why_o be_v that_o only_o mention_v here_o and_o no_o other_o christian_n when_o they_o dispute_v and_o teach_v that_o the_o church_n be_v one_o understand_v sure_a a_o further_a unity_n than_o this_o namely_o a_o moral_a unity_n a_o unity_n of_o mind_n and_o judgement_n touch_v the_o veritye_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o not_o only_o a_o unity_n of_o nature_n definition_n and_o essence_n this_o therefore_o be_v 〈◊〉_d to_o equivocate_v or_o mistake_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o business_n but_o we_o pass_v it_o by_o as_o likewise_o we_o do_v the_o remaynder_n of_o the_o paragraph_n as_o be_v farce_v only_o with_o assertion_n without_o prose_n or_o with_o proof_n against_o no_o adversary_n 5._o as_o st._n cyprian_a ought_v to_o be_v commend_v for_o his_o exhort_v those_o who_o cravel_v to_o rome_n to_o acknowledge_v and_o maintain_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a church_n so_o do_v the_o jesuit_n well_o to_o persuade_v the_o lady_n to_o do_v the_o same_o of_o who_o counsel_n 1._o by_o the_o report_n of_o mr._n 〈◊〉_d she_o make_v thus_o far_o good_a use_n that_o upon_o this_o and_o the_o precedent_a conference_n the_o rest_v in_o judgement_n full_o satisfy_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n faith_n yet_o upon_o frailty_n and_o fear_n to_o offend_v the_o king_n she_o yield_v for_o a_o while_n to_o go_v to_o church_n for_o which_o she_o be_v 〈◊〉_d very_o sorry_a the_o relatour_n seem_v willing_a enough_o to_o have_v 〈◊〉_d all_o this_o if_o he_o have_v know_v how_o but_o not_o be_v able_a to_o do_v that_o he_o content_v himself_o to_o 〈◊〉_d it_o as_o suspicious_a and_o 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o can_v 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v so_o or_o no._n he_o 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈◊〉_d that_o honourable_a 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o conscience_n and_o judgement_n nor_o 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v fear_n or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o other_o 〈◊〉_d that_o make_v hor_o yield_v to_o go_v to_o church_n nor_o how_o sorry_a she_o be_v for_o it_o nor_o who_o can_v testify_v that_o sorrow_n the_o bishop_n know_v none_o of_o all_o these_o particular_n well_o it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o other_o do_v and_o do_v know_v they_o however_o he_o confident_o tell_v we_o the_o lady_n will_v more_o 〈◊〉_d be_v able_a to_o answer_v to_o god_n for_o her_o come_n to_o church_n then_o for_o leave_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o which_o when_o a.c._n take_v modest_a exception_n and_o only_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o neither_o do_v prove_v nor_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v lawful_a for_o one_o especinl_o so_o persuade_v as_o the_o lady_n be_v to_o go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n the_o bishop_n sharp_o reply_v there_o be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d deal_v of_o cunning_a and_o as_o much_o malice_n in_o this_o passage_n of_o a._n c._n but_o where_o i_o pray_v 〈◊〉_d either_o the_o
cunning_a or_o malice_n of_o this_o speech_n or_o what_o do_v it_o contain_v but_o plain_o real_a truth_n and_o 〈◊〉_d ibidem_fw-la a._n c._n have_v prove_v through_o his_o whole_a discourse_n as_o we_o likewise_o have_v 〈◊〉_d to_o do_v in_o this_o or_o we_o and_o the_o lady_n 〈◊〉_d that_o the_o protestant_a church_n be_v not_o a_o orthodox_n but_o 〈◊〉_d church_n that_o it_o protess_v a_o self_n and_o corrupt_a faith_n so_o as_o a_o man_n can_v not_o communicate_v with_o it_o without_o make_v himself_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n to_o 〈◊〉_d this_o and_o yet_o go_v to_o church_n be_v evident_o to_o halt_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d two_o opinion_n which_o in_o religion_n be_v never_o 21._o lawful_a 〈◊〉_d do_v it_o be_v to_o serve_v god_n and_o baal_n too_o though_o neither_o of_o 〈◊〉_d well_o last_o it_o be_v to_o dissemble_v in_o that_o wherein_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d man_n more_o than_o in_o all_o other_o matter_n to_o be_v sincere_a and_o use_v 〈◊〉_d double_v 〈◊〉_d to_o walk_v with_o integrity_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n for_o as_o the_o scripture_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 2._o 12._o fearful_a 〈◊〉_d fearful_a heart_n and_o 〈◊〉_d hand_n and_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o god_n twoe_o way_n one_o in_o outward_a show_n and_o protession_n and_o a_o other_o in_o the_o inward_a judgement_n of_o conscience_n be_v there_o now_o any_o such_o cunning_a or_o 〈◊〉_d to_o admonish_v one_o of_o 〈◊〉_d but_o the_o relatour_n tell_v we_o he_o never_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o a_o roman-catholique_a be_v and_o 〈◊〉_d such_o might_n against_o his_o conscience_n go_v to_o church_n neither_o do_v a._n c._n tell_v he_o that_o he_o ever_o 〈◊〉_d about_o to_o prove_v it_o but_o yet_o in_o effect_n he_o do_v say_v it_o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d when_o he_o affirine_v that_o life_n lady_n be_v so_o persuade_v as_o the_o be_v by_o mr._n fisher_n report_n and_o as_o the_o bishop_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d do_v nor_o can_v 〈◊〉_d she_o to_o have_v be_v might_n more_o eastly_a 〈◊〉_d to_o god_n for_o her_o come_n to_o the_o english_a protestant_a church_n then_o for_o her_o go_v to_o the_o roman_a which_o though_o he_o be_v please_v to_o 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d yet_o that_o after_n not_o the_o case_n at_o all_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d who_o be_v otherwise_o persuade_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o call_v superstition_n and_o error_n nor_o do_v it_o 〈◊〉_d his_o assertion_n to_o plead_v as_o he_o do_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o 〈◊〉_d church_n and_o that_o he_o have_v prove_v it_o so_o for_o still_o we_o say_v the_o lady_n be_v otherwise_o 〈◊〉_d she_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v possible_o think_v be_v thus_o persuade_v in_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v a_o orthodox_n church_n or_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v sufficient_o 〈◊〉_d it_o to_o be_v such_o but_o rather_o 〈◊〉_d the_o contrary_a how_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o the_o bishop_n to_o make_v good_a what_o he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o ibidem_fw-la though_o the_o lady_n be_v a_o roman-catholique_a yet_o she_o may_v more_o easy_o answer_v to_o god_n for_o come_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o by_o 〈◊〉_d english_a church_n to_o communicate_v with_o rome_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o 〈◊〉_d that_o she_o may_v more_o easy_o answer_v to_o god_n for_o come_v to_o a_o church_n wherein_o she_o very_o believe_v heresy_n and_o false_a doctrine_n be_v teach_v then_o for_o join_v herself_o to_o a_o church_n who_o communion_n she_o very_o believe_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o wherein_o she_o be_v firm_o persuade_v that_o no_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n be_v teach_v by_o any_o public_a allowance_n nor_o superstition_n practise_v for_o all_o this_o be_v necessary_o employ_v in_o be_v a_o roman-catholique_a nay_o be_v it_o not_o manifest_o contrary_a to_o his_o own_o profession_n here_o i_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o a._n c._n viz._n that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o 〈◊〉_d one_o that_o be_v resolve_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o in_o that_o manner_n to_o serve_v and_o worship_n god_n because_o that_o be_v to_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n to_o serve_v two_o master_n to_o dissemble_v with_o god_n and_o the_o world_n and_o that_o no_o man_n may_v outward_o profef_n a_o religion_n in_o conscience_n know_v to_o be_v false_a 〈◊〉_d scripture_n for_o it_o rom._n 10._o 10._o for_o with_o the_o heart_n man_n believe_v to_o righteousness_n and_o with_o the_o mouth_n he_o consess_v to_o salvation_n add_v withal_o that_o no_o man_n can_v confess_v a_o know_a false_a religion_n to_o his_o salvation_n whence_o i_o argue_v if_o a_o roman-catholique_a be_v and_o continue_v such_o may_v not_o against_o his_o conscience_n go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o one_o that_o be_v resolve_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o in_o that_o manner_n to_o ferue_v and_o worship_n god_n if_o no_o man_n ought_v to_o believe_v religion_n after_o one_o sort_n and_o practise_v it_o after_o a_o other_o if_o it_o be_v sin_n to_o dissemble_v with_o god_n and_o the_o world_n in_o such_o main_a point_n of_o religion_n as_o be_v in_o controversy_n betwixt_o catholiqucs_n and_o protestant_n how_o can_v the_o lady_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v a_o roman-catholique_a better_a answer_n to_o god_n for_o come_v to_o the_o english_a church_n and_o leave_v the_o roman_a then_o for_o continue_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n what_o sin_n can_v the_o bishop_n think_v she_o commit_v by_o communicate_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o in_o her_o heart_n she_o be_v a_o roman-catholique_a and_o apprehend_v nothing_o as_o superstitious_a and_o unlawful_a that_o be_v allow_v by_o that_o church_n but_o rather_o pious_a and_o godly_a in_o this_o she_o do_v nothing_o contrary_a to_o her_o conscience_n but_o in_o go_v to_o the_o protestant_a church_n she_o do_v that_o which_o be_v clear_o against_o her_o conscience_n and_o by_o consequence_n sin_v in_o do_v it_o again_o admit_v there_o be_v error_n and_o superstition_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o the_o bishop_n will_v needs_o suppose_v yet_o how_o will_v he_o prove_v the_o lady_n shall_v be_v in_o any_o sort_n answerable_a for_o they_o unless_o we_o suppose_v also_o that_o she_o hold_v they_o against_o her_o conscience_n or_o by_o hold_v and_o practise_v they_o oppose_v the_o know_a truth_n which_o to_o do_v be_v contrary_a not_o only_o to_o all_o christian_a charity_n but_o even_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d own_o maxim_n who_o confess_v that_o none_o but_o god_n and_o a_o man_n self_n can_v know_v how_o far_o he_o oppose_v truth_n in_o that_o manner_n and_o §_o 37._o num_fw-la 1._o tell_v a._n c._n thus_o you_o be_v the_o happy_a 36._o in_o your_o error_n that_o you_o hold_v nothing_o against_o your_o conscience_n especial_o if_o you_o speak_v not_o against_o conscience_n while_o you_o say_v so_o but_o this_o no_o man_n can_v know_v but_o yourself_o for_o no_o man_n know_v the_o thought_n of_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n that_o be_v within_o he_o 1._o cor._n 2._o 11._o if_o now_o error_n in_o religion_n be_v not_o sin_n so_o long_o as_o the_o person_n that_o hold_v they_o oppose_v not_o the_o know_a truth_n or_o hold_v they_o not_o against_o conscience_n and_o that_o by_o the_o bishop_n own_o confession_n also_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o know_v that_o the_o lady_n by_o embrace_v our_o faith_n and_o church_n do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o her_o conscience_n or_o oppose_v any_o truth_n she_o know_v upon_o what_o ground_n can_v he_o condemn_v she_o of_o sin_n in_o what_o she_o do_v or_o say_v as_o in_o effect_n he_o do_v that_o she_o can_v not_o so_o easy_o answer_v to_o god_n for_o her_o do_v so_o as_o she_o may_v for_o go_v to_o his_o english-protestant_n church_n wherein_o even_o by_o his_o own_o ground_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v a_o roman-catholique_a she_o do_v manifest_o commit_v sin_n in_o do_v against_o her_o conscience_n which_o be_v always_o sin_n more_o or_o less_o in_o dissemble_v with_o god_n and_o the_o world_n in_o matter_n of_o so_o great_a moment_n in_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n and_o in_o believe_v religion_n after_o one_o sort_n and_o practise_v it_o after_o a_o other_o ibidem_fw-la 6._o as_o for_o what_o concern_v catholic_a author_n who_o may_v possible_o affirm_v it_o lawful_a in_o some_o case_n and_o with_o due_a limitation_n for_o catholic_n to_o go_v to_o protestant-churche_n there_o doctrine_n be_v necessary_o restrain_v unto_o such_o country_n and_o place_n in_o which_o go_v to_o protestant-churche_n be_v no_o distinctive_a sign_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v where_o it_o
do_v not_o with_o any_o presumption_n signify_v that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o protestant_n which_o fall_v out_o otherwise_o in_o england_n for_o here_o it_o have_v always_o be_v hold_v a_o conformity_n to_o and_o with_o the_o protestant_a religion_n profess_v in_o england_n to_o go_v to_o church_n and_o therefore_o not_o allow_v by_o any_o of_o our_o divine_n who_o never_o give_v way_n to_o the_o profession_n of_o false_a doctrine_n now_o who_o be_v more_o guilty_a of_o dissimulation_n in_o religion_n which_o the_o bishop_n charge_v upon_o some_o of_o our_o party_n than_o the_o bishop_n himself_o do_v he_o not_o §_o 35._o punct_a 5._o profess_o allow_v possibility_n of_o salvation_n to_o such_o catholic_n as_o do_v both_o witting_o and_o know_o associate_v themselves_o even_o to_o the_o gross_a superstition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n and_o such_o as_o come_v even_o near_o to_o idolatry_n only_o because_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n and_o hold_v the_o foundation_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o teach_v it_o lawful_a at_o lest_o no_o sin_n exclude_v salvation_n to_o join_v one_o self_n outward_o to_o a_o superstitious_a church_n in_o a_o superstitious_a false_a and_o even_o idolatrous_a way_n of_o worship_v god_n contrary_a to_o one_o knowledge_n and_o constience_n only_o for_o some_o temporal_a and_o worldly_a respect_n and_o consequent_o that_o man_n be_v not_o always_o bind_v to_o seem_v and_o appear_v as_o they_o be_v but_o sometime_o at_o least_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o wear_v a_o mask_n but_o certain_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v a_o most_o strange_a and_o inconsequent_a paradox_n if_o ever_o any_o be_v if_o the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n say_v the_o bishop_n be_v a_o know_a false_a religion_n than_o the_o romanist_n religion_n be_v so_o too_o for_o their_o religion_n mean_v catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o say_v he_o nor_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n set_v up_o a_o different_a religion_n for_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o same_o to_o both_o but_o they_o differ_v in_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o the_o difference_n be_v in_o certain_a gross_a corruption_n to_o the_o very_a endanger_n of_o salvation_n which_o each_o side_n say_v the_o other_o be_v guilty_a of_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o heap_v absurdity_n one_o upon_o a_o other_o which_o of_o all_o these_o proposition_n be_v maintainable_a in_o any_o true_a and_o proper_a sense_n the_o religion_n of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n of_o protestant_n set_v not_o up_o different_a religion_n christian_n religion_n be_v the_o same_o both_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n and_o yet_o differ_v in_o it_o first_o be_v we_o of_o the_o same_o religion_n because_o we_o agree_v in_o some_o few_o general_a point_n why_o may_v he_o not_o as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o arian_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o us._n by_o reason_n of_o their_o agreement_n with_o we_o in_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n second_o be_v christian_a religion_n i_o mean_v in_o the_o necessary_a soundness_n and_o integrity_n of_o it_o common_a both_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n what_o protestant_a will_v affirm_v that_o it_o be_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o why_o will_v the_o relatour_n trifle_n and_o abuse_v his_o reader_n with_o such_o vain_a and_o pernicious_a amphibologie_n as_o he_o here_o use_v in_o a_o business_n of_o so_o great_a importance_n three_o if_o we_o catholic_n be_v of_o the_o same_o religion_n with_o protestant_n how_o can_v we_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o the_o relatour_n here_o express_o say_v we_o 〈◊〉_d can_v i_o be_v of_o the_o same_o 〈◊〉_d with_o my_o neighbour_n and_o yet_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o the_o same_o thing_n sure_o if_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o of_o protestant_n be_v the_o same_o we_o be_v not_o to_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v but_o to_o agree_v in_o it_o unless_o our_o adversary_n and_o his_o party_n think_v they_o may_v vary_v the_o common_a sense_n and_o notion_n of_o word_n at_o their_o sole_a pleasure_n beside_o those_o point_n about_o which_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o corruption_n and_o error_n the_o bishop_n himself_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o do_v differ_v either_o they_o be_v part_n of_o chrstian_a religion_n or_o they_o be_v not_o so_o they_o be_v part_n of_o christian_a religion_n see_v by_o his_o own_o confession_n we_o differ_v in_o they_o from_o protestant_n how_o be_v christian_a religion_n in_o gross_a say_v to_o be_v common_a to_o we_o both_o how_o be_v it_o the_o same_o to_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n if_o they_o be_v not_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n how_o can_v we_o by_o reason_n of_o they_o be_v say_v to_o differ_v from_o protestant_n in_o religion_n or_o in_o the_o same_o christian_a religion_n but_o what_o say_v the_o bishop_n can_v i_o prove_v any_o superstition_n or_o 4._o error_n to_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n none_o at_o all_o a.c._n it_o seem_v have_v tell_v he_o so_o now_o true_o i_o will_v to_o god_n from_o my_o heart_n this_o be_v true_a and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o happy_a and_o the_o catholic_a church_n thereby_o 〈◊〉_d with_o truth_n and_o peace_n for_o i_o be_o confident_a such_o truth_n will_v soon_o either_o command_v peace_n or_o confound_v peace_n breaker_n but_o be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d superstition_n in_o adoration_n of_o image_n none_o in_o invocation_n of_o saint_n none_o in_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v there_o 〈◊〉_d error_n in_o break_v christ_n own_a institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o give_v it_o but_o in_o one_o kind_n none_o about_o purgatory_n and_o common_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknowen_a tongue_n these_o and_o many_o more_o be_v in_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o it_o be_v no_o hard_a work_n to_o prove_v every_o one_o of_o these_o to_o be_v error_n or_o superstition_n or_o both_o we_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o hard_a work_n to_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v so_o then_o bare_o to_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v so_o otherwise_o we_o be_v confident_a his_o lordship_n will_v have_v be_v as_o liberal_a of_o his_o proof_n in_o this_o kind_n as_o he_o be_v of_o his_o 〈◊〉_d for_o sure_o it_o more_o import_v he_o to_o prove_v then_o to_o accuse_v but_o we_o ask_v how_o will_v his_o friend_n and_o adherent_n after_o he_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v superstition_n and_o error_n by_o scripture_n only_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n that_o the_o place_n allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n to_o that_o purpose_n bear_v the_o sense_n in_o which_o protestant_n understand_v rather_o than_o that_o in_o which_o general_n council_n understand_v they_o when_o they_o define_v the_o recite_v particular_n as_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n believe_v and_o observe_v they_o at_o this_o day_n when_o they_o have_v do_v all_o they_o can_v the_o final_a resolution_n of_o the_o business_n must_v according_a to_o protestant_n be_v reduce_v to_o private_a judgement_n which_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o according_a to_o st._n austin_n be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n nor_o do_v i_o see_v upon_o what_o ground_n the_o relatour_n can_v be_v so_o 118._o confident_a that_o if_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o happy_a as_o to_o teach_v nothing_o but_o truth_n to_o wit_n in_o protestant_n sense_n that_o be_v to_o agree_v with_o ibidem_fw-la protestant_n in_o condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n jnuocation_n of_o saint_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n purgatory_n etc_n it_o will_v so_o certain_o either_o command_n peace_n or_o confound_v peace-breaker_n as_o he_o imagine_v what_o confusion_n i_o pray_v will_v it_o be_v for_o such_o people_n to_o disagree_v from_o a_o church_n which_o proclaim_v she_o own_o erroneousness_n to_o all_o the_o world_n by_o begin_v now_o to_o teach_v contrary_a not_o only_o to_o herself_o and_o she_o own_o former_a belief_n but_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o christendom_n beside_o for_o many_o hundred_o of_o year_n will_v not_o the_o very_a alteration_n of_o doctrine_n which_o in_o this_o supposition_n the_o roman_a church_n must_v necessary_o make_v render_v it_o evident_a to_o all_o man_n that_o both_o herself_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n with_o she_o may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v in_o point_n of_o great_a importance_n concern_v the_o faith_n what_o peace-breaker_n will_v be_v confound_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o church_n so_o apt_a to_o fall_v into_o error_n and_o superstition_n of_o such_o dangerous_a nature_n true_o for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o so_o far_o from_o think_v such_o a_o impossible_a case_n as_o the_o bishop_n here_o putt_v will_v either_o command_n peace_n or_o confound_v peace-breaker_n that_o be_v the_o author_n or_o abettor_n of_o private_a
nor_o do_v we_o make_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n alone_o as_o the_o relatour_n perpetual_o insinuate_v but_o upon_o 27._o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n together_o so_o that_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n we_o shall_v acquiesce_v and_o require_v no_o more_o of_o they_o because_o this_o only_a be_v matter_n of_o faith_n 13._o but_o neither_o the_o pope_n by_o himself_o alone_o nor_o a_o general_n council_n with_o he_o do_v ever_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n proper_o speak_v but_o only_o expound_v and_o declare_v to_o we_o what_o be_v before_o yome_a way_n reveal_v either_o in_o scripture_n or_o the_o unwritten_a word_n yet_o they_o declare_v and_o expound_v with_o such_o absolute_a authority_n that_o we_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n neither_o to_o deny_v nor_o question_v any_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o they_o propose_v to_o be_v bclceve_v by_o us._n this_o under_o christ_n be_v the_o true_a foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o religion_n whosoever_o go_v about_o to_o lay_v any_o other_o and_o to_o erect_v superstructure_n upon_o it_o will_v find_v in_o the_o end_n that_o he_o lay_v but_o a_o sandy_a foundation_n and_o raise_v a_o totter_a edisice_n which_o will_v one_o day_n fall_v upon_o his_o own_o head_n and_o crush_v he_o to_o his_o utter_a ruin_n let_v this_o therefore_o remain_v as_o a_o settle_a conclusion_n that_o the_o ibidem_fw-la catholic_a church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o her_o definition_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n but_o this_o to_o come_v to_o that_o happy_a meeting_n of_o truth_n and_o peace_n which_o the_o bishop_n will_v seem_v so_o much_o to_o have_v labour_v for_o in_o his_o life-time_n i_o beseech_v god_n to_o give_v all_o man_n light_a to_o see_v this_o truth_n and_o grace_n to_o assent_v unto_o it_o to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o live_v in_o the_o militant_a church_n with_o unity_n of_o faith_n we_o may_v all_o come_v at_o last_o to_o meet_v in_o glory_n in_o the_o triumphant_a church_n of_o heaven_n which_o we_o may_v hope_v for_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus-christ_n to_o who_o with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o honour_n and_o glory_n world_n without_o end_n amen_o a_o alphabetical_a table_n of_o the_o most_o remarkable_a matter_n contain_v in_o this_o book_n apostle_n christs_n promise_n to_o his_o apostle_n when_o extendible_a to_o their_o successor_n and_o when_o not_o page_n 103_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o prove_v to_o be_v infallible_a not_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o their_o miracle_n page_n 56_o 57_o as_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n in_o some_o case_n that_o the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v guide_v and_o settle_v in_o all_o truth_n as_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o page_n 103_o 104_o appeal_n the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n express_o allow_v appeal_n to_o rome_n page_n 194_o 195_o appeal_n to_o rome_n out_o of_o england_n ancient_o practise_v page_n 189_o from_o all_o part_n of_o christendom_n in_o st._n gregory_n time_n page_n 〈◊〉_d council_n that_o restrain_v they_o look_v only_o at_o the_o abuse_n of_o too_o frequent_a and_o unnecessary_a appeal_n page_n 194_o what_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n desire_v of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_n ibid._n inferior_a clerk_n only_o forbid_v to_o appeal_n to_o rome_n page_n 188_o authority_n no_o authority_n mere_o humane_a absolute_o infallible_a page_n 123_o nor_o able_a sufficient_o to_o warrant_v the_o scripture_n infallibility_n ibid._n divine_a authority_n necessary_a for_o the_o belief_n of_o scripture_n infallibility_n and_o what_o that_o be_v page_n 64_o 65_o 69_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_a to_o ground_n infallible_a assent_n page_n 75_o 78_o 108_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o one_o over_o all_o as_o necessary_a now_o as_o ever_o page_n 207._o and_o will_v be_v so_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n ibid._n author_n either_o misalledge_v or_o misinterpret_v by_o our_o adversary_n page_z 4_o 7_o 8_o 9_o 10_o 22_o 47_o 80_o 81_o 98_o 113_o 118_o 134_o 135_o 136_o 137_o 138_o 139_o 143_o 175_o 187_o 193_o 201_o 202_o 204_o 210_o 218_o 222_o 240_o 248_o 309_o 310_o baptism_n infant-baptism_n not_o evident_o express_v in_o scripture_n nor_o demonstrative_o prove_v from_o it_o page_n 51_o 52_o 53._o acknowledge_v for_o a_o appstolical_a tradition_n by_o st._n austin_n p._n 26_o 53_o 67_o that_o lawful_a baptism_n may_v not_o be_v reiterated_a a_o tradition_n apostolical_a page_n 67_o bishop_n not_o mere_o the_o pope_n vicar_n or_o substitute_n page_n 219_o 224_o they_o govern_v in_o their_o own_o right_n and_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la pastor_n of_o the_o church_n no_o less_o than_o the_o pope_n ibid._n yet_o by_o the_o same_o law_n of_o god_n under_o the_o pope_n ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o all_o bishop_n be_v equal_a or_o of_o the_o same_o merit_n and_o degree_n in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a priesthood_n page_n 222_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n make_v primate_n of_o england_n by_o the_o pope_n p._n 190_o universal_a bishop_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a or_o ecumenical_a bishop_n ancient_o give_v to_o the_o pope_n page_n 196_o but_o never_o assume_v or_o use_v by_o they_o ibid._n use_v by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n but_o never_o lawful_o give_v they_o page_n 196_o what_o the_o more_o ancient_a patriarch_n of_o that_o sea_n intend_v by_o their_o usurp_a title_n ibid._n the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n always_o subject_a to_o that_o of_o rome_n page_n 196_o 197_o 198_o in_o what_o manner_n gregory_n the_o seven_o give_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n to_o his_o successor_n page_n 199_o likewise_o in_o what_o manner_n phocas_n the_o emperor_n may_v be_v say_v to_o give_v it_o ibid._n catholic_n the_o several_a acception_n of_o the_o word_n catholic_n page_n 130_o causal_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v style_v the_o catholic_n and_o why_o ibid._n no_o such_o great_a paradox_n that_o the_o church_n in_o general_n shall_v be_v style_v catholic_n by_o its_o agree_v with_o rome_n ibid._n in_o what_o sense_n it_o be_v both_o true_a and_o proper_a to_o say_v the_o roman-catholick_n church_n page_n 132_o certainty_n no_o absolute_a certainty_n of_o any_o thing_n reveal_v by_o god_n if_o the_o church_n testimony_n be_v not_o infallible_a page_n 29_o 30_o moral_a certainty_n even_o at_o the_o high_a not_o absolute_o infallible_a p._n 123_o church_n the_o church_n can_v err_v and_o general_a council_n can_v err_v synonymous_n with_o catholic_n page_n 19_o 20_o 177_o the_o church_n definition_n make_v not_o divine_a revelation_n more_o certain_a in_o itself_o but_o more_o certain_o know_v to_o we_o page_n 21_o 24_o how_o the_o church_n definition_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o church_n foundation_n page_n 35_o nothing_n matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o church_n decree_n but_o the_o naked_a definition_n page_n 64_o what_o the_o ground_n of_o church-definition_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v and_o must_v of_o necessity_n ever_o be_v page_n 230_o roman_a church_n the_o principality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n derive_v from_o christ._n p._n 183_o the_o roman_a church_n tradition_n esteem_v of_o old_a the_o only_a touchstone_n of_o apostolical_a and_o orthadox_n doctrine_n page_n 202_o no_o peril_n of_o damnation_n in_o adhere_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n page_n 212_o no_o error_n or_o abuse_n in_o religion_n at_o any_o time_n more_o imputable_a to_o the_o roman_a then_o to_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n of_o christ._n page_n 142_o the_o african_a church_n always_o in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a p._n 190_o 191_o the_o roman_a church_n define_v of_o superstructure_n or_o non-fundamental_a point_n no_o cause_n of_o schism_n page_n 332_o the_o roman_a church_n right_o style_v the_o root_n and_o matrix_fw-la of_o the_o catholic_a page_n 391_o 392_o 393_o 394_o 395_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n why_o with_o some_o other_o style_v sometime_o mother-church_n p._n 389_o 390_o and_o why_o pamelius_n in_o his_o list_n of_o those_o church_n may_v reckon_v they_o before_o the_o roman_a page_n 397_o contradiction_n slip_v from_o our_o adversary_n pen._n page_n 51_o 54_o 70_o 83_o 90_o 99_o 112_o 124_o 146_o 150_o 223_o 249_o 308_o 310_o council_n general_n and_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o how_o great_a authority_n page_n 32_o the_o most_o proper_a remedy_n for_o error_n and_o abuse_n that_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n page_n 165_o national_a and_o provincial_a council_n determine_v nothing_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v the_o apostolic_a sea_n page_n 164_o 166_o 167_o 168_o to_o confirm_v general_a council_n no_o novelty_n but_o the_o pope_n ancient_a right_n page_n 215_o the_o church_n
as_o for_o that_o expression_n of_o scotus_n declaravit_fw-la the_o church_n have_v declare_v etc._n etc._n out_o of_o which_o the_o bishop_n will_v infer_v that_o scotus_n make_v for_o his_o party_n because_o every_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o exposition_n or_o declaration_n 31_o of_o another_o intus_fw-la est_fw-la be_v not_o another_o contrary_a thing_n but_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o bewel_n or_o nature_n of_o that_o which_o be_v interpret_v from_o which_o if_o the_o declaration_n depart_v it_o be_v faulty_a and_o erroneous_a because_o in_o stead_n of_o dealare_v it_o it_o give_v another_o and_o contrary_a sense_n therefore_o when_o the_o church_n declare_v any_o thing_n in_o a_o council_n either_o that_o which_o she_o declare_v be_v intv_n or_o extra_n viz._n in_o the_o nature_n and_o verity_n of_o the_o thing_n or_o out_o of_o it_o if_o it_o be_v extra_n without_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n declare_v than_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o thing_n be_v false_a and_o so_o far_o from_o be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n if_o it_o be_v intus_n within_o the_o compass_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n though_o not_o open_a and_o apparent_a to_o every_o eye_n than_o the_o declaration_n be_v true_a but_o not_o otherwise_o fundamental_a than_o the_o thing_n be_v which_o be_v declare_v for_o that_o which_o be_v intus_n can_v be_v large_a and_o deep_a then_o that_o in_o which_o it_o be_v if_o it_o be_v it_o can_v not_o be_v intus_n therefore_o nothing_o be_v simple_o fundamental_a because_o the_o church_n declare_v it_o but_o because_o it_o be_v so_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n declare_v thus_o far_o his_o lordship_n i_o answer_v therefore_o to_o this_o argument_n that_o his_o expression_n be_v learned_o solid_a and_o good_a and_o that_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n give_v not_o the_o thing_n declare_v this_o extrà_fw-la viz._n that_o be_v alter_v from_o intùs_fw-la or_o its_o internal_a be_v which_o it_o have_v before_o it_o be_v declare_v wherefore_o in_o this_o sense_n those_o which_o be_v not_o intùs_fw-la of_o themselves_o prime_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n before_o the_o declaration_n change_v not_o their_o nature_n nor_o do_v they_o become_v prime_a article_n by_o their_o declaration_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n even_o afterward_o they_o have_v no_o extraneous_a mutation_n to_o become_v fundamental_a but_o this_o do_v not_o hinder_v they_o from_o become_v fundamental_a in_o that_o sense_n in_o which_o we_o dispute_v that_o be_v such_o as_o can_v be_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n although_o they_o be_v not_o thus_o fundamental_a before_o the_o declaration_n as_o not_o be_v so_o clear_o propose_v to_o we_o as_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v they_o neither_o do_v this_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n from_o their_o intùs_fw-la or_o that_o be_v which_o they_o have_v of_o themselves_o but_o only_o give_v a_o certainty_n of_o their_o be_v so_o and_o declare_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la as_o well_o as_o quoad_fw-la se_fw-la and_o internal_o and_o it_o be_v no_o evasion_n but_o a_o solid_a distinction_n that_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n vary_v not_o the_o thing_n in_o itself_o but_o quoad_fw-la nos_fw-la in_o its_o respect_n to_o we_o for_o though_o he_o say_v true_a in_o this_o sense_n that_o no_o respect_n to_o we_o can_v vary_v the_o foundation_n quoad_fw-la rem_fw-la attestatam_fw-la that_o be_v make_v those_o to_o be_v prime_a article_n which_o be_v not_o such_o in_o themselves_o yet_o it_o can_v bind_v we_o not_o only_o to_o peace_n and_o external_a obedience_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o but_o also_o oblige_v we_o not_o so_o much_o as_o internal_o to_o doubt_v or_o deny_v any_o article_n after_o they_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o sense_n we_o now_o dispute_v that_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v neither_o can_v the_o bishop_n infer_v that_o if_o the_o church_n can_v make_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v in_o this_o sense_n fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n that_o be_v not_o than_o it_o can_v take_v away_o something_o from_o the_o foundation_n and_o make_v it_o to_o be_v declare_v not_o to_o be_v fundamental_a this_o i_o say_v he_o can_v infer_v because_o to_o do_v this_o be_v to_o define_v a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v before_o define_v to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o be_v to_o make_v the_o church_n subject_n to_o error_n for_o as_o the_o church_n can_v define_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v define_v before_o not_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n so_o can_v she_o not_o define_v any_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v define_v before_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n but_o yet_o she_o can_v define_v something_o to_o be_v of_o faith_n which_o she_o have_v not_o define_v before_o to_o be_v so_o because_o she_o never_o before_o have_v define_v any_o thing_n about_o it_o for_o in_o this_o three_o case_n which_o be_v we_o there_o be_v no_o contradict_v of_o herself_o as_o in_o the_o two_o former_a wherefore_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n say_v very_o well_o as_o the_o relator_n cite_v he_o pag._n 32._o the_o power_n of_o add_v any_o thing_n contrary_a or_o detract_n any_o thing_n necessary_a be_v alike_o forbid_v now_o to_o all_o this_o discourse_n a._n c._n say_v nothing_o because_o perchance_o it_o be_v not_o in_o that_o disputation_n urge_v against_o he_o but_o i_o have_v find_v it_o in_o his_o lordship_n book_n have_v say_v something_o and_o that_o which_o i_o hope_v will_v abundant_o satisfy_v any_o judicious_a reader_n 32._o it_o remain_v now_o that_o we_o return_v to_o mr._n fisher_n who_o as_o his_o lordship_n say_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n we_o have_v deliver_v out_o of_o fine_a st._n augustin_n who_o speak_v thus_o fundata_fw-la res_fw-la est_fw-la in_o aliis_fw-la questionibus_fw-la non_fw-la diligentèr_fw-la digestis_fw-la nondum_fw-la plenâ_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la authoritate_fw-la firmatis_fw-la ferendus_fw-la est_fw-la disputator_fw-la errans_fw-la ibi_fw-la ferendus_fw-la error_n non_fw-la tamen_fw-la progredi_fw-la debet_fw-la ut_fw-la etiam_fw-la fundamentum_fw-la ipsum_fw-la eclesiae_fw-la quatere_fw-la moliatur_fw-la in_o english_a thus_o this_o be_v a_o thing_n found_v a_o err_a disputant_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v with_o in_o other_o question_n not_o diligent_o digest_v nor_o yet_o make_v firm_a by_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n there_o error_n be_v to_o be_v bear_v with_o but_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o proceed_v so_o far_o that_o it_o shall_v labour_v to_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n by_o these_o word_n of_o st._n augustin_n it_o appear_v that_o though_o a_o man_n may_v be_v admit_v to_o dispute_v free_o in_o other_o thing_n yet_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v bear_v with_o when_o he_o go_v so_o far_o as_o to_o question_v doctrine_n digest_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o full_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o be_v to_o shake_v the_o foundation_n now_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v both_o digest_v and_o confirm_v by_o the_o church_n full_a authority_n therefore_o to_o dispute_v against_o such_o point_n be_v to_o shake_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o such_o thing_n be_v fundamental_a according_a to_o st._n augustin_n let_v we_o now_o consider_v what_o his_o lordship_n bring_v to_o weaken_v this_o argument_n ibidem_fw-la first_o he_o say_v this_o doctor_n st._n augustine_n speak_v of_o a_o foundation_n of_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n not_o of_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n but_o here_o the_o relatour_n commit_v the_o same_o offence_n against_o st._n augustin_n for_o which_o he_o blame_v mr._n fisher_n that_o be_v he_o wrong_v both_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o place_n for_o i_o appeal_v to_o any_o indifferent_a judge_n whether_o st._n augustin_n speak_v any_o thing_n here_o of_o a_o foundation_n of_o doctrine_n in_o scripture_n and_o not_o rather_o against_o those_o who_o impugn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o it_o be_v express_o in_o scripture_n or_o not_o his_o word_n be_v these_o in_o the_o same_o sermon_n detrahunt_fw-la nobis_fw-la ferimus_fw-la canoni_fw-la detrahunt_fw-la veritati_fw-la non_fw-la detrahant_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sanctae_fw-la pro_fw-la remissione_n peccati_fw-la originalis_fw-la parvulorum_fw-la quotidiè_fw-la labour_n anti_fw-la non_fw-la contradicant_fw-la they_o detract_v from_o we_o say_v he_o we_o suffer_v it_o they_o detract_v from_o the_o canon_n too_o let_v they_o not_o detract_v from_o the_o truth_n let_v they_o not_o contradict_v holy_a church_n daily_o labour_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o original_a sin_n of_o little_a child_n where_o you_o see_v that_o he_o will_v endure_v any_o thing_n speak_v against_o his_o person_n or_o authority_n but_o
build_v the_o catholic_a church_n upon_o 4._o the_o faith_n only_o and_o not_o upon_o the_o person_n of_o st._n peter_n profess_v that_o faith_n but_o first_o this_o assertion_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v refute_v by_o the_o word_n of_o st._n cyril_n himself_o who_o call_v the_o faith_n upon_o which_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v found_v &c_n &c_n inconcussam_fw-la &_o firmissimam_fw-la discipuli_fw-la fidem_fw-la the_o invincible_a and_o most_o firm_a faith_n of_o christ_n disciple_n which_o word_n clear_o include_v st._n peter_n person_n with_o his_o faith_n for_o in_o what_o sense_n can_v the_o faith_n be_v say_v to_o be_v invincible_a and_o most_o sirm_a but_o only_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o person_n invincible_o and_o most_o firm_o confess_v it_o we_o ourselves_o do_v not_o say_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n shoulder_n but_o upon_o his_o faith_n viz._n as_o it_o be_v constant_o and_o inviolable_o teach_v and_o confess_v by_o his_o person_n and_o the_o person_n of_o his_o successor_n as_o occasion_n require_v second_o it_o be_v no_o less_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n matth._n 16._o 18._o i_o say_v unto_o thou_o peter_n thou_o be_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n etc._n etc._n where_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o by_o these_o word_n this_o rock_n christ_n mean_v no_o other_o rock_n then_o that_o whereof_o he_o make_v mention_n in_o the_o precede_a word_n thou_o be_v a_o rock_n for_o our_o saviour_n speak_v in_o the_o hebrew_n or_o syriack_n language_n thou_o be_v cephas_n which_o signify_v a_o rock_n and_o upon_o this_o cephas_n that_o be_v upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a translation_n for_o even_o there_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signisy_n a_o rock_n as_o well_o as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o though_o the_o catholic_a translator_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n who_o follow_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a translation_n render_v it_o thus_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n yet_o have_v they_o note_v that_o the_o word_n peter_n signify_v a_o rock_n and_o that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n use_v not_o two_o but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o word_n to_o wit_n cephas_n which_o signify_v a_o rock_n when_o he_o make_v that_o promise_n to_o saint_n peter_n to_o make_v this_o plain_a by_o a_o instance_n draw_v from_o our_o own_o affair_n suppose_v matthew_n parker_n present_o after_o he_o be_v consecrate_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n accompany_v with_o john_n scory_n miles_n coverdale_n william_n barlow_n jobn_n hodgskin_n etc._n etc._n his_o associate_n and_o consecrator_n as_o mr._n mason_n will_v have_v have_v it_o shall_v have_v address_v themselves_o to_o the_o queen_n presence-chamber_n to_o kiss_v her_o hand_n and_o the_o queen_n shall_v have_v ask_v they_o quid_fw-la dicitis_fw-la vos_fw-la de_fw-la filiâ_fw-la henrici_fw-la octavi_fw-la what_o say_v you_o of_o the_o daughter_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o matthew_n parker_n as_o chief_a among_o they_o answer_v according_a to_o the_o then-newly-enacted_n belief_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la elizabetha_n supremum_fw-la caput_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n thou_o be_v elizabeth_n supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o the_o queen_n thereupon_o shall_v have_v return_v he_o this_o gracious_a answer_n et_fw-la ego_fw-la dico_fw-la tibi_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-ge primus_fw-la &_o super_fw-la hunc_fw-la primatem_fw-la aedificabo_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la meam_fw-la and_o i_o say_v to_o thou_o thou_o be_v primate_n and_o upon_o this_o primate_n i_o will_v build_v my_o english_a church_n have_v this_o i_o say_v happen_v will_v any_o one_o have_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o doubt_v whether_o by_o hunc_fw-la primatem_fw-la this_o primate_n she_o mean_v any_o other_o then_o matthew_n parker_n to_o who_o only_o she_o then_o speak_v neither_o indeed_o can_v the_o word_n this_o rock_n in_o grammatical_a rigour_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o st._n peter_n for_o that_o be_v a_o remote_a antecedent_n mention_v only_o in_o the_o verse_n before_o and_o peter_n or_o rock_n the_o immediate_a mention_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o verse_n with_o hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la the_o word_n in_o question_n have_v our_o saviour_n understand_v by_o hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la this_o rock_n not_o st._n peter_n himself_o but_o the_o confession_n he_o make_v of_o christ_n divinity_n he_o shall_v not_o have_v say_v super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la but_o super_fw-la illam_fw-la petram_fw-la not_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n but_o upon_o that_o rock_n viz_o thy_o confession_n because_o i_o say_v that_o be_v the_o remote_a antecedent_n mention_v in_o the_o former_a verse_n and_o be_v not_o immediate_o precedent_a to_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la etc._n etc._n see_v therefore_o our_o saviour_n say_v not_o that_o but_o this_o rock_n he_o must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o strict_a rule_n of_o grammar_n by_o the_o demonstrative_a hanc_fw-la or_o this_o to_o mean_v the_o immediate_a or_o next_o antecedent_n viz._n st._n peter_n himself_o not_o that_o which_o be_v further_o off_o viz._n his_o confession_n of_o christ_n divinity_n i_o add_v that_o if_o our_o saviour_n have_v mean_v st._n peter_n confession_n only_o without_o his_o person_n he_o shall_v have_v use_v not_o the_o conjunction_n copulative_a and_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o shall_v have_v use_v the_o conjunction_n discretive_a or_o exceptive_a but_o say_v thou_o be_v peter_n that_o be_v a_o rock_n in_o name_n but_o upon_o that_o rock_n of_o thy_o confession_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n wherefore_o see_v our_o saviour_n do_v not_o so_o speak_v but_o use_v the_o conjunction_n copulative_a and_o he_o plain_o tie_v his_o speech_n to_o the_o person_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o who_o only_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n immediate_o precedent_a and_o this_o as_o necessary_o as_o the_o subsequent_a and_o in_o the_o next_o follow_v sentence_n and_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n do_v show_v the_o say_a word_n or_o sentence_n to_o belong_v to_o st._n peter_n only_o beside_o what_o coherence_n do_v you_o think_v our_o saviour_n discourse_n will_v have_v if_o the_o beginning_n and_o end_n of_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v of_o st._n peter_n person_n only_o and_o the_o middle_n of_o a_o quite_o different_a thing_n touch_v ruffinus_n his_o lordship_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o he_o neither_o do_v 12._o nor_o can_v account_v the_o roman_a church_n infallible_a because_o he_o reckon_v up_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n in_o a_o different_a manner_n from_o that_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v now_o adays_o and_o therefore_o say_v he_o either_o ruffinus_n do_v not_o think_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n infallible_a or_o else_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o day_n reckon_v up_o more_o book_n in_o the_o canon_n than_o heretofore_o she_o do_v if_o she_o do_v so_o than_o she_o be_v change_v in_o a_o main_a point_n of_o faith_n viz._n the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o be_v absolute_o convince_v not_o to_o be_v infallible_a but_o this_o argument_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v far_o from_o be_v convince_a for_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n at_o present_a declare_v more_o book_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o canon_n than_o she_o do_v in_o ruffinus_n his_o time_n yet_o this_o can_v prove_v no_o error_n in_o she_o unless_o it_o can_v be_v likewise_o show_v which_o i_o be_o sure_a can_v be_v that_o she_o condemn_v those_o book_n then_o as_o not_o divine_a scripture_n or_o not_o canonical_a which_o now_o she_o declare_v to_o be_v divine_a and_o canonical_a for_o as_o now_o she_o define_v some_o truth_n which_o in_o former_a time_n be_v leave_v under_o dispute_n without_o the_o least_o shadow_n of_o error_n so_o without_o error_n may_v she_o now_o admit_v some_o book_n for_o canonical_a and_o divine_a scripture_n which_o before_o she_o leave_v under_o dispute_n that_o be_v so_o undeclare_v by_o she_o for_o canonical_a that_o christian_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o receive_v they_o for_o such_o book_n which_o now_o after_o her_o declaration_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v what_o he_o say_v here_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v not_o i_o conceive_v be_v ibidem_fw-la find_v very_o press_v viz._n that_o she_o be_v drive_v to_o a_o hard_a strait_n for_o use_v the_o authority_n of_o her_o adversary_n meaning_n ruffinus_n to_o prove_v her_o infallibility_n for_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o ruffinus_n be_v a_o adversary_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n yea_o a_o condemn_a adversary_n reject_v and_o brand_v by_o she_o as_o the_o bishop_n speak_v yet_o certain_o this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o
any_o case_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o absurd_a that_o in_o some_o case_n the_o prince_n or_o mother_n may_v accuse_v witness_n judge_n and_o if_o need_v be_v execute_v justice_n against_o unjust_a and_o rebellious_a subject_n or_o evil_a child_n to_o this_o the_o bishop_n reply_v that_o for_o the_o present_a he_o will_v suppose_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v both_o a_o prince_n and_o a_o mother_n that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o avoid_v the_o shock_n of_o a._n c.'s_n argument_n but_o add_v withal_o that_o no_o moderate_a prince_n ever_o 2._o think_v it_o just_a or_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o be_v accuser_n witness_v and_o judge_n in_o any_o case_n of_o moment_n against_o his_o subject_n i_o answer_v that_o a_o prince_n be_v liable_a many_o way_n to_o error_n and_o mistake_v in_o judgement_n aught_o in_o equity_n to_o submit_v to_o some_o indifferent_a judge_n in_o all_o matter_n of_o personal_a and_o private_a interest_n between_o he_o and_o his_o subject_n though_o in_o matter_n of_o public_a concern_v as_o of_o treason_n or_o the_o like_a where_o the_o business_n be_v evident_a and_o admit_v not_o the_o delay_n of_o legal_a formality_n i_o think_v it_o will_v not_o be_v account_v unjust_a for_o the_o prince_n to_o be_v accuser_n witness_v and_o judge_v too_o againct_n a_o traitorous_a subject_n however_o the_o church_n may_v lawful_o judge_v her_o accuser_n because_o she_o be_v infallible_a in_o her_o decision_n of_o faith_n and_o have_v full_a authority_n final_o and_o absolute_o to_o determine_v all_o controversy_n of_o that_o nature_n as_o for_o parent_n the_o bishop_n grant_v that_o while_o child_n be_v young_a they_o may_v chastise_v they_o without_o other_o accuser_n or_o witness_n than_o themselves_o and_o the_o child_n be_v not_o withstand_v such_o correction_n to_o give_v they_o reverence_n but_o say_v he_o when_o childen_n be_v grow_v up_o and_o come_v to_o some_o full_a use_n of_o reason_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v remedy_n for_o they_o against_o their_o mother_n if_o she_o forget_v all_o good_a nature_n and_o turn_v stepdame_n unto_o they_o which_o i_o willing_o grant_v and_o leave_v such_o injure_a child_n for_o remedy_n to_o the_o magistrate_n and_o the_o law_n to_o both_o which_o the_o child_n may_v lawful_o appeal_v and_o the_o mother_n ought_v to_o submit_v as_o to_o her_o superior_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n due_o and_o complete_o represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n have_v no_o superior_a on_o earth_n neither_o be_v it_o lawful_a for_o any_o private_a christian_a or_o christian_n upon_o any_o pretence_n to_o appeal_v from_o she_o to_o any_o three_o person_n in_o cause_n of_o faith_n the_o case_n therefore_o be_v not_o alike_o second_o i_o deny_v the_o bishop_n supposition_n viz._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n we_o take_v it_o be_v or_o ever_o can_v be_v such_o a_o stepdame_n to_o her_o child_n or_o so_o far_o forget_v her_o duty_n both_o to_o god_n and_o they_o as_o just_o to_o deserve_v the_o accusation_n which_o protestant_n her_o undutiful_a and_o rebellious_a son_n bring_v against_o she_o and_o therefore_o towards_o they_o as_o well_o as_o towards_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o child_n she_o still_o retain_v the_o right_n of_o a_o mother_n and_o they_o must_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o if_o as_o occasion_n serve_v she_o exercise_v towards_o they_o some_o part_n of_o her_o motherly_a authority_n but_o rather_o bethink_v themselves_o of_o return_v to_o their_o due_a obedience_n and_o conform_v themselves_o to_o that_o holy_a exhortation_n of_o st._n peter_n which_o 2._o for_o their_o better_a content_n i_o shall_v give_v they_o out_o of_o their_o own_o bible_n viz._n that_o lay_v aside_o all_o malice_n and_o all_o guile_n and_o hypocrisy_n and_o envy_n and_o evil_a speaking_n as_o newborn_a babe_n they_o desire_v the_o sincere_a milk_n of_o the_o word_n that_o be_v the_o pure_a uncorrupted_a christian_a catholic_n doctrine_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v thereby_o to_o salvation_n 2._o but_o even_o abstract_v from_o the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n her_o proceed_n towards_o protestant_n will_v be_v find_v upon_o due_a examination_n most_o just_a for_o though_o a_o prince_n or_o parent_n may_v not_o in_o all_o case_n be_v accuser_n witness_n and_o judge_n of_o their_o subject_n or_o child_n because_o it_o may_v possible_o be_v evident_a that_o they_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o or_o treat_v they_o injurious_o yet_o when_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v by_o their_o respective_a child_n or_o subject_n when_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o whole_a nation_n do_v also_o evident_o declare_v the_o thing_n criminal_a for_o which_o they_o be_v punish_v what_o need_n be_v there_o absolute_o speak_v of_o any_o further_a witness_n or_o judge_n to_o punish_v they_o now_o this_o be_v our_o case_n the_o thing_n for_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v and_o punish_v protestant_n be_v clear_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n preach_v and_o teach_v such_o doctrine_n as_o the_o church_n forbid_v to_o be_v teach_v actual_a disobedience_n to_o her_o canon_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o catholic_a christian_n oppose_v and_o contradict_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o matter_n concern_v religion_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o be_v criminal_a action_n and_o clear_o punishable_a not_o only_o by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n but_o by_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n of_o every_o catholic_a country_n no_o need_n sure_o of_o accuser_n and_o witness_n where_o the_o offence_n be_v notorious_a well_o therefore_o may_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v their_o proper_a judge_n proceed_v to_o canonical_a sentence_n against_o they_o see_v as_o i_o say_v it_o be_v notorious_o evident_a and_o by_o themselves_o not_o deny_v that_o they_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v not_o only_o the_o public_a doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o christian_n general_o throughout_o the_o world_n but_o also_o the_o law_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a statute_n decree_n custom_n and_o practice_n universal_o in_o force_n in_o all_o nation_n where_o they_o begin_v their_o pretend_a reformation_n when_o the_o separatist_n of_o england_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n or_o king_n james_n his_o time_n pretend_v to_o reform_v the_o protestant_a church-decree_n and_o custom_n in_o england_n and_o call_v for_o a_o judge_n between_o the_o prelate_n and_o they_o do_v the_o then-church-governour_n scruple_n to_o condemn_v and_o punish_v they_o though_o they_o neither_o esteem_v themselves_o infallible_a nor_o to_o act_v by_o any_o infallible_a rule_n for_o their_o commission_n to_o do_v this_o be_v only_o from_o the_o king_n and_o state_n and_o their_o rule_n not_o the_o scripture_n which_o the_o separatist_n pretend_v to_o as_o much_o as_o themselves_o but_o either_o the_o book_n of_o common_a prayer_n or_o the_o thirty_o nine_o article_n or_o the_o queen_n injunction_n and_o book_n of_o canon_n do_v not_o their_o canon_n excommunicate_v all_o that_o deliberate_o oppose_v any_o of_o their_o say_v thirty_o nine_o article_n do_v they_o not_o for_o this_o reason_n ordinary_o summon_v anabaptist_n brownist_n familist_n and_o other_o separatist_n to_o appear_v at_o their_o spiritual_a court_n as_o they_o call_v they_o do_v they_o not_o proceed_v to_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n and_o other_o censute_v as_o the_o case_n requit_v and_o the_o law_n of_o their_o church_n enable_v they_o to_o do_v nay_o do_v they_o not_o upon_o this_o ground_n oftentimes_o excommunicate_v we_o roman_a catholic_n for_o refuse_v to_o frequent_v their_o church_n do_v they_o not_o bring_v we_o into_o sequestration_n imprisonment_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o trouble_n will_v they_o hear_v we_o when_o we_o appeal_v either_o to_o scripture_n father_n church_n council_n or_o any_o other_o three_o person_n to_o be_v judge_n between_o they_o and_o we_o behold_v a_o very_a just_a proceed_n when_o they_o fall_v foul_a either_o upon_o we_o or_o their_o own_o separatist_n they_o be_v content_a to_o be_v accuser_n witness_n and_o judge_n but_o when_o they_o be_v call_v to_o justify_v their_o act_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n than_o forsooth_o it_o be_v a_o unjust_a and_o unreasonable_a thing_n then_o they_o call_v for_o a_o three_o person_n to_o judge_v not_o because_o they_o be_v indeed_o willing_a to_o be_v judge_v or_o regulate_v by_o any_o authority_n under_o heaven_n except_o themselves_o but_o because_o they_o know_v that_o a_o competent_a judge_n between_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v impossible_a to_o be_v find_v a._n c._n therefore_o have_v reason_n to_o tell_v the_o bishop_n that_o never_o any_o competent_a judge_n have_v so_o censure_v the_o church_n as_o he_o have_v do_v and_o that_o indeed_o no_o power_n on_o earth_n or_o in_o hell_n itself_o can_v so_o far_o prevail_v against_o the_o
be_v esteem_v such_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n a_o question_n hitherto_o often_o ask_v in_o vain_a and_o which_o himself_o once_o plain_o decline_v the_o answer_n *_o as_o 1._o be_v no_o work_n for_o his_o pen._n but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o say_v upon_o second_o thought_n fundamental_n say_v he_o so_o account_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v but_o the_o creed_n and_o some_o sew_v and_o those_o immediate_a deduction_n from_o it_o but_o this_o leave_v we_o 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o dark_a who_o shall_v resolve_v which_o those_o sew_v and_o immediate_a deduction_n be_v and_o what_o do_v he_o mean_v by_o immediate_a deduction_n only_o such_o as_o 〈◊〉_d in_o themselves_o evident_a and_o necessary_a if_o so_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n to_o deny_v both_o the_o divinity_n and_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v fundamental_a point_n if_o in_o evident_a and_o only_a probable_a who_o shall_v infallible_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o deduction_n be_v true_a and_o certain_a what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o scripture_n be_v not_o that_o a_o fundamental_a point_n in_o the_o relatours_n belief_n can_v any_o man_n be_v save_v that_o reject_v scripture_n provide_v he_o admit_v the_o creed_n and_o some_o few_o immediate_a deduction_n from_o it_o nay_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o even_o the_o immediate_a deduction_n themselves_o be_v not_o formal_o fundamental_a for_o all_o man_n but_o only_o for_o such_o ibidem_fw-la as_o be_v able_a to_o make_v and_o understand_v they_o and_o that_o for_o other_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o they_o do_v not_o obstinate_o and_o schismatical_o refuse_v they_o after_o they_o be_v once_o reveal_v but_o have_v not_o prejudice_n trouble_v his_o eyesight_n our_o adversary_n may_v easy_o have_v see_v as_o much_o reason_n to_o say_v it_o be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o faith_n not_o to_o question_v or_o deny_v schismatical_o and_o obstinate_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o that_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o we_o as_o reveal_v by_o god_n let_v he_o cite_v what_o he_o can_v out_o of_o the_o father_n he_o shall_v never_o prove_v that_o a_o man_n can_v fall_v from_o the_o true_a faith_n by_o a_o act_n of_o disbeleefe_n so_o long_o as_o he_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n see_v the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o some_o fall_n from_o the_o faith_n by_o forbid_a marriage_n and_o certain_a meat_n as_o absolute_o unlawful_a and_o many_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o heretic_n in_o those_o ancient_a time_n who_o never_o oppose_v the_o creed_n now_o if_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v the_o creed_n and_o yet_o be_v damn_v for_o heresy_n and_o mis-belcefe_a in_o other_o matter_n how_o can_v protestant_n assure_v themselves_o of_o salvation_n or_o be_v account_v orthodox_n christian_n mere_o by_o this_o pretend_a conformity_n with_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o creed_n unless_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v withal_o that_o they_o hold_v no_o other_o unlawful_a doctrine_n but_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o to_o deny_v purgatory_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o diverse_a other_o point_n as_o protestant_n do_v be_v most_o unlawful_a and_o be_v so_o hold_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n 9_o as_o for_o tertullian_n ruffinus_n st._n irenaeus_n and_o st._n basil_n here_o allege_v by_o the_o bishop_n they_o neither_o several_o nor_o all_o together_o make_v a_o infallible_a authority_n to_o assure_v protestant_n that_o all_o and_o only_o those_o point_n which_o they_o account_v fundamental_a be_v so_o esteem_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o yet_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o a._n c._n in_o his_o interrogatory_n require_v he_o to_o show_v the_o doctrine_n by_o we_o deliver_v stand_v very_o well_o with_o the_o resolution_n of_o occam_n here_o cite_v that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n or_o council_n to_o make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o church_n never_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o do_v this_o but_o only_o to_o declare_v infallible_o what_o be_v express_v or_o involue_v either_o in_o scripture_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not-written_a viz._n tradition_n and_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a untruth_n to_o affirm_v that_o catholic_n agree_v not_o in_o this_o that_o all_o point_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a in_o the_o sense_n declare_v for_o neither_o sixtus_n senensis_n nor_o any_o other_o catholic_a do_v ever_o doubt_n or_o make_v scruple_n of_o those_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v be_v define_v by_o the_o church_n for_o canonical_a they_o only_o question_v some_o other_o book_n concern_v which_o we_o have_v not_o have_v as_o yet_o the_o resolution_n of_o any_o general_n council_n such_o as_o be_v the_o three_o and_o four_o of_o maccabee_n the_o three_o and_o four_o of_o esdras_n the_o prayer_n of_o manasses_n etc_n it_o be_v true_a sixtus_n senensis_n have_v something_o about_o those_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o ester_n which_o protestant_n count_v `_o apocryphal_a whereby_o he_o may_v be_v think_v not_o to_o hold_v they_o for_o canonical_a scripture_n even_o after_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o he_o judge_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n touch_v canonical_a scripture_n do_v not_o comprehend_v those_o loose_a uncertain_a piece_n as_o he_o call_v they_o beside_o his_o opinion_n therein_o be_v both_o singular_a and_o disallow_v as_o may_v appear_v even_o by_o the_o book_n itself_o where_o 8._o over_o against_o the_o place_n whence_o the_o bishop_n take_v his_o objection_n there_o stand_v print_v in_o the_o margin_n this_o note_n or_o censure_n non_fw-fr est_fw-fr haec_fw-la sententia_fw-la sixti_fw-la probanda_fw-la cum_fw-la repugnet_fw-la sess_v 4._o concilij_fw-la tridentini_n quam_fw-la ipse_fw-la detorquet_fw-la ne_fw-la videatur_fw-la ei_fw-la repugnare_fw-la this_o opinion_n of_o sixtus_n say_v the_o note_n be_v not_o to_o be_v allow_v see_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o four_o session_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n which_o sixtus_n wrest_v that_o he_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v contrary_a to_o it_o the_o edition_n of_o sixtus_n senensis_n his_o book_n where_o this_o censure_n be_v find_v be_v that_o of_o paris_n 1610._o in_o folio_n which_o it_o be_v hardly_o credible_a that_o the_o bishop_n himself_o shall_v not_o have_v see_v and_o if_o he_o have_v see_v and_o do_v know_v it_o with_o what_o conscience_n or_o ingenuity_n towards_o his_o reader_n can_v he_o make_v the_o objection_n to_o what_o he_o say_v touch_v pope_n leo_n the_o ten_o define_n in_o the_o last_o council_n of_o lateran_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a_o general_n council_n i_o answer_v our_o adversary_n know_v that_o those_o catholic_a author_n that_o hold_v the_o negative_a do_v likewise_o deny_v that_o the_o point_n be_v there_o define_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o that_o by_o way_n of_o canonical_a or_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o right_n of_o call_v translate_n from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o and_o likewise_o dissolve_v of_o general_n council_n do_v entire_o and_o sole_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n successor_n to_o st._n peter_n those_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v former_o contest_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n against_o the_o pope_n likewise_o the_o say_v author_n deny_v that_o the_o last_o council_n of_o lateran_n be_v a_o full_a general_n council_n 9_o after_o so_o many_o question_n none_o of_o which_o as_o yet_o have_v be_v sufficient_o answer_v a._n c._n infer_v that_o his_o adversary_n have_v need_n seek_v out_o some_o other_o infallible_a rule_n or_o mean_n by_o which_o he_o may_v know_v these_o thing_n infallible_o or_o else_o that_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o be_v so_o confident_a as_o to_o adventure_v his_o soul_n upon_o it_o that_o one_o may_v be_v save_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o protestant_a faith_n what_o say_v the_o relatour_n to_o this_o his_o answer_n be_v that_o if_o he_o can_v be_v confident_a for_o his_o soul_n upon_o scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n expound_v and_o declare_v it_o he_o will_v be_v confident_a upon_o no_o other_o but_o this_o be_v still_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n for_o the_o difficulty_n be_v how_o he_o come_v infallible_o to_o know_v scripture_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v not_o err_v in_o her_o exposition_n without_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o which_o his_o confidence_n in_o this_o case_n can_v be_v well_o ground_v he_o may_v more_o true_o and_o ingenuous_o have_v answer_v if_o i_o can_v be_v confdent_a for_o my_o soul_n upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o exposition_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n receive_v and_o interpret_v according_a to_o my_o own_o private_a sense_n and_o judgement_n i_o will_v be_v confident_a upon_o no_o other_o for_o this_o in_o effect_n
he_o do_v say_v and_o with_o truth_n can_v say_v no_o more_o stand_v to_o his_o own_o principle_n 10._o the_o implicit_a faith_n of_o catholic_n at_o which_o the_o relatour_n again_o glance_v in_o point_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o know_v only_o implicit_o give_v they_o sufficient_a infallibility_n in_o their_o faith_n but_o have_v no_o place_n in_o this_o present_a debate_n for_o we_o now_o treat_v only_o 2._o of_o such_o point_n as_o be_v fundamental_a quoad_fw-la rem_fw-la attestatam_fw-la as_o we_o have_v former_o distinguish_v they_o that_o be_v according_a to_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n they_o contain_v such_o as_o be_v the_o prime_n radical_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o every_o one_o be_v oblige_v necessitate_v medij_fw-la or_o praecepti_fw-la to_o know_v express_o in_o so_o much_o that_o where_o ignorance_n of_o these_o point_n be_v culpable_a and_o through_o our_o own_o default_n we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v that_o implicit_a faith_n can_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o attain_n of_o salvation_n that_o we_o teach_v the_o clean_a contrary_n assert_v likewise_o that_o in_o those_o of_o the_o first_o kind_n viz._n which_o be_v necessary_a by_o necessity_n of_o mean_n even_o invincible_a ignorance_n will_v not_o serve_v the_o turn_n so_o little_a cause_n in_o truth_n have_v the_o bishop_n to_o tell_v we_o by_o way_n of_o irony_n and_o scoff_n that_o a_o roman-catholique_a may_v use_v implicit_a faith_n at_o pleasure_n as_o to_o his_o carp_n at_o the_o word_n know_v use_v by_o a._n c._n the_o relatour_n shall_v have_v know_v that_o his_o adversary_n take_v it_o not_o in_o the_o most_o proper_a sense_n for_o demonstrative_a or_o scientifical_a knowledge_n as_o some_o speak_v but_o only_a for_o certain_a assurance_n and_o for_o infallible_a belief_n as_o it_o be_v frequent_o take_v by_o other_o but_o as_o for_o protestant_n stand_v to_o the_o bishop_n ground_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v have_v infallible_a faith_n either_o explicit_a or_o implicit_a of_o any_o thing_n they_o bleeve_v because_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n fallible_a they_o can_v never_o by_o force_n thereof_o be_v infallible_o certain_a that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o it_o commend_v be_v all_o or_o any_o of_o they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o the_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n make_v either_o by_o the_o church_n or_o any_o private_a man_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o so_o long_o as_o he_o be_v not_o infallible_o certain_a of_o this_o it_o may_v happen_v for_o aught_o he_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o some_o of_o they_o may_v prove_v not_o to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o see_v the_o church_n authority_n atte_v they_o all_o alike_o he_o may_v if_o he_o please_v conceive_v a_o like_a fear_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o what_o he_o further_o add_v in_o this_o page_n viz._n 337._o be_v only_o matter_n of_o reference_n to_o what_o himself_o have_v former_o deliver_v so_o as_o i_o think_v it_o also_o sufficient_a to_o refer_v my_o reader_n to_o what_o i_o have_v 10._o answer_v in_o those_o place_n viz._n §_o 25._o num_fw-la 3._o §_o 33._o consid._n 3._o num_fw-la 1._o §_o 21._o num_fw-la 1._o but_o i_o can_v sufficient_o wonder_v to_o hear_v he_o affirm_v here_o that_o he_o hold_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o infallible_a as_o a._n c._n do_v this_o sure_o must_v be_v account_v a_o paradox_n or_o nothing_o can_v be_v just_o take_v for_o such_o for_o be_v not_o the_o great_a part_n of_o this_o comerence_n spend_v in_o debate_v the_o difference_n between_o himself_o and_o a._n c._n toutch_v the_o extent_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n and_o do_v not_o the_o bishop_n all_o along_o profess_o sustain_v and_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v that_o she_o be_v fallible_a both_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o define_n of_o all_o point_n in_o his_o opinion_n not-fundamentall_a and_o also_o in_o her_o tradition_n even_a immemoriall_n and_o universal_a and_o do_v not_o a._n c._n in_o direct_a opposition_n to_o he_o maintain_v and_o assert_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o all_o these_o but_o i_o wonder_v yet_o more_o at_o the_o proof_n he_o bring_v for_o this_o assertion_n to_o wit_n his_o refer_v we_o to_o §_o 21._o num_fw-la 5._o of_o his_o own_o book_n for_o there_o pag._n 139._o he_o express_o limit_n the_o church_n infallibility_n to_o absolute_a fundamental_a doctrine_n which_o a._n c._n never_o do_v and_o in_o the_o progress_n of_o his_o discourse_n explicate_v the_o say_a infallibility_n even_o in_o fundamental_n too_o he_o fall_v so_o low_a and_o attribute_n so_o small_a a_o portion_n thereof_o to_o the_o church_n that_o he_o bring_v it_o down_o at_o last_o to_o this_o pitiful_a state_n and_o if_o she_o err_v say_v he_o in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o fundamental_a point_n she_o may_v be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n still_o but_o not_o holy_a etc_o be_v this_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o 141._o catholic_a church_n as_o infallible_a as_o a._n c._n do_v not_o to_o urge_v here_o the_o dangerous_a consequence_n and_o also_o involue_v implicancy_n of_o the_o assertion_n itself_o 11._o which_o i_o have_v already_o note_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o that_o place_n the_o rest_n of_o this_o paragraph_n be_v spend_v only_o in_o repeat_v objection_n which_o have_v be_v more_o than_o once_o sufficient_o answer_v viz._n concern_v transubstantiation_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n etc_n wherein_o we_o can_v think_v our_o self_n oblige_v to_o follow_v our_o adversary_n example_n but_o rather_o to_o remit_v the_o reader_n to_o the_o 24._o place_n where_o we_o have_v already_o give_v satisfaction_n touch_v those_o matter_n as_o little_a notice_n shall_v we_o take_v of_o his_o object_v again_o to_o we_o the_o doctrine_n of_o depose_v and_o kill_v of_o king_n this_o be_v add_v to_o invenome_v the_o rest_n of_o his_o argument_n which_o he_o know_v otherwise_o will_v not_o be_v mortal_a to_o us._n we_o hope_v our_o demeanour_n in_o these_o late_a dismal_a distract_a time_n of_o trial_n have_v sufficient_o clear_v we_o from_o all_o such_o aspersion_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o indifferent_a person_n nay_o indeed_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o our_o great_a enemy_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o under_o the_o late_a usurp_a power_n the_o great_a crime_n lay_v to_o our_o charge_n be_v our_o loyalty_n and_o fidelity_n to_o our_o sovereign_n in_o so_o much_o as_o it_o be_v hold_v by_o all_o that_o party_n a_o thing_n almost_o impossible_a for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v a_o professed_a catholic_n and_o not_o a_o cavalier_n too_o but_o to_o this_o objection_n we_o have_v likewise_o 21._o already_o speak_v what_o may_v suffice_v to_o sum_n up_o all_o in_o brief_a we_o utter_o renounce_v all_o doctrine_n and_o opinion_n whatsoever_o prejudicial_a unto_o or_o destructive_a of_o that_o loyal_a obedience_n and_o fidelity_n which_o be_v due_a to_o all_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n have_v perchance_o drop_v srom_o the_o pen_n of_o any_o of_o we_o we_o own_v it_o not_o but_o censure_v it_o deep_o prohibit_v it_o strict_o and_o in_o case_n it_o be_v obstinate_o maintain_v punish_v it_o severe_o and_o last_o command_v all_o book_n to_o be_v correct_v that_o contain_v any_o such_o doctrine_n chap._n 25._o a_o further_a prosecution_n of_o the_o point_n touch_v the_o unchangedness_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n with_o a_o defence_n of_o purgatory_n argument_n 1._o a._n c._n argument_n that_o the_o roman_a faith_n be_v still_o the_o one_o save_v catholiqve_n faith_n make_v good_a 2._o the_o word_n of_o st._n athanasius_n his_o creed_n quam_fw-la nisi_fw-la cuique_fw-la integram_fw-la jnviolatamqve_fw-la seruaverit_fw-la etc_n vindicate_v from_o the_o bishop_n gloss._n 3_o the_o bishop_n distinguish_v betwixt_o not-beleeving_a the_o creed_n in_o its_o true_a sense_n and_o force_v a_o wrong_a sense_n upon_o it_o vain_a and_o impertinent_a 4._o protestant_n be_v chooser_n in_o point_n of_o belief_n no_o less_o than_o all_o other_o heretic_n 5._o they_o be_v not_o guide_v by_o the_o church_n further_o than_o they_o please_v themselves_o 6._o church-infallibility_a to_o what_o it_o amount_v according_a to_o the_o bishop_n measure_n 7._o in_o what_o sense_n general_n council_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a even_o a_o part_n antè_fw-la or_o at_o first_o sit_v down_o 8._o all_o the_o ancient_a father_n general_o speak_v believe_v purgatory_n 9_o prayer_n for_o dead_a as_o use_v by_o the_o ancient_n necessary_o infer_v purgatory_n 10._o the_o relatour_n labour_v in_o vain_a to_o avoid_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n in_o this_o point_n 11._o st._n gregory_n nyssen_n and_o theodoret_n even_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n clear_a for_o purgatory_n 12._o st._n austin_n not_o waver_v